233 41 19MB
English Pages 178 [189] Year 1989
CULTURAL POLITICS
Gender, race , Renaissance drama
CULTURAL POLITICS Writing Ireland :
colonialism
, nationalism
and culture
DavidCaims
and
generaleditorsJonathan Dollimoreand Alan Sinfield Shaun Richards
Simon Pugh
)
,
(
-
,
Race gender Renaissance drama Ania Loomba Pre Raphaelites reviewed Marcia Pointon editor
HelenWilcox editors
)
Ann Thompson
(
:
,
Opera ideology and Jeremy Tambling Teaching women feminism and English studies
and
language film
nature
-
Garden
–
,
Poetry language and politics John Barrell The Shakespeare myth Graham Holderness
Gender, race, Renaissance drama Ania Loomba
MANCHESTER UNIVERSITY PRESS and NEW
YORK
PRESS New York
,
MARTIN
'S
by
USA and Canada
ST .
distributed in
the
MANCHESTER
.
822
9
8ora
L
© Ania Loomba 1989
Copyright
Publishedby Manchester University Press Oxford Road , Manchester M13 9PL , UK andRoom 400, 175 Fifth Avenue , New York , NY 10100, USA Distributedexclusivelyin theUSA and Canada by St. Martin ' s Press Inc . , 175 Fifth Avenue , New York , NY 10010, USA British Library cataloguingin publicationdata
Loomba , Ania
, race, Renaissance drama . — (Cultural politics ). I. Drama in English , 1558-1625. Special subjects . Women , Critical
Gender
I . Title II . Series 822' . 3' 09352042
studies
Library of Congresscatalogingin publicationdata Loomba , Ania
( . est . .4 - )
est . - .)
Race , gender , Renaissance drama / Ania Loomba p. cm. — (Cultural politics ) Bibliography : p . 159 Includes index .
.
17th century
.10
.
). 8
—
History
in
00
.
$ 15
in
:
( . 2 . .) (
-
-
Great Britain
Politics and
hardback paperback
Typeset
,
by
in
Joanna Koinonia Limited Manchester
,
,
by
in
Printed Great Britain Hartnolls Limited Bodmin Cornwall
88 -
—
-X -6
-
- -
7190 2839 7190 2840
0 0 -
ISBN
'
'.
.
.
-
and teaching India Theater and society literature Title Series PR658 P297L6 1988 822 009 355 dc19
. I.
-X
. . .3 7 .
-
0
in
. - II . . . 9 . 6 . —
5 .
in
,
1 .
pbk ISBN 0 -7190-2839 -6 : $35.00 ( ISBN 7190 2840 English drama History and criticism English drama Early modern and 17th century Patriarchy Elizabethan 1500 1600 History and criticism literature Racism literature Imperialism English literature Study Sexism literature literature Canon Literature
26641
)طا
557-4079 Theat
- 18 -89 Contents Acknowledgements
'
Series editor s foreword
: Cultural
page
vi
politics
Introduction
, patriarchy
and post -colonial English
1
Imperialism
2
Sexuality and racial difference
3
The ' infinite variety of patriarchal discourse
4 5 6
Women
's division
studies
of experience
Travelling thoughts ': theatre and the space of the other Seizing the book
Bibliography Index
of work
cited
142
5
159 173
Acknowledgements happy to acknowledge the many people whose support , criticism own work has made this book possible - especially Jonathan Dol limore ,who supervised the thesis on which the present project is based and encouraged me to write it , and Alan Sinfield , whose comments and
I am and
;
I
in
.
N
; ;
for
editing have been invaluable . I would also like to thank John Drakakis for his suggestions and criticism , and for sending mematerial ; Jacqueline givingmehis stimulat Rose for her consistent support ;Martin Orkin ing book Rajeswari Sunder Rajan for generously sharing her own work and ideas Ahmer Anwar and Pradip Datta for their suggestions Pratap Rughani and Deepa Grover for sending material could not find a
,
I
To
,
,
,
in
to
to
,
,
as
is it
.
,
all ,
.
,
,
,
of
.
.
very stimulating India Suvir Kaul owe one rare book and friendship The solidarity Primla Loomba Nayanjot and Kishore Lahiri Gayatri possible Thapar and my son Tariq made write chaotic circum Rajiv Thapar Kerys Murrell and stances Mymain debt usual my sister Bindia Thapar above
Foreword : Cultural politics
life
The break -up of consensus in British political life during the 1970s was accompanied by the break -up of traditional assumptions about the values and goals of literary culture . Initially at specialised conferences and in committed journals , but increasingly in the mainstream of intel the new and challenging psychoanalysis and poststructuralism and juxtaposed with work not customarily accorded literary artistic standing Somerecent developments offer significant alternative traditional practice others are little more than realignments familiar positions to
structuralism
,
,
feminism
, .
of
;
of
a
to
.
or
,
Marxism
,
literary texts have been related
of
,
lectual discourses
'
of
be
to
.
so
on
a
,
,
art
'
'
a
,
of
‘
'is
be
to
':
'
'.
'
of
)
( at
.
.
,
a
is
But our belief that combination historical and cultural context theoretical method political commitment and textual analysis offers the strongest challenge and has already contributed substantial work We call this cultural materialism using the word culture The evalua There are least two ways tive use has been more common when we are thinking about the arts superior values and literature cultured the possessor and refined sensibility both which are manifested through positive good literature and fulfilling engagement with music and
of
,
in
,
in
it
':
, .
of
Cultural Politics Finally cultural materialism does not pretend
.
political neutrality
.
to
,
.
:
the series title
of
in
,
,
,
as
;
in
as
of
it .
it
of
a
) is
of
'
is
'
‘
(
to
.
'
'
.
,
it
of
a
its
to
it
or
:
a
by
in
is
The analytic one used the social sciences and especially anthro pology significations seeks describe the whole system which society section understands itself and relations with the world Cultural materialism draws upon the latter analytic sense and popular culture therefore studies high culture alongside work other media and from subordinated groups opposed Materialism idealism insists that culture does not production cannot transcend the material forces and relations Culture not simply reflection the economic and political system butnor can be independent Cultural materialism therefore sees inseparable from the conditions texts their production and reception history and involved necessarily the making cultural meanings which are always finally political meanings Hence
to
an
of
,
or
as
,
its It
attempt mystify does not like much established perspective allegedly the natural obvious interpretation literary criticism
viii
FOREWORD
the contrary , it registers commitment the grounds social order that exploits people race gender sexuality and class develop this kind understanding The Cultural Politics Series seeks sequence volumes that has intellectual coherence but restric tive format The books will be both introductory and innovatory intro ductory innovatory that they will clear and accessible their application distinctive perspectives both established topics and Shelley Arnold Eliot the Leavises and new ones the tradition Williams though often terms very different from theirs culture and politics are again important intellectual debates the centre Dollimore
of
Alan Sinfield University
Sussex
to
no
in
;
.
of
,
,
to
to
,
,
of
at
,
in
In
.
of
in
be
.
:
of
to
, of
.
of
a
,
a
in
Jonathan
,
. On
on
fact
its
textual
of
given
transformation
For Bindia , Rajiv and Kerys
Introduction
to
.
its
in
,
; .
be
of
'
in
of
,
of
of
)
(
is
its
Sensitivity to race , class and gender in feminist criticism , despite being infancy Renaissance studies agenda for some time on still especially feminist ones are only beginning address not just the oppression coexistence but the interlocking these various structures surprising The absence class the title this project might then
.
in
its
and in
of
in
of By or
.
,
is
it
a
as
,
especially
of
affects our analysis women class still theoretical and analytical category The recurrent disorderly women and public confrontation between independent and private authority the drama the period has been the subject
largely missing
as
racial difference
,
of
of
a
as
is
it
my analysis But not intended statement omission historiography whereas Renaissance and criticism have increasingly been interlinking concerned with the sexual and class politics the period
it
,
a
.
of
of
.
,
or a a
of
of
by
.
,
of
of to
a
as
much Renaissance criticism lately and large has been read proto implying indicative either radical female assertiveness punishment aligns deviancy feminist theatre female which the drama with patriarchal ideologies Each these positions has included variety feminist approaches ranging from the liberal and essentialist materialist and historicist This book will examine the sexual politics in to
of
in
)
in
is
to
'
to
lift
it
in
, .
(
,
as
;
its
it
an
alongside setting analysis these plays racial difference subject two distinct but connected ways hence race and gender rather than class but both used related class Renaissance drama Firstly will focus upon the black presence some texts order interrupt recent debates and the theatrical punishment the
.
to
of
by
)
-
(
it
a
,
of
to
of
a
at
'
',
by
rebellious woman out from the options laid out current criticism Patriarchy best functional term useful for referring those social structures and ideologies that contribute the subordination women has lately been dislodged from the status transhistorical and unitary phenomenon which was accorded varieties essen tialist feminism the ongoing and by no means conclusive attempts a
for
'
at
to
it
,
.
,
In
).
51
'
feminist theory the drama attention racial difference has least two important implications One becomes obvious that each hierarchical
(p
what Joan Kelly had termed the doubled vision
of
to
a
.
. of of
,
to
it
combine class and gender analysis have dismantled into histori cally and culturally variable complex and even contradictory amalgam institutions and attitudes But sensitivity race calls the tripling
the
INTRODUCTION
as
by
,
of
specificity
interwine different aspects emerges
each
more
.
on
's
women
the
subordination
;
of
between
clearly
.
of or
,
to
of
as
'
*
.
is analogous to and linked with others The which women and black people are constructed the others white patriarchal society are similar and connected and they also reflect upon other sorts exclusion such that based class Two race further problematises feminist efforts make analogies
of domination
structure processes
a
a
.
be
,
is
by
to
It
a
,
,
of
of .
'
'
a
to
a
a
a
of
in
to
,
by
a
of
as
'
' '
for
in
of
to
to
.
of
by
,
in
. of
,
can
,
in
combining race class and gender only confirms that The difficulty neither women nor their opponents considered homogeneous Renaissance patriarchy like any other not monolith but shifting alignment various power structures which are also conflict with one another Women black people and other oppressed subjects are both constituted and subversive this authority seemed me acknowledge crucial for feminist criticism rather than efface con duplicate the tradictions the female subject this drama and not perfect revolutionary demanding idealist search unified providing distilled opposition heroine capable monolithic prerequisite for patriarchy subversive text This will involve his toricising the repeated theatrical foregrounding duplicitous women terms Renaissance politics and society the position women and contemporary discourses about them and the rather complex position
.
.
'.“
, -
its
)
by
(
to
us
,
occupied the popular theatre itself Also real women and their liter representations especially men are not identical All this must lead situate the text among various con texts
ary
'
of
is
)
.
1
-
pp
.
,
a
neutral
or
,
,
in
its
,
its
it
;
of
a
in
assumed
be
the text cannot
to
of
be '(
to
a
,
to
it is
The reader
is
to
by
even explained
'by
is
the discursive strategies the text extending the discussion origins because particular text put created also the use which function particular conjecture particular institutional spaces and within particular audiences Steve Neale quoted Morley relation 170
not
solely
If
is
by
its
not communicated
?
. of
.
'
p
',
),
,
all
to
(
'
,
at or
of
any other literature But what are the contexts this cultural production occurs every point where meaning the time and Reproductions communicated Sinfield 131 then these are not ideological limited the and material conditions the inception subsequent deployments Textual meaning the text but must include
unchanging
of
.
category
in
of
('
of
a
to
.
of
in
in
a
in
of
of
of
to
. of
to
my second usage map aspects This leads race and gender English literature was the history the plays themselves The export establishing the ideological hegemony crucial component the English literature was strategically British Empire Asia and Africa employed play the service colonial education and had role worlding Spivak what has termed the the Third World The Rani
INTRODUCTION
a
's
.
of
by
in
of
as a
a
by
in
of
.
of
or
.
-
in
its
Sirmur ', p . 247 ) . The fact that my position as a teacher of English literature in Delhi University is shared with more than 700 others is some indica tion of the massive presence of the subject in colonial education and tenacity phrase implies the post colonial situation But Spivak passive colonial subject The presence English the canon the pre valence these readings the Indian classroom does not only make straightforward and now tired statement about colonial hegemony English literature study formal discipline British institutions
colonial rule and was itself shaped both ends the imperial connection project the the next chapter shows the encounter between Western text and Indian readers has been and post complex drama where imperialism the site colonialism colonialism and patriarchy interact What does this imply Renaissance criticism the task the oppositional critic amplify and strategically read culture position the marginalised voices the ruled exploited oppressed and quoted excluded Lentricchia Dollimore Shakespeare then he must sensitive how textual usage the conditions textual reception may contribute such marginalisation and also provide the space from which question will consider the question disor derly women and racial others Renaissance drama also though not exclusively from the perspective encounter with non European and female readers the Indian classroom where English literature and established canon have acquired specific political and ideological
,
of
,
,
'
of
of 14 ),
.p
',
of
-
its
its
,
in
,
of
,
' it in . I
‘
to
,
to
to
,
to
, ', or ,
,
(
'
be
/ s
as
so
of
-
to
re
? If it is
for
.
a
of
is
,
As
.
in
.
At
both fulfilled the demands
what happened overseas women were implicated
,
am
I
to
“ a
by
by
it
as
'
of
in
to
I
its
).
. -
of ,
as
in
on
of
, . of I
byto
(p
to
am
my experience shared with India but not subscribing what Baldick has characterised cult raw experience privileged the English literary critical tradition from Arnold through the Leavises and beyond 203 Rather hope break my own position historically determined components into order examine the impact disorderly women has been mediated our existing course drawing teaching this drama
connotations
many others
of
.
to
,
an
.
its
byat
of
of
a
;
–
all of
as
;
in
as
;
of
;
of is
in
it
to
,
us
of
it
as
as
might be negotiated alternative criticism and missing allows see what current Western debates The volatile and violent nature Indian sexual politics the heterogeneous nature Indian society the acceleration social and political fissures recent years well the consolidation the bourgeois state contingency manipulation another level the revealed law and political and religious authority provide these material basis from approach the diverse constituents which Renaissance sexual poli tics employing racial and sexual difference overlap with The two ways critical practice
INTRODUCTION
'
each other . Both together contest
'
what preferred readings have made history and drama and also offer an alternative position on the political and ideological effect of female disobedience . The his tory of Western sexual politics and the contemporary situation of women in Europe and America are only one standpoint from which to evaluate such an effect . Moreover , it is a standpoint that has been
of Renaissance
moulded by ern
criticism
a long history of the exclusion of racial difference in West and social thought . I don t just mean that the black presence
'
plays has been overwhelmingly neglected , but that certain generalisations about ' the female subject or women 's resistance have ( crept in . I am suggesting that the introduction of racial difference is useful beyond analysing the representation ofblacks ; it also allows for perspective on the question of authority itself, even a more complex where colour differentiation either appears to be , or actually is , absent. It can be argued , for example , that the gender politics of a pre -Freudian society have been generally interpreted on the basis of assumptions derived from the very Eurocentric models of sexuality predominant in post- Freudian Western thought , and that this may be interrogated both in
the
by historicising
the relationship between patriarchalism and racism and the perspective allowed by a different culture . Both these ways of correlating race and gender , then , alert us to what Lentricchia has called ' the multiplicity of histories ' - both within the text drawing upon and of the text . This perspective , of course, seen post modern theoretical work spanning various discip great deal lines and isms which has been increasingly concerned with dismant ling the unifying intellectual traditions dominant Western thought as
be
,
on
.
of
-
', of
-
a
Its
,
of a
,
,
effect cultural analysis and literary studies generally and Renais sance studies particularly has been invigorating and has contributed
I
,
to
is
,
on
in
be
)
in
(
.
to
to
enormously firmly commit the shaping critical practice which political transformation ted But the other hand need acknowledge the warning which has been voiced especially often by political dangers privileging colleagues Delhi that there may
.p 5 ).
',
'(
',
of
,
As
‘
an
.
,
is
to
fragmentation and heterogeneity the extent that the very possibility understanding formulation and therefore resistance and change questioned history may then dissolve Perry Anderson has cautioned antinomy into structural determinism and destructured con tingency see Montrose Renaissance literary studies What Allon of
a
,
in
its
,
to
to
of
,
)
'(
.p
of
scepticism White has called carnival 138 then becomes new and equally paralysing orthodoxy which has specific and particularly dangerous implications for the Third World whose intelligentsia was adopt dominantWestern paradigms initially persuaded linearity coherence and development block out own rich heritages
'a
✓
can
from
INTRODUCTION
'
favour of the caloniser s monologue. Now an uncritical play on the com plexity of power structures and resistances can serve to disguise the control , consolidation and unification of neo -colonial and imperialist , as well as indigenous , power structures especially in Asian , African or American societies . see , however , that this itself involves a particular interpretation of otherwise useful perspectives ; for example , Doraiswamy points out that much Western work on Bakhtin ‘ is an appropriative discourse based on silences , misrepresentations and reductions , that have forestalled a genuine dialogue on Bakhtin and his contribution to thinking on culture ' ( p . 110 ) . Allon White has shown , indeed , how Bakhtin 's work offers a critique of much deconstructionist practice (pp. 123 -46 ). No theory is
Latin
it is up to us to utilise
critically what we
see
, and
Bhatnagar
(
valid
of
globally
can
We can
also
').
of
at
.
,
,
to
of
a
of
to
process
of
ongoing
a
all
lay
19 its
see also Ryan
.pp ,
of
vision
its
as
',
;
,
of
on
its
go
inescapable provisionality
or
as of
of
,
of
it
be
,
in
',
Uses and limits Foucault Discussing diversity feminist theories and politics Newton and may argued that provisionality Rosenfelt point out that know ledge the historical determination our own attempts understand ing and the relative coherence human vision deny the very possibility changing reality But either understanding and theorising about they argue none these have historically precluded political seeing knowledge transformation and change moreover form degrees historical practice does not mean we cannot claim relative coherency and completeness while maintaining the while being
).
,
by
,
.
a
,
in
'
of
'
to
of
on
is
to
.
'(
to p
;
transformed xxix 213 unifying ideologies and Therefore resist the closure effected criticisms not necessarily slide into political and academic impotence My emphasis the plurality voices Renaissance drama does not replace preferred readings with simple pluralism also mean but in
be
,
of
'
,
.
as
to
struggle and resistance indicate the sites the plays which our may amplify Following own contradictions readers and critics Raymond Williams crucial and useful distinction between residual dominant and emergent aspects culture contradictions can
',
as
,
,
do
its
,
;
or ).
-
'
, , .pp
73
' ,
is
-5 ).
pp
.
its
(
a
',
(
for
;
an
as
acknowledged indication that dominant ideologies are potentially unstable and never totally effective hence they may provide the space radical intervention and change see Sinfield Shakespeare and edu cation 134 Authoritative discourses past traditions and institu deployed form and structure tions within which the text effect and frame successive new encounters but not completely deter Firstly dominant discourses mine these see Dave Morley 163 homogeneous and therefore themselves are notmonolithic uniform potential for divergent readings the discourse contain Volosinov
INTRODUCTION insists , can become ‘ an arena of struggle 'because it is ‘multi -accentual '. For example , as Homi Bhabha has suggested , the stereotypes of colonial
discourse connote ‘ rigidity and an unchanging order as well as disorder , degeneracy and demonic repetition ', indicating the insecurity as well as power of this discourse ("The other question , p . 18 ). Similarly , the patriarchal notion ofwoman as witch acknowledges female power even as it seeks to demonise it. Therefore , these stereotypes are not entirely
'
contained
,
or
Moreover , in
harnessed by and useful to , those who produce them . certain literary texts , this ambivalence may be even more It has been shown that Shakespeare s The Tempest
in
is
of
it
,
of
).
(
-
3 5
a
recognise the nature and power the preferred and readings precisely institutionalised which seek efface contradiction by claiming universality naturalness and objective and therefore true
of '
,
an
,
to
to
important
of of
The
pronounced . ' exemplifies the operation of colonialism in ‘amoment of historical crisis ' and therefore simultaneously contains 'the apotheosis , mystification and potential erosion of the colonialist discourse ' (Brown , ' This thing of darkness ', pp . 48 -69). My own analysis of Webster 's Duchess Malfi will suggest radical instability the patriarchal stereotype the duplicitous woman see chapters equally While locating the radical instability contradictions
:
, of
,
in
,
.
of a
'
by
in
in
‘
‘
of
by
via
'.
a
representation facts But second undermining their effect occurs the important distinction made Paul Willemen between the sub ject constructed and marked and the text and the social subject history living Real readers are subjects social formations rather subject are not single text The two types than mere subjects
for/
by
).
's
,
,
,
10
a
it
in
of
.
of
on
by
-
is
of
a
to
.
to
its
;
).
167
'(
.p
in
to
relation other texts problematics institutions dis cursive formations These clashes render the text potentially volatile can become space from which question and even subvert dominant educational deployment Preferred readings emerging from European institutions particular role play overseas have had The female reader the sub continent the recipient texts that are the products another
(s )
position
is
, , '
As
.
up
to
.
of
(
'
p
, .
commensurate cited Morley 169 More generally dominant dis courses are not the sum total the reality experienced the subject reader The disjunction between the two may become impossible opened the former efface hence further space for radical readings Morley says the text may be contradicted by the subject
;
-
.
alternative reading and teaching practice
be
can
,
I
as
to as
to
,
for
formulating
an
in
.
in
;
speak attitudes written men andmade behalf anti feminism specific purposes but projected universally valid and hope true But precisely these alienations show useful
brought
INTRODUCTION in their essay on The Tempest , there combining the historical conditions real difficulties the origin ating moment production the text and the successive inscrip during history tions text the course 192 will attempt Firstly the discussion expands include many new
I
as
of
-3
),
( .pp
' '
to
to is
,
is
,
of it
post colonialist education
is
in
elitist attitudes
'.
'
by
far
demands like this
generalise the Indian and
its
of
,
study
.
in
a
,
more detailed examination than For example almost impossible situation The nexus colonialist patriarchalist
which
each
possible
-
areas
of do .
to a
of
of
of a
in
are
As Barker and Hulme acknowledge
further complicated
,
.
of
be
to
is
of
,
-
are of
am
I
to
are
,
a
on
I
,
as
to
'.
,
'
-
-
of
,
of
,
of
of
of
any cross cultural analysis over simplifications and generalisations lapsing into the universalisations adopting the paradigms dominant criticism modernisation replicating the histories theories whereby the Third World seen Western progression Finally much would like suggest that opening outthe discussion critique post colonial English Renaissance tragedy and offering studies are not contradictory enterprises and even collateral they offering ways reading texts inconsistent the extent that in
there are many dangers inherent
of
a
all
by
is
,
of
the diversity Indian social structures and my own perspective shaped limited and specific positioning within these Secondly
all
-
a
,
.
it is a
of
in
-
,
in
of
a
I
,
to
a
of
.
of
an
,
."
,
I ',
a
as
in
of ,
is
to
Shakespeare not likely solve the problems arising from his privileged position strategy that wemay employ our curricula but English studies while still negotiating the future Perhaps diasporic Indian post colonial intel what Spivak calls lectual one cannot avoid such oscillations between contexts and cul tures will still suggest however that connections between alternative textual readings and teaching practices are not just unfortunate result our position The ways which interpretations texts spill over critique into the institutions literature are important for those seeking political intervention contemporary cultural make studies and hope both together will identify the grounds for anti racist
.
in
,
'
its
,
be
it,
as
,
re -
to a
in
it
their partisanship
.
. 6 ).
(p
,
:
as
-a
as
to
of
‘
of
of
,
As
of
materialist and feminist appropriations the plays Chris Baldick argues English criticism from Dryden onwards poetry position passes from the subordinate position defender self ppointed authority from which can turn the offensive literary comment since Arnold particular English social well put literary criticism has Patrick Parrinder has lost innocence appropriations then need not apologetic about Our own
INTRODUCTION
Notes that our notions of historical change 1 Since Joan Kelly made her seminal proposition and progress can look very different with the introduction of gender as an analytical category (pp . 19-50) , Renaissance scholarship (cultural , historical, literary and inter - dis ciplinary ) has been rich in sensitivity to the interlacing of class and gender . A comprehen sive list of such work is not possible here but one may mention the studies of Joan Kelly , Alison Heisch , Natalie Zemon Davis , Keith Thomas , Lawrence Stone , Catherine Belsey , Jonathan Dollimore , Stephen Greenblatt , Louis Montrose , Lisa Jardine , Ann
Rosalind Jones , Alan Sinfield , Leonard Tennenhouse and Linda Woodbridge as having richly contributed to this approach (see bibliography for details ) . For example , Irene Dash , Wooing, Wedding and Power finds that Shakespeare ' s heroines are able to learn the meaning of self- sovereignty for women in a patriarchal society '
( p. 1) . Marilyn French comes to the opposite conclusion that Shakespeare was a mis ogynist with almost a pathological fear of women and sex (Shakespeare 's Divisionof Experi ence ) . Both these books adopt transcendental definitions of patriarchy and do not attempt to contextualise the plays in terms of Renaissance culture . Linda Bamber , Comic women, Tragicmen differentiates between a feminist Shakespeare who writes comedies and a misogynist tragic bard ; she defines the feminine as ' some general principle of
difference , . . . that which exists on the other side of a barrier ' (pp . 4-5) . On the other hand , Juliet Dusinberre ' s Shakespeareand the Nature of Women traces an emergent feminism in the plays to ' radical ' Puritan sexual politics . Lisa Jardine disputes this and argues that the drama confirms patriarchal prejudice ; she is rigorously historical and her view to me seems to be in conformity with the results of some feminist historio graphy of the period , such as Joan Kelly 's ' Did women have a Renaissance ?' (see Kelly ,
‘ simple
Women, History, Theory ) . Leonard Tennenhouse confirms and extends this opinion (Power on Display) whereas Catherine Belsey (The Subjectof Tragedy ) shifts emphasis by seeing the plays moving iowards liberal humanist ideals . Iwill return to the debate in later chapters .
3 The material generated by contemporary feminist debates is enormous .For a discussion of these see chapter one of my ' Disorderly Women '. Kate Millett ' s SexualPolitics and Shulamith Firestone 's TheDialecticof Sexremain classic articulations of the radical feminist definition of patriarchy . Kuhn and Wolpe , FeminismandMaterialism; Barrett ,Women 's Oppres sion Today; Jaggar, Feminist Politics; Eisenstein , Capitalist Patriarchy; and Sargant , Women and
in
.
,
In
,
.
in
';
',
';
,
has
seeof
,
2
.
in n
especially Jaggar
Shakes
it
',
);
,
-
.pp
(
come
to
'
‘,
above
prefer
a
or
).
of 15
a '( is pp . -2
,
,
’;
à
',
“,
, ';
,
-g
';
by
so .
is
in
.
.
,
of
of
a
be
'
(p
certain reading 167 argued that Marxist dialectics provided the basis for such work which however can effected critique the mechanical reductionism much Marxist theory The ques ).
6 7
books
The term used Barker and Hulme whose discussion what imply alternative criticism useful 191 205 for this also Dollimore peare cultural materialism Dave Morley suggests that text the dominant discourse does privilege It
8
,
and the second group
Feminist Politics
of
a
factory
- in 58 );
,
(
's ,
,
.pp '; 3
-
',
' 5
23
'
so
much
';
widely discussed useful examples are Carby White woman listen Bhavani and Coul The incompatible ménage trois Parmar son Transforming socialist feminism Joseph OtherWorlds Gender race and class Davis Women RaceandClass and Spivak Feminist Reviewno Representative positions the class ender debate can be found Summer 1986 Hartmann The unhappy marriage Weir and Wilson The British women movement Young Beyond the unhappy marriage Lown Not
;
4
to it .
its
Revolutionprovide accessible refutations of this position ; they point out transcendental and ahistorical premises and discuss alternatives The ways which race problematises and critiques white feminist theory has also been
INTRODUCTION
all
tions of the relation of base and superstructure , of ideology , and the relationship of the individual to social formation , especially after Althusser , opened up the question the what is submerged , marginalised , hidden by dominant culture . Structuralism , differ ent post - structuralisms , psychoanalysis , certain feminisms , as well as the work of indi interrupted previous social viduals such as Gramsci , Foucault and Macheray have in
of a
.
cognition
deeply implicated
in
it at a ” is is
'
,
aquisitive
“
of
mode
the
.
pp
56 7 )
.
',
' '(
for of
am
is
of
( it )
in
structure institutions occurs the academies time when usableknowledge gathered and processed with growing certainity and control though technologies Marquez information retrieval from the rest the world
),
3 (
.
. XI ,
of
.
as
of
to 's
of
,
’,
22 .
-
'
.
16
'
pp
'
its
's
. to
Morley article indebted discussion the interrelation between texts and their readers May June 1987 Interview with Gayatri Chakravorty Spivak Book Review Vol no English literature and the women She suggests also that the teaching movement have been historically discontinuous and continually bring each other crisis which may explain some our added contradictions feminist critics
I
10
).
to
,
', . as ' . a .
of
,
power relations and
11
,
of
a
'
( to
of
of a
‘
is
,
9
a
of
formulating the sense different conception social totality one many determinations phrase from Marx For the result use literary criticism committed social change see Newton and Rosen felt Dollimore and Sinfield and the Literature and Society Group Kumkum Sangari warns that postmodern scepticism itself the complex product historical conjuncture becomes authoritative because inscribed within continuing in
thought
which unity programmes
, patriarchy
Imperialism
and
post -colonial English studies And who in time knowes wither we may vent The treasure of our tongue , to what strange shores This gaine of our best glorie shal be sent T' enrich vnknowing Nations with our stores ?
What worlds in th 'yet vnformed Occident May come refin ' d with th ' accents that are ours ?
Samuel Daniel , Musophilus ( 1599 )
Contradictions and consolidations
of
A
as
it
.
of
of
,
an
as
.
,
,
of
a
,
to
-
of
,
of
of
is
'.
“
its
of
in
.
are
all
More students probably read Othello in the University of Delhi every year than in large proportion British universities combined developed English teaching them women But the politics colonised countries have largely been excluded from considerations current crisis This indicative both the insular nature even radical and alternative Western criticism and the difficulty for the post colonial critic interrogating pedagogy whose most successful project the English literary text strategy has been amalgam Inquiries into the his universal value morality truth and rationality in
,
of
be
.
its it
of
'
in
Culture and Society
, .p
376
).
Williams
,
(
see
to
is
as
of .
'
of to
–
a
to
is
,
it
of
English literary study tories and ideologies India are only beginning formidably large range over and clear that they will have methodological canvas and involve various skills from archival work discourse analysis My own concern here outline some aspects English the institution studies exists today particularly the growing feminisation These relative stability the discipline and unlearning can are the contexts which the process initiated
now
or
of
Gayatri Chakravorty Spivak suggests that
of
of
an
,
as
)
250
.
p
',
.
of
to
.. .
,
Rani
('
her text
a
,
as
-
as
'
in
‘
as
governance
as
in
an
by
is
'
great works discontinuity literature cannot easily flourish the fracture which covered over alien legal system masquerading law such alien ideology established the only truth and set human sciences busy establishing the native self consolidating other For the early part the imperial nineteenth century India the literary critic must turn the archives
,
IMPERIALISM
,
PATRIARCHY
But conversely ,
it
ENGLISH STUDIES
may be proposed that
the enterprise
of English
teaching in India can be read as one of the texts of imperial governance . In a
literature
pioneering
essay , Gauri Viswanathan has pointed out that ' humanistic functions traditionally associated with the study of literature - for example , the shaping of character or the development of the esthetic sense or the disciplines of ethical thinking - are also essential to the process of sociopolitical control ( p. 2) . In England , literary education was a par ticipant in the creation of a paternalistic , elitist culture , designed to con tain the challenges variously posed to the status quo by the middle and working classes as well as women . In India , it not only responded to the exigencies , ideologies as well as the contradictions of colonial rule , but was crucial to imperialist strategy . But, in both cases , it needs to be added that we are not speaking of an already given , well defined discip linary formation . English literary study was shaped by the same political processes in which it actively participated . In other words, it did not
'
a
a
, ,
,
, ,
,
.
as
in be
in
its
have some inherent claim to , but was invested with humanistic and moral attributes . The history of this investment is interlaced with what Chris Baldick has called the civilising mission of English literature in relation to various subordinate classes and groups. Two further observations will indicate the complexity of the forma tion of this discipline . Firstly , the colonial history of English teaching shaped development the metropolis and the two pedagogic trad Secondly English literature like British itions can seen interlaced general education was not inserted upon colonial vacuum but complex entered into interaction with indigenous education the
.
As
.
on
of
to
to
In
.
in
of
/
of
and the site his her struggle against imperialism order stand the authority the English text the Indian classroom
under and
its
is
;
it
is
a
,
to
55 ).
35
.pp
to
(
be
of
,
an
it
on
's
,
a
of
in
-
as
of
a
of as
is
's of
.
,
,
a
, of
.
of
in (
i.e
,
British
)
to
in as
whatwemay demarcate three interpenetrating cultures Anglo Indian the British India and Indian One recurring issue theories colonial discourse the effectiveness imperialist strategy Edward Said work has analysed Orientalism body European discourses which offered certain construction the East facilitated the hegemonic control colonised cultures and peoples and indeed deeply affected their self conception well emphasis Benita Parry discusses recent essay Said the power colonial discourse has been criticised the grounds that renders oppositional culture and the colonial subject mute and disallows the spaces from which the hegemony the imperialist construction questioned can But while both the consolidation and authority should be discussed the resistance desire locate opposi possible tion not sufficient romanticise the colonial subject
-
be sensitive
, RACE , RENAISSANCE
GENDER
DRAMA
durability , we will have to differentiate between various colonial sub jects and acknowledge stances which are double - edged . For example , it is possible to argue that Indian nationalists received the European text contrary to the intentions of their colonial masters , since the indepen dence struggle was paradoxically led by Indians schooled in Britain and
the British system here . But although Indian nationalism resisted colonial rule it also consolidated own hierarchy and will discuss shortly this complicates the nationalist interaction with English litera bourgeois nationalism ture From the position the humanistic claims as
,
in
,
institionalised English education could not and fact did not need subverted Again despite their differences both colonial and post independence
-
,
,
be
to
of
.
of
,
I
,
its
in
of
,
in
all
. of
to
of
,
a
,
As
.
to
educationists shared certain attitudes literature women and modern isation result the enormous political and social upheavals inde pendence notwithstanding dominant patriarchal and literary ideologies ways that only were adapted the exigencies the new situation deepened the contradictions those involved with English literature on
to
of
's
'
to
is
to
(s )
)
to
'
, ',
of
',
a
.
,
as
of ,
as
of
in
.
in
' of
of
of
's
to
in
'
',
on
by
a
at
).
In a
.
(p
32
to
be
(
.. .
is
on
.
of
as
by
in
,
,
-
,
in
It
,
in
India and especially women becomes necessary then note the ways which colonial nationalist and post colonial discourses both explanation literature and women interlink Lata Mani discourse something which focuses analysis that which stable and persis ordering point assumptions reality tent the social and opposed shared those who claim each other relevant here WS recent discussion which followed lecture given Delhi Univer Marilyn Butler Revising the English Canon opinion was sity shaped place divided about how canons are the first While receptive complex politics speaker analysis the the involved the forma great authors tion the hierarchy and sympathetic also her argument that this was more than power conspiracy sections the audience felt that much canons are institutionalised and supported by vast structures teaching job market and publishing they are not simply the oblique results cultural norms The two positions are not
a
I
in
is
.
or
all
in
a
in
monolithic and undifferentiated
colonised
'
by
a
,
be
of
or
;
to
a
in
societies
it
a
of
in
is
,
irreconcilable but the fact that the Indian reader especially cannot assume that the English canon has been firmly placed the Indian curriculum without great deal consolidation and alliances between otherwise divergent positions with this mind that will trace complicity between indigenous and imperial power structures and not imply simple collaboration between them order This also suggests that the dominant asumptions English studies colonial way challenged education cannot uniform colonised subject
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY, ENGLISH STUDIES
but particular sections of colonised peoples are, for very specific reasons at different periods , in a postion to dismantle the edifice .
of
of
far
de
of our tongue '
“The treasure
53
).
, .p
(
,
legislation
.
of
charge
But
of
in
-
,
of
as
the Fourth Member specifically
as
,
to
in
to
of
on
of
India
'
of
,
is
. ‘
)
(
, .p
,
,
as
Nebrija author As back 1492 Antonio one the first modern grammars recognised that language empire the perfect instrument Barker and Hulme 197 India was the first site for British experimen tation with this early colonialist perception see Basu The formal decision introduce English education was taken only 1835 upon the advice Lord Thomas Babington Macaulay who arrived serve the Supreme Council Lord William Bentinck Governor General
,
to
an
,
to
,
:
‘
it
;
a
of
of
,
English education and Gauri Viswanathan shows the introduction literature was the result wide range economic political and religi represented ous motives embattled response historical and political pressures tensions between the English Parliament and the East India company between Parliament and themissionaries between
'
of
of
' s '
,
the
:
as a
of
,
in
)
97
-
(
for
.
to
in
on
,
).
.p
'(
of
24
company and the native elite classes Despite the growing military strength the Empire colonial pro register nouncements education both confidence and anxiety relation their native subjects For example Charles Grant Scheme the Intellectual Moral and Social Regeneration the People India justification imparting 1792 marks out the stability the Raj English education the East India
of
of
,
of
, .p
Mahmood
(
.
have possessed them long
11 .
of
in
is
.
our own
we
.
They
,
dependencies
are
to
to
,
for a
to
,
In
general when foreign teachers have proposed instruct inhabitants any country they have used the vernacular tongue that people natural and necessary reason that they could not hope make any other means respect communication intelligible them This not our case our Eastern
of
)
Emphasis added
an
.
in
by
opinion
?
morals and intellect between the colonisers and the in
,
in
'a
to
in
).
.
(p
729
gap
, of
by
be
to
'.
us
'
and colour but English tastes would negotiate the ideological colonised
,
to
'
on
of
,
‘
.Raj
' thes
to
in
In
spite his aggressive posture Macaulay departs from the certainty expressed Grant document regarding the willing subjection the Indian people His Minute Indian Education betrays uneasiness about their natural loyalty the English indicating the need for interpreters between and the millions whom we govern But this class was marshalled the same policy advocated Grant persons Indian English education was ensure that class blood
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA On the other hand , this strategy of a Filtration Theory , involving the cooperation of the native elite , could also be advanced from an opposite position of educating Indians in their own languages . This is one of the
its
,
“
,
its
.
)
as
98
(
,
, .p
in
its
,
‘ ',
',
(
'
,
as
).
from
Said
,
the backwardness modern Indians that value Raymond Schwab 164 Many Sanskrit lovers such Schlegel completely ignored the living contemporary Orient which comparison with could then be devalued own glorious past and the European present Said Orientalism Moreover Viswanathan ideological says Anglicism for was dependent upon Orientalism accrued
,
removed
.p of
far
various points at which the apparently different views of the Orientalists , who advocated education through the vernacular , and the Anglicists , who supported English , can be seen to converge . Although the Orien talist passion for Sanskrit, for example , contradicted the premises of English teaching at one level , at another , ‘ it was as a dead language ,
a
of
. 7 ).
whole
(p
the culture
'
attack
as a
on
to
mount their
of
-
,
.
its
programme Through government supported researches and scho knowledge ſarly investigations Orientalism had produced vast body about the native subjects which the Anglicists subsequently drew upon Anglicism
e
,
.
in
to
at
of
.
,
)
for i.
, .p
(
‘
as
.
-
of
and Orientalism consolidated the native allies imperial rule The former catalysed the wide scale emergence what Said identifies the native informant Orientalism 324 the col example onised intellectual The reformer Raja Ram Mohan Roy expressed disappointment the establishment Sanskrit schools Calcutta and urged the British government allocate funds for employ Both
of
ing European gentlemen
of to
'
of
its
of
for is
.. ) . .It
-5
a
,
to
,
, .p
it
,
(
a
of
.
85 to 6 )
.pp
on
).
-5
a
.pp
',
,
:
.'
,
by
,
and
of
as
',
as
(
of
.
It
,
,
Sanskrit
a
Aryan
in
the other hand tied with revivalism purposes India which served several was used politically princes Spivak endorse the claims Hindu see Rani 264 also established brahmins the custodians and true representatives varied and heterogeneous Indian tradition and customs thus rep ressing the claims those excluded haditio brahminical hegemony such Dilip Simeon notes that the lower castes and classes and women classexcluded
of It to of
Veneration
, of
).
32
.p
(
,
-
'
to
'(
of
of
,
of
,
in
of
talent and education instruct the natives mathematics natural philosophy chemistry anatomy and Europe have carried other useful sciences which the natives perfection that has raised them above the inhabitants degree the Bailey and Gorlach other parts the world 354 not surprising having unex that Roy also gave thanks the Supreme Disposer pectedly delivered this country from the long continuing tyranny former rulers and placed under the government the English Moorhouse Such intellectuals ultimately reconciled their conflicts by resorting notions universal humanism Sunder Rajan India
,
IMPERIALISM
, ENGLISH
PATRIARCHY
STUDIES
15
the theory of the ' Aryan ' racial origins of brahminical civilization , given credence orientalist scholars such as Professor Max Mueller . . . gained much popularity among diverse sections of the nationalist intelligentsia , including Viv ekananda , Tilak , Justice Ranade , Dayanand Saraswati, Keshab Chandra Sen , Aurobindo Ghose , Bankimchandra and B. C. Pal. The theory could make the Indian elite feel equal to the ruling Englishmen . . . as well as buttress their social superiority over the low -caste sudras . . . . The arrogance ofthe paramount power was sought to be countered by the assertion of an older tradition of paramountcy 61 )
of
collaborating intelligentsia could identify
.( .p
with which various strata
the
by western
be
to
as
,
.*
of to
as
,
,
-
be
-
to
The common sense assumptions attaching colour prejudice and have slowly come conferred upon people assumed non Aryan such those Southern India and tribal peoples British policies upon actively operated existing then Indian politics legitimised existing dominant tendencies and introduced new ones racism
of
.
well
..
’ .
as
to
it
of
in
As
is
in
of
of
in
to to a
It
, , of
).
of
in
(
,
to
.
“
'
,
of to
.
-
,
is
,
to
,
in
to
On the part the British the project differentiate between various colonised people later be bolstered by social Darwinism evident Aryan revivalism Indians were designated anthropologically superior African blacks which crucially affected Indians own internalisation racist ideologies The myth persists that prejudice against Indians was more closely related station and class than was race such Moorhouse 178 has led Indian participation racist structures neglect analyses East and South Africa and racism their critique especially ironical colonialism which the context
against Indians abroad today the important role this myth played blocking out identifications Indians with blacks persuading them intermediary zone which nevertheless accorded that they occupied them inferior status see chapter
.
racism
show
(
).
6
an
,
in
an
will
of
The Tempest
,
of
current intensification
case
.
to
in
,
it
it
/
,
(
,
of
a
in
an
,
of
,
In
of is 190 ).
a
.
'(
.p
in
of
‘
in
'
of
)
a
in
of
of '
in
,
,
or
a
,
67 or ).
.
'
(p
or
on
it
its
‘
Simeon rightly points out that nationalism rarely has that pure virginal ideologues like indulge themselves about which Depending the social forces and processes which articulate can imperialist tolerant be defensive chauvinist universalist humanist polarisation racist Fanon describes colonial culture between those who threw themselves frenzied fashion into the frantic acquisition the culture the occupying power and took unfavourably criticising their own national culture every opportunity setting out and substantiating the claims and those who took refuge way which rapidly becomes unproduc their indigenous culture convergence between the tive India we can locate areas two This one the contexts which the English literary text became not site conflict but accommodative ideal where the humanistic quality
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
16
of that
assumptions
sciousness and
of good
single shelf
con
'
European literature
in a
me
.
of
by
are
;
,
,
to
for
narrated
in
an
is
there
a Westernised
small rural college in the Midnapur district by Nirmalaya Samanta , a lecturer there . longer compulsory no those undergraduates who are not the subject unlike most other universities However optional English paper the marks this paper cannot affect
Consider the situation
of West Bengal, English is majoring
include both
in
‘A
discipline could one .
a revivalist
of
of
or
left
.
,
of
a
,
of
a
,
a
education
are beginning
India has diverse histories
,
British
which
as
recent inquiries
in
literature
to
of of of
as a
(p
'
).
a
,
”
am
I
's
“
.
. H on .
D
a
in
or to of
to to
in
as
:'
it
is
for
.
, /
the position the student but mentiond his her degree certificate The popularity the course remains unaffected not merely because English professional and official reasons necessary immediately confers status the girls who opt for English but because will group together and feel that silk parasols are now order opposed the usual nylon ones Meanwhile with the problem trying make Lawrence The White Stocking make sense stocking potato farms and have never seen students who live ersonal communication ballroom their lives English was not taught just foreign language but was the means imposing ideologies way being and seeing culture cluster privileged signifier literary which the text became the This centrality
the division
's ,
to
's
By
be
of
as a
,
in
.
'
‘
its
of
.
its
of
-
of
,
.
to
uncover Firstly Gauri Viswanathan has shown given that the British administration declared policy was one non interference native religions English literature became carrying out civilising mission and proclaiming itself means expressed altruistic and reformist the 1820 doubts began language teaching and secular education about earlier policy The Orientalist Horace Wilson maintained that mere language cannot work any material change and that only when we initiate them into our to
an
)
,
in
',
of
,
on
on
by
a
of
to
in
ally
).
17 the
an
-
13
of
,
, pp .
'(
the
missionaries the one hand and fears native insubordina support English literature other discovered maintaining control them natives under the guise liberal education Viswanathan tion
in on
voked
in
of
.
in
of
by
).
'(
, .p
14
(
,
,
an
,
at
particularly adopt feelings early age and get them literature impression and sentiments from our standard writers can we make upon them Viswanathan The fear that secular education would nurture native rebelliousness was articulated missionaries who deplored the lack prevailing pedagogy Since religious moral bias maintaining the status quo instruction the sort that was useful possible Britain was not colonial soil British administrators pro
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH STUDIES In Macaulay 's pronouncements , the English literary text occupies the position of an advance guard of the British empire , effecting 'pacific triumphs of reason over barbarism ' (Moorhouse , p . 96 ) . He speaks of
the propagation of that literature before the light ofwhich impious and
cruel superstitions are fast taking flight on the banks of the Ganges . . . And , wherever British literature spreads, may it be attended by British virtue and British freedom (Baldick , p . 71). The superiority of British ignorance culture over native and stupidity is expresssed by the differ ence between Western and other texts : a single shelf of a good European
'
was worth the whole native literature of India and Arabia ' , p . 722 ). Contradictory claimswere made on behalf ofEnglish literature : on the one hand , that it was ‘ imbued with the spirit of Chris library
(Macaulay
', and , on
that such a double stance allowed English
lay
the other , that it was ‘not interwoven to the same extent with the Christian religion as the Hindoo religion is with the Sanskrit language and literature ' ( Viswanathan , p . 19 ) . Macaulay ' s Minute reveals tianity
simultaneous that the administration shall always abstain from giving any public encourage converting natives engaged ment those who the work Christianity But irks Macaulay that this policy should imply the encouragement Indian literature which propogates false History false Astronomy false medicine and false religion when they could be instructed literature that could teach them sound Philosophy principles and true History 723 And sound religion reiterates
of ‘
'
'
a
the
,
)
'
'
,
to
of
in
. .. (
).
-8
.
pp
a
'(
to
,
of it
,
'.
in
literature
The Minute
.
and secularism are
to
morality
to
claim
.
onemight add he ( ) be )
of
III
literature also became the prescribed education for India George had required his Cadet only
.
English
of
,
Secondly
the administrators
', ,
',
'
at
's
in
,
).
.
in
by
of
of
in
,
see
(
in
-
in
,
of
.
to
a 1
,
. '
in
of
be
of
of
)
by
(
of
).
(
have
.. .a
in
-
'
' , (
Vulgar Factions write good Hand well grounded gone through the Latin Grammar quoted Spivak Rani Macaulay and the recom 254 The 1853 India Act also authorised mendations the report the Civil Service the East India Company open competitive examinations 1855 proclaimed that there would for the Indian civil services which English Literature and Language pressure upon would constitute 000 marks paper This resulted English universities teach these subjects formally Oxford first pro English taught Raleigh fessor literature Walter had earlier the Anglo Oriental College Aligarh chapter three Baldick qualifications needed for imperial governance also tied The shift English with the displacement Classics the home country that and
at in
);
71
, .p
'(
at
of
'
Members the Indian Civil Service affirmed that the culture that men dealing got Oxford and Cambridge was the greatest importance with the natives Baldick but what culture men got Oxford
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
18
,
,
its
of
',
a
of
, '
speech and writing
directly translated
as
in
is
decorum
-
in a
in
to to a be
a
an
if
:‘
to a
stress reticence
Then
being privileged Indian should lady remember that presentation ball room dancing does not entitle you claim her acquain Finally manners and submission the colonial
distance
:
sexual
party invited for the purpose
'
,
,
as
to
.
table manners
of
racial and
moves
on
society
,
European
and European
or
or to
.
to
.
in
.
of
to
'
.
of
' or
',
It
in
;
.
,
.
his 23 )
(
in p
as
,
,
to
of
of
as
If,
-
its
and Cambridge was determined also by the British experience in the colonies , where English literature had become the civil counterpart of missionary activity on the one hand and military force on the other – ideological mission effaced by supposedly private individual universal and non political nature Viswanathan suggests the English literary text functioned highest and most perfect state the surrogate Englishman state the Perfect implications English literature became the guru teacher culture The culture knowledge guru culture slide easily from knowledge decorum and from behaviour downright submission One this tribe published handbook aright submissicom might interact socially with the British 1915 ad addressed Indians who 1915 your advises them not chew betel nut stroke any part person bite nails scratch such habits are not considered polite
to
-
be
to
.
to
.
or
.
-7 )
'(
,
a
do
a
for
,
is is
in
do
.. .
on
-
:
be
' '.
,
to
tance elsewhere masters merge Do not over sensitive criticism Learn tolerate Englishmen are apt criticism occasion somewhat rough and ready what they say and but remember that such downright con necessarily overbearing duct not and not convert hasty word only jest deadly what intended into insult quoted Moorhouse pp 176 in
of
The fact that many those schooled this system did not learn not substantially alter the claim that English literature morality and knowledge was universal source even Indian
;
of
a
of
these lessons did
in
be
of
(
,
in
)
).
(
in
an
as
, .p
,
'(
in
at
or
.
-
,
'
,
to
:‘
Shakespeare was attributed the study The ideas which were imbibed from the rulers literature and attitudes were rationalism civil liberties and constitutional self government No one could pre contact with Englishmen that time for long read Shakespeare scribed reading the colleges without catching the infection Spear nationalism 166 But the ways which art and especially ideological apparatus literature functions the Althusserian nationalism
.
p
',
Shakespeare and education
',
(
Sinfield
135
he .
as
in
). -
;
a
an
for
to
of
,
)
its
organisation sense perpetuating dominant power relations involves and institutionalisation which include criticism and interpretation Specific readings Shakespeare are needed back the claim that was instructor Indian nationalists just others have made possible his becoming spokesman for right wing ideologies Britain
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH STUDIES
“ The experiencing type
of mind fix
'
as
as
'
' '
.
, -
all
of
‘
'
as
all
A central feature of hegemonic ideologies is their projection of the dominant viewpoint as universally true , transcendentally valid and non political . In this way , they claim to represent humanity and their finally others inferior and non human Thus he and man are patri people and both subsume well archal representations exclude
by
,
a
to
in
to
a
of
of
in
.
of
in
,
to
as a
of
If
.
se
or
per
,
, of
,
the
of
,
is
of
.
of
-
is
;
of
is
-
it
it
is
.
woman Thus also white racism implies not only that European culture superior but that the only kind culture there can be exclusion necessarily non human barbaric and from the non European specialisation animalistic Knowledge the East for the European but knowledge the West for the Asian African becomes synonym ous with education knowledge culture we add this the repository dominant representation literature some fixed and unchanging human essence we can begin approach the significance European text the colonial context which also resulted specific kinds teaching and critical practices The primary contradiction engendered this situation involves the fixing English literature and the Indian reader into positions that imply permanent and inherent inability comprehend the latter
be
'
of .
of
a
a
,
,
for
is
as a
in
. At
the truths enshrined the former the same time such comprehen posited ability requirement for knowledge and sion measure Macaulay example stresses simultaneously the ignorance
.
)
',
a
of in
, .6p an ) .
of
a
a
in
a
'
a
'(
,
of
. , D . Q
to
as
).
, .
p
to
;
, I of .A .
(
to
' of
. .T S .
of
a
as
of
.
-9
p
'(
,
or in
'
:
in
to
to
Indians and their ability educated there are this very town natives who are quite competent discuss political scientific ques tions with fluency and precision the English language 725 728 English studies was established The elitist nature and civilising mission through strategic inclusion well exclusion certain categories people Eliot Richards and the Leavises among others bemoaned the effects mass literacy according Leavis the sudden opening the fiction market the general public was blow serious reading Baldick 207 Indian critics just after indepen dence also regretted the fact that where the past few people knew great deal about Shakespeare today large number know little about Muliyil English literary studies him The institutionalisation
in
of
,
.
all
,
;
);
,
a
(
,
'
of
Britain involved inclusion the uncultured into the boudoir knowledge where their inferiority would become apparent and their chapter two subservience ensured see Baldick India the pattern was repeated but with more complicated hierarchy the Europeans privileged then native informants and then their sucessors were independence English readers But both before and after the survival
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
it . as
to
all
on
,
as
see
.. .
of
those who have eyes
to
,
for the
:"
to
like the universe itself open view emphasis added Menezes
, .p 14 ; :
is
–
to
/
,
to
of
in
of
its
expansion into precisely those people literature depended upon appreciating had been deemed some ways incapable The universality and essential veracity literature well the special ability comprehend these are the two assumptions which ages the inclusion exclusion principle rests Shakespeare appeals particularly experiencing type and most temperaments mind He
who
will
and
.
of
on
of
see Drakakis
(
,
-
Coleridge and Samuel Johnson onwards
from
,
).
to
'( a
is
pp
criticism
,
This statement significantly from volume entitled Shakespeare Came India Although obviously coinciding with the anti historical thrust dominant Shakespearian
use them
of
,
to
a
It
.
of
by
see
an
in
,
is
to
in
an
,
on
.
,
of
a
,
it
To
.
a
),
25
in
.
-
1
specific dimen the universalism the English text took sion India begin with involved particular appropriation both individual spiritual texts and India For example the Orientalist conception abstracted soulful India takes added meaning relation liter dominantly construed ature which have similar characteristics was inserted into Shakespeare criticism India Orientalist compari interpretation sons between him and Kalidasa which involved
'(
as
a
'
-
of
of of '
an
'
'
Sri
'
as
).
6
'',
chap spokesmen for harmony order and regeneration Aurobindo Ghosh even saw Shakespeare embodiment Shakespearian world creative Ananda the life spirit who created
both ter
, of
a
in
to
a
’
on
all of '
a
to
of
,
, ,
-6 .)
pp
.
as
'
(
,
of
'
are
’, .ie .
of
by
,
'. of
a
,
its
of
a
,
in
is
its
,
of
of it
spite realistic elements romantic world the word world the wonder and free power give him life and not mere external realities Aurobindo credit was continually disturbed the defect Elizabethan work the fact that the characters not living beings working out their mutual humanity jostling each other Karma but external figures crowded stage 132 Later readings however erased such Shakespeare was elevated discomfort the status seer the
his own and
very true sense
condition pacifist people and the theme spiritual India The stereotype long history has had traced the Vedantic texts which were fiercely contested later was politically useful for the Raj and also for government propaganda the national movement now surfaces highly stratified society Colonialist contain the growing violence discourse seized upon and reworked such stereotypes the Orient legitimise own patriarchalism Aurobindo comments Shakes peare reveal their interaction with the notion the universality liter particular ature and the English text Secondly Jasodhara Bagchi has suggested English literature was major component the ideology nation building that was consoli a
of
,
to
be
in
to
it
to
of
a
,
of
in
on
's
.
in
of
,
as
,
of
.
its
of
.
a
of
it
;
;
a
it
;
can
a
of
.
human
, PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH STUDIES
IMPERIALISM
under British colonial rule in the nineteenth century . The univer sal humanism put forward by institutionalised literary studies was useful in the task of hegemonising native elite culture . It offered a programme of building a new man who would feel himself to be a citizen of the world while the very face of the world was being constructed in the apparent mirror of the dominant culture of the West (p . 3) . There contradictions this reception the English text When Milton and poetry mouthed by Indian nationalists the hierarchy implicit Shelley dated
are
.
,
's
is
in
of
'
an
,
.
. T .
,
W
.
,
to
.J .
F
by
's
all
'
,
in
to
An
to
it
of
.
of
'
'
on
in
is
being strained On the other hand such colonial pedagogy appropriation rests cultural difference Therefore the obliteration English studies does not really challenge the ideological premises but reinforces their claim universal value rationality and truth poems Tennyson introduction Rowe and Webb published 1938 declared that the emotions that he appeals are
.. .
to
)
of
'.
of
, ‘
,
at
,
of
of
all
(
.. .
the
.. .
a
strongly
is
so
he
easy
to
understand and common The moral laws upholds are those primary sanctions upon which powerful Tennyson exercises average English society founded English speaking peoples charm over hearts and minds Quoting this Alan Sinfield notes that the editors were professors English literature Presidency College Calcutta one the breeding generally
which
'
of
no
on
an
a
‘
of
a
-
as all
‘
,
of
of
) , .
all
in
, ,
(
As
.
it
2
p
, .
as a
be
'
‘
can
'.
radical Indian nationalism He comments that the word justification seen both cultural imperialism and wishful thinking Alfred Tennyson True but the radicals Presi dency College would probability have had quarrel with that Bagchi says this was not merely claim literature the masters harbinger open but was literature secular outlook life and grounds
here
it
';
. 4 ).
of
a
to
if
of
of
be
'
(p
its
in
to
of
sesame the great treasures the world became the mantra for fight against obscurantist traditionalism New India The recognised we are duality the stance must locate both departure English studies from imperialist connotations the civilising mission
or or
At
of
of
,
.
the
of
for
'.
,
a
;
'.
did
'
to
‘
of
.
-
to
a
of
English studies from the Raj continuity that ensures the passage and post colonial education English Two other points are crucial One this nationalist reading perception exclusivity literature not break from idea the experiencing mind first this mind was naturally either white wore white mask the subaltern reader was inevitably less equipped see Thus Geoffrey Kendal the British actor whose troupe performed
a
or
to
.. . . .
'.
:
”
.. .
to
us to
a
,
him
of
in
“
' an ,
as
,
in
in
Shakespeare years every corner India received letter from theatre group Kerala thanking for bringing them closer the ʻreal thing from which they Indians were excluded the English company was coming news that Trivandrum was like droppingmanna the way starved people Somehow other
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA bond has linked “ Forward Bloc " and " Shakespeareana ” together . . . Let Shakespeare keep India and Britain united ' ( p . 89 ) . From universality to Empire is a short step : editor volume examining Shakespeare plainly the England India puts trade commerce imperialism and the penal code has not endured but the imperishable Empire Shakespeare will always with And that something be grateful for Narasimhaiah The book was
,
of
a
of
'
:
us .
p
(
years after independence
But the experiencing intellectual but could include the upper class upper caste intellectual well The ideological effect continuing reverence for the canon was the Indian student peaking background especially one not coming from English my students position disability exclusion and awe one 1980 chemistry but had compulsory year who was majoring English literature felt obliged include Jack Austen list her
,
.
,
,
in a
of ,
of
on a
'
a
do
in
of
-s
'
'. ,
to
in
to
:
,
of
an
to
fix
-
of
the Westernised
of
/
-
'
‘
!
seventeen just
mind was not
as
published
'
is
to
of
, . be v ).
,
in
it
the
a
,
of
-
In
.
we hear that
,
colonialism
,
of
its
a
in
to
of of
'
Two
be
authors the transcendental status the literary text continued containing the tensions society that was not rendered useful homogeneous by expelling post independence colonial masters discussions education conducted from avowed positions anti favourite
as
. .. (
,
a
It is
of
. . . .
,
-
.
in
that universal harmony
, of of
is
its
)
(
literature
in
widest connotation but the outward expression He who basks the glorious and radiant sunshine true and genuine literature does not recognise such man made barriers caste class difference of language and the like such literature that we now Sadasivayya need for understanding the true meaning culture and religion Sahitya
'
idea that transcends
'
an
text
are obvious English studies positioned themselves both from the society which they were conducted and
’
-
'
valorising
or
political implications
a
The
the man made
. of
)
.p
219
as
in
on : it
of
.
is
Its
.
of
a
,
to
.
all
‘
a
at
remove the panacea for social evil The English literary establishment has prey nostalgia been for the Western homeland looking down regional literatures and isolating itself from other sections the academy academic and political conservatism notorious And
of
of
'
,
in
his
,
,
In
of
).
10
-
(
' the
to
9
a
.pp of
)
of
.. . . .. (
of
.. .
of
in
to
has been able reconcile itself with revivalism various sorts Bengal the evocation Jasodhara Bagchi has pointed out that the Hindu Brahminical golden age was conducted within the protective English literary values umbrella When the theatre moved out the household the aristocracy into the public commercial stage Girish adapta Ghosh showed the glory Hindu heroism alongside Shakespeare tions 1941 Amarnath Jha his presidential address English teachers asserted that Conference
' the
can
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY, ENGLISH STUDIES
's
to
of
all
.
,
of
, .
is
in
a
be
.
.
to
be
to
In
,
on
)
of
to
,
)
(
-
.'
e
. of ', i.
17
.
-
13
pp
byof
is
a
of
'
to '( ‘
to
'
of a
),
(
the
of
of
a
as
An
(
).
'
of
S
, .
be
by
only correlation of the Hindu and Western canons is a task that performed English quoted the critic literature Tharu Recently Nagarajan suggests that from Edward Thompson novel End Hours 1938 we can establish new context make the study English relevant English the traditions India the teacher guru who will respond This India the spirit which knows nothing Significantly the divisions time for Nagarajan symbolised girl who insists committing sati this India significant three instances the equation India with Hinduism The ideologies attaching institutionalised English studies then are complex and should not simplistic notion collapsed into cultural adopted challenging imperialism strategies The the orthodoxy will responsive have this complexity
of
An
Women and English studies overwhelming majority
by
;
in
,
is
.
It
to
,
is
is
by
a
,
to
is
's
.
of
is
in
study English litera those who choose increasing devalu India are women and the trend sharpened subject subject ation the Fanon colonised male for women the split between black skin and white mask intensified their gen perhaps encapsulated dered alienation from white society which their relationship the Western canonical text somewhat ironical
ture
a
,
in
( of
)' '(
as a
as
of
).
.p
',
's
it
it
,
by
a
to
is
'
of
as
.
as
for their roles better wives and mothers Alan Sinfield points out that operate respect whilst Literature made mode exclusion including paradox disadvantages girls class them this seems Shakespeare but only shows Literature flexibility cultural form and education 136 The alignment certain disciplines male and
,
.
all
,
to
.
)
in
85
-
all
;
;
,
,
of
.
be
to
,
;
a
is
or
65 be -
pp
is a
is
.
;
of
is
;
,
.
to
',
as
to
,
,
(
of ',
,
in
to
it
:
to
relation
,
in
to
female
located
is
as
neither limited India nor accidental needs the dominant ideologies concerning both women and literature and their concrete social effects Women the literary text the individual subject and ideology are interconnected multiple ways see Barrett Ideology Separately and counterposed various combinations each them comes the social be regarded transcendent and trans historical constituted by some unchanging essence Literature private activity and women are the private life men literature universal and women are the mysteriously produced women too are irrational same literature literature both divinely inspired and useless activity women are goddesses whores both literature and women are potentially danger ous and following Plato excluded from the male republic These arguments reinforce the patriarchal association male with rational others
be
women because
by
literature
the their literature at
analogies
of
as
and female with instinctual . Despite these producers same time disadvantaged
of are
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
24
.
is
,
of
as
as
So
exclusion from the privileged spaces supposedly occupied the canonical author well the academic hierarchy are predomin antly male while the average student English literature largely
)
,
to
to a
led
,
as in
,
of
a
Kristeva and other French feminists This marked slide into idealist premises and reinforced the patriarchal asscociations
Coward
back
. -
or
of
,
of
as
,
.
,
it
of
.
of
up
of in
ian
-
to
(
of
.
,
of
patri the private the central philosophical and political premises archal and idealist thought are laid bare ideology and literature then naturally became cent The questions ral feminist theory and politics which converged with post Althusser developments Marxism and psychoanalysis seize upon expose and invert some these assumptions The resultant debates opened questions subjectivity and the intersection the individual and the social However among some feminists also certain reduc whereby women were credited with conventionally unrecog tionism knowing such nised forms intuition and female revolution con sequently became largely semiotic private and pre social the work
the other Just
.
Britain
's of
.
on as
the one hand and the status women Anglicists and Orientalists reinforced the
,
-
pre colonial India on
in
earlier
in
to
If
, .'
of
knowledge and behaviour women with some types neither women nor literature are universal categories their seem ingly global alignment needs be historicised Indian women educa tion under the Raj was crucially involved with their status and schooling
,
in
-
re
At
.
an
in
of
,
of
notion British cultural superiority and colonial and Indian educationalists concurred their ideas about the nature Literature certain shared assumptions about women and their education made English Literature ideal choice for their schooling both otherwise divergent situations shaped patriarchal the same time the Empire
is
of
's
of
a
it
,
to
of
:
,
in
's
. is
.
in
to
of
of
so
,
as
,
of
.
in
relations both countries But such manoeuvres also included the racist domination British men and women over Indians and class con English tradictions within either country well the feminisation complex intersections patriarchal and Studies India points colonial histories although Women education crucial constitutes later stage the imperial project Diane Barthel analysis the case Ghana pertinent
,
.
or
as
of in
to
of
as
a
to
,
of In
the first stage education males was seen critical the political control the colony and the ideological goals the association assimilation The educated male elite would serve key role the colonial economy functioning privileged buffer between the white administrators and the mass African
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH STUDIES people . But by educating this male elite in the first stage , the colonists were laying the groundwork for the second stage , when a female elite would be educated to correct the resulting social disequilibrium and, more broadly , to solidify colonial control by transmitting knowledge and appreciation of Western cultural forms to their children
. ( p. 153 )
on
, .i
' e.
, ‘
).
at
20
's
by
in
(
, p .
for
In India , higher education provided by the British government was upper initially restricted to potential recruits the administration educating Indian class men Liddle and Joshi British efforts women were begun early the nineteenth century but were under learning and restric mined social conservatism regarding women
and contact with men this itself cannot be suggest life British accounts tended many learning Over centuries the exclusion women from had evolved conjunction with increasing caste orthodoxies with rather unevenly the tightening caste and class barriers brahmins had increased the longer allowed exclusiveness education Women were attend the democratic assemblies and high caste women were withdrawn from their previous occupations education and the arts Liddle and Joshi But course such traditions were contested not simply imposed inforcing Indian and British patriarchal attitudes were mutually On the one hand Indian oppression women was constantly used justify Empire and the British become the self proclaimed liberators
;
.
to
to
, '(
of
,
on
-
to
to
of
by.
re -
of
, p . . 63 ).
in
-
.
, ..
no
'
,
of of )
(
in
to
the Indian way
', of as
;
their movements
of
tions
attributed
in
as
in
for
till
by
a
in
;
or
of
In
.
,
at
is
of
the
.
of
to
of
,
of
;
native women the other Indian men had time and again used protection from foreign males the idea increase confinement complicity between British and indigenous women One example patriarchies matriliny the suppression areas such Malabar puberty women married men for three days only and Kerala where subsequently entered into free sambandhan relationships with visiting husbands the nineteenth century the brahmins decreed that these husbands could not be dismissed without the permission the entire village clan 1868 the British legislated that man provide his
's
).
-
28 9
is
be
.
to
her husband The passive Hindu woman pre feminine behaviour which can
of
a
is
of
the Hindu woman simultaneously model
ness
by
.
as
of
-
's
.
of
a
of
of
(
, 99 .
In
a
.
,
wife and children whereas then property was inherited his sister children 1896 the Madras Marriage Act made the sambandhan relation monogamous marriage Liddle and Joshi ship Kum Kum Sangari has traced some the complex manoeuvres that accompanied the development paternalistic and feudal colonial government between 1770 and 1830 The British selected aspects pre colonial past India the basis for their own rule The antiquity continuity evoking the submissive and native customs stressed
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
26
for the British woman and a signifier of the meekness and governability of the Indian people . But the stereotype of the libidinous Eastern woman also hovers on the margins , and justifies the need to govern her (and by implication also the Indian male ) . Sangari also links the self-projection of the British state as a benevolent patriarchy to the emergent familial norm in Britain itself ('What makes a text literary ') .10 scribed
Mies
has also shown how
the submissiveness of Burmese women to own men was perceived by the British as essential to smooth colonial government ( quoted Rughani , p . 19 ) . After the 1857 war for Indian independence , when education , lan guage and literature were stepped up as (despite Macaulay )more subtle their
and more effective methods of control, women ' s education became a priority for the Raj ." A crucial point was the arrival of women miss ionaries from England in the middle of the century , when as many as thirty per cent of women over twenty were single , and defined as ‘redun
dant ' since women weremeant to be wives and mothers . These women posed a problem in a way that poorer single women who became domestic servants did not: the latter were seen to fulfil both essentials of women 's being: they are supported by, and they minister to , men ' (Forbes , p . WS 3 ). So the shipping of women as missionaries to India served a dual purpose : the problem faced by male British educationists they began penetrate was overcomeas to the seclusion of Indian women and to educate / civilise them , and ‘ redundant ( i. e potentially subversive ) women were removed from the home country . Forbes reminds us that 'women missionaries of the period were not only the helpmates of the imperialists but were themselves imperialists re -enacting the drama of
as
(
is
of
').
to
of
on
based
prepare women better companions and mothers see Arya Samaj equal education The idea not necessarily equal intelligence and may serve only the premise rein
'
,
Kishwar
to
aim
in
its
the coloniser and the colonised within the confines of the zenana '. Simultaneously with British education , Indian reformist groups also began indigenous schooling , which was radical in that it asserted the cultural independence and progressivism of Indian traditions , but not
Sir
'. ,
,
to
of
‘,
for
.
to
on
In
.
force the gender differentiation established elsewhere nationalist attitudes women we may trace similarities with humanist writings female education during the English Renaissance Jayawardena points out that Indian nationalists modernity meant educated women uphold the system but educated the nuclear patriarchal family
).
24
, .p
,
all
'(
by
be
to
is
's
to
's
be
's
so
:‘ A
fors
'
Thomas More letter his children tutor explained that education prepared men public employment and women for maternal and wifely service woman wit cultivated the more diligently industry Warnicke that nature defect may redressed
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH STUDIES In any case English
language remained central to much indigenous ironical that even though the Arya Samaj movement was initiated with the idea of propagating Vedic learning , none of leaders English Kishwar Arya Samaj could escape the stranglehold WS both types education were consonant with patriarchal and learning during colonial premises However the case women
:' it
is
.
p
',
',
'(
's
,
as in
of
of
.
).
So
17
of
its
schooling
of ,
,
of
(
of ).
3
's
,
,
the Renaissance both their methods and the effects generated were complicated because they also opened out spaces for women resis tance see chapter The association female and irrational literature and mysterious
.
are
it
its
in
'
67
.pp
p
a
,
In
).
-9
of
hunting Yet both
,
see Baldick India education and are increasingly required qualifications for sucessful husband
(
job
marriage market
even
an
's
',
(
a
the
);
, .
at
a
as
it
in
of
.
to to
justify the exclusion women from some types limit their professional and productive activity Today also ties with the increasing technocratic bias education The psychologist Burt categorised literature subject that girls good history became The English Studies Group 253 very early subject women additional accomplishment preparing them for
has been used knowledge and
If
:'
.. .
too
of
so
of
,
,
is a
, , ',
‘
At
.
-
,
'
is a
, ,
is
to
).
,
53 -4
of
a
,
.
be
,
(B
'
at
pp
.. .
is
of
a
.
these must maintain subordinate female status highly educated proud she will she will have ideas lumberg English literature like her own and Dwaraki education convent ensures culture and status and also seen equip women for the perfect female occupation which natural extension their nurturing and mothering role besides being genteel not too time consuming and not too highly paid the same time there relative exclusion women from male strongholds science engineering and management that gender hierarchies are repro
girl
,
to a
an
are
,
's
on
In
the
of
.
,
-
,
.
to
is
to
.
in
duced the job market the early debates women education there much resistance their studying sciences but not single one preferred literature Matrimonial advertisements index brides and they abound with specific requests for convent educated girls for teachers and even directly for English literature graduates The
-
,
in
to
,
of
of
to
of
.12
–
‘
'
a
English
of
capacity literature thus has instruct women roles the guardian culture the decorous home maker and the subsidiary idiary earner Recently the Government India proposed overhaul higher edu earnetent choice variety
or
its
,
of
despite
or
‘
's
'
,
).
22
,
of
(
'
or
.
's
to
to
'
in
on
of
;
its
India rhetoric about the advancement women draft Padvancemen policy document The Challenge Education carries no separate section perspective women education Yet subjects like morals values keeping politics off the campus have high priority education sections devoted them The Times India March 1986 The efforts maintain patriarchal attitudes towards women work education and cation
or
.
are
. ')
'
(
its
to
'
seal off also
to
marriage , and to keep education ‘ apolitical , interwoven history politics the text and claims value from legitimise existing gender relations
is To
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
28
be
The establishment to
, by51
in
in
(
,
, 3
-
of
,
to
of
in
,
in
A
.
of
is
a
,
far
.
,
,
be
a
,
.
).
22
,
-
of 84
to
-
,
;
in
.
at
is
in
to
in
of
the English studies empire India needs indicated spell out what order stake The education system dramatically expanded and grew after the British left 1947 whereas 1950 there were only twenty seven universities with 362 000 students 1983 the figures had swelled 140 and 360 000 respectively The corresponding primary Times India March 1986 The increase secondary and school education was even more dramatic This means very small section that today more than the elite has access higher education and students may drawn from lower middle class trading and farming backgrounds Even though the majority people are more alienated from British culture than was the case during the Raj this expansion has meant huge increase the absolute numbers point studying English literature case Delhi University every The vastness
.
,
at
one whose 140 000 odd students must study English literature for least one year during their undergraduation There are over 700 lecturers
neo colonial
free
-
not
of
out that this edifice
:
points
is
.
in
the subject Sunder Rajan control
,
-
,
,
by
)
these institutions
. (p .
created
administered by these institu defined the very material
is
in
,
by
conditions
is
,
,
,
studies seminars and workshops that literary criticism India
Not surprisingly
.
tions
31
advanced
, of
.
a
as
of
(
).
-
of
in
To a
very large extent English language and literary studies India function under the aegis two quasi governmental foreign agencies the British Council and the USIS United States Information Service These organisations perceive English and American literatures the cultural products their respective countries and promote them accordingly There exists therefore well estab funding grants patronage publications libraries centres for lished system
of
is
to
.
in
,
,
obvious
:
is
dominant Western criticisms critics institutions define the critical debates India The dependence Third World intelligentsia upon First World institutions clearly related the lack The result
-
,
-5
;
in
pp
.
is
,
,
to (
In
').
of
.
is
of
a
ern
', ,
of
funds and poor research facilities and working conditions our countries and hasbeen discussed elsewhere Said Orientalism 323 English studies the west Altbach Servitude the Mind relation hegemony particularly pernicious given that imperialism hardly thing the past Macaulay had articulated the common sense assump
IMPERIALISM
, PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH
STUDIES
-
a
to
';
',
is
'
in
-
of
his
in
Heof
);
3
are
is
in
to
of
the
,
' ' A '
of
'(
p
, .
is
.
are
.
'
,
'
of
of
Mac (
-
ofof
a
Rani
of
in
);
to
:'
a
into
14
.
)
'
a
.
p
',
,
a
,
in
13
.
', ' a
(p
‘
'
‘a
an
aa
isis
this
into
' ' e
writing true history which will fuse diverse elements integrated whole single consistent theme his case portray the transformation theory this modernisation India on theory quotedPination Spivak under the West into modernin nation nation state Rani moWest moder Macaulay day versions state Sirmur 260 Modern acaulay are abundant He versions good European literature single shelf had said that worth the whole native literature India and Arabia Bhatt and Aggarwal 1982 chief level examiner for the University London pro possible exception nounced that the fact remains that with Naipaul there nothing African and Caribbean literature match quality those works which normally found within the substantive
of
rogative
‘
'
as
-i
re
of
.''
,
of
'
of
any colonial regarding the civilisation tions other peoples and spirit therefore the statements informs even some post Raj revalu d espite example changes ations For the Indian scene requiring nterpretation quick the facts Percival Spear censure Indian historians efforts too compartmental he claims for himself the pre
of
body
).
, .p
.
to
on
.
in
to in
000
20 ,
at
So
be
I it
of
'(
at
texts set Advanced level Parker 197 English courses have already indicated the centrality the text may well that least students have read Shakespeare Delhi University annually These numbers are important order underline that no matter how marginalised English literature may seem
of
an
on
's
.
in
for
of
of
The figures also indicate the commercial aspects
English
Literature
:
of
.
‘
'
,
in
of
today the context technocratic expansion and emphasis more disciplines useful dominant readings are being deployed enorm ous scale English department hierarchies may control the careers many hundreds people each university
is
.
,
for
the
a
,
publishing firms example important here Their profits the role single anthology prescribed for compulsory reading are enorm from
of
at
,
.
It
.
set
is
of a
a
on
)
(
;
to
. 2 ).
'
(p
of
a
of
it
'
,
BA
in
.
absolutely
. ..
is
As
potential market English Rukun Advani says this level running rupees vast the stakes into several crores One Pass anthology prescription means sale around 200 000 rupees publication He points out that both money and offers may be used by some publishers secure contracts for printing anthologies from particular universities thus vicious circle ofmediocre up rigidity syllabi and conservative criticism and The emphasis the text has obvious pedagogical implications ous
.
is
to
it
).
, .p
well 76
cram
Baldick
a
'( '
-
of
a
in
crusade India soon found that his task was simply given number worn subject into well worn heads
to
's
,
in
, '.
' ;
of
as
a
of
ensures reverence for the canon and the passivity the reader When texts are studied discrete and autonomous their contextualisation precluded this turn makes more difficult discuss the relativity implementing Macaulay their truths Walter Raleigh cultural
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
30
, an
'
article titled Teaching Shakespeare in India ’ (written by an as the first article of a book evaluating Shakespeare in India ) suggests that a number of plays be read , even by the pass student , and read rapidly ' (Rollo , p . 3 ). In 1986 , says Sunder Rajan , such a policy of
In 1964
Englishman
'saturation
continued to be recommended (p . 30 ). It would be worth considering the ways in which such teaching practice interacted with hegemonic learning traditions prevalent earlier in India . The brahmin ical methodology of derivative scholarship , based on established texts and conducted through a high emphasis on retention , duplication and inviolate sanctity of the received canon (see Altbach , ' In search of Saras wati )was a fruitful ground on which to implant a teaching of the western
'
in
be
to
can
text that placed the student in an uncritical passivity . While English education (and the universalism of the English literary text ) sought to expand learning beyond the narrow circle permitted by brahminical learning , perhaps it suggested that other ways the two of
a
,
in
-
of
go
a
,
of
.
of
interacted ensure the passivity the learners and the status the received text Today very narrow token shuffling texts takes place within spectrum The Duchess Malfi may and Macbeth may come but the is
. S .
V
)
,
at
do
all ,
.
or
or
in
honours BA course Delhi Of course women writers outside George Eliot Emily Brontë Austen not figure and feminism
of
in
-
is
,
–
(
,
,
.
of
broadly the qualify greats remains undisturbed Englishness canon ing criterion and the exceptions are those that this orthodoxy would permit mainly American writers Hemingway Miller and Naipaul who the only non white author included the English
,
by
(
'
'
of
of
or
a
,
. on
is
still officially frowned upon syllabus revision programme Sunder From her own experiences suitability Rajan realised that rather than any notions excellence immense and complex network forces determine which usually
.
is
of
(
A
of
-
a
, ,
.
'
of
“
up
in
) of of
.
)
saturation
'
and the
,
course revisions Translations are and large ruled out students with English recommended She con undergraduate colleges for whose students the cludes that teachers courses are intended have little more than recommendatory powers the selection texts massive hierarchical edifice consisting the university post graduate English department committee courses
means block
At
's 's
.
879
,
,
,
,
its
in
).
30
.
of
'(
.p
,
a
to
Of
cil
exists
of
senior teachers the Faculty Arts and the Academic Coun syllabus revision authorize course there have been shifts what English literature popularly prestige signifies and serious inroads into one time Shakespeare plays monopolised university school and elite urban theatre Kendal company Shakespeariana gave performances between June 1953 and
made
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH STUDIES
,
.
in
to
).
p
, ; .
it
the
'(
a
At
'
be
classes and semi-urban masses . The company wound up as they language found that English was no longer used India plays English everything one time meant unless you could quote Shakespeare you would not get job Kendal 161 Today students
middle
the highest marks school would rather opt mong the non history science subjects economics commerce These subjects ensure wider career options and are now more useful while taking civil service examinations Obviously the requirements for ruling India have changed since the Raj The alignment women with literature thereby pronounced becomes more Education policy India seems going the way Thatcher Britain with impending cuts tighter con trols retrenchment and the ideology functionalism which used hit out subjects such literature the context neo colonialism perpetuates the theory development according imperialism which that Third World countries should produce rather than think English departments ironically reinforces that division The politics asserting the while the ivory tower superiority literature English language teaching has ensured centrality But the literature wider readership and academic circulation than would otherwise
.
or
,
to
, '. , ,
is
-
of
to
'
.
it
of
it a
to
of
-
of
of
all
be
to
,
,
In
is
it
of
.
as
at
,
of
's
of
.
in
!
of
.
,
)
for
(a
in
with
,
'
.
for
'
a
of
.
power during Independence the Indian have During the transfer bourgeoisie found the continued use European language advantage ous social and political control They could maintain their own privileged position through their monopoly over the colonial language
'
on
'a
a
in
is
,
of
of
it ."
on
,
in
to a
if
:
is
!
to
of , / , it
-
its s
,
–
at
of
16
.
central
an
'
-
,
as a
to
is
'
of
a
(
, .p 6 ).
Whittey English was not just window the world but remained central signifier social difference although the difference itself shifted from one race that class and tied both with the current brain drain and internal cultural imperialism Because general education English Literature well entrenched continues learning during recent debates be posited measure the pass course syllabus for example was argued that student could graduate The not comprehend Shakespeare he did not deserve English status studies and satellite activities therefore deeply contradictory declining marginalised yet still once and stable
Seizing the book of
in
to
an
in a a
',
,
a
for
,
‘
‘a
is
of
.
'o
-
can
as
There are passionately held differences the ways which the post colonial subject deal with the historical burden the alien tongue The Kenyan writer Ngugi Wa Thiong points out that since language foreign language ensured carrier culture education that learning colonial child became cerebral activity and not
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
has kept her him
,
'
whoring after
. 's ,
-
/ s
,
he
or
to
be
,
by
'
a
).
32 -3
.
of
a
it
),
6
).
in
,
.. .
'
'
( pp
'
for
'
to
(
, .p
’;
a
of
's
the people
’
language
.
not the
of
it
33 )
, .p
But David Dabydeen
Guyana quotes James Baldwin
from
to
,
(
44
Socialist
New
no
;
national politics and commerce
is
is
of
;
is
‘a
in
(
'
's
bastards
in
English
'
‘ /
all
Macaulay
67 )
Gods Victor Anant quoted Parthasarathy Thiong European concludes that black African writer publishing colluding with the covert imperialism that still operates the language European language that his own country bourgeoisie and inter
we are
'o ,
which words
17
,
,
. 13 ,
pp
the
to a
by
emotionally felt experience ' (Decolonizing Mind The resul tant schisms have also been indicated Paulo Friere who noted that duality colonised intellectuals were condemned their inner they are simultaneously themselves and the oppressor most being Athough we whose consciousness they have internalised simplification need resist the third world intellectual into person undifferentiated geographical historical sexual positioning wrong suggest that see chapter would not lives with this Othello like split consciousness the wedge being the alien language
the
con
or
,
of
's
is
in
'. ‘: I
of
my experi any language that will bear the weight argues English ence He that black African notthewhite man English and that two three centuries use have made the language indigen will write
trary
33
is
be
to
in
is
,
; ,
.
.
.
an
an
for
of
Do in
an
to
of
up
-
of
of
to
of
,
in a
is is
It
be
.
to
'
as a
to
be
'
no
it
to
yet
it
In
of
, and
of
).
, no . 44 , .p to
(
, is
-
so
.
,
of 's ,
,
of
to
ous the African people see New Socialist The relationship Africans Afro Americans and Indians the English language not universally identical and there correct attitude the col deny the elitist connota oniser language India would hard just English foreign language would tions and see ignore the history the last two centuries The language question multilingual multinational multiethnic state extremely complicated regional chavia and intersects with the issue chauvinism for example many regions English preferedicegional against Hindi because resentment prefered the political and culth cultural domination the Hindi speaking belt All these issues are tied with the question alternative pedagogy English English literature seems me that creative writing distinguished from teaching English literature should cultural any foreign literature cannot break differences imply that the teaching
of
of
of
be
a
In
?
in
for
,
is
,
;
the study other literatures the notion the inviolate transcenden kept free text which should contextual contamination may be
tal
in
in
.
is
to
,
of
's
to
is
:
it
to
,
?
is
the reverence alien culture What alien culture recent seminar Ruth Vanita pointed out that alienation applies not just Kanthapura the English literary text difficult teach Raja Rao Delhi because students there are ignorant and dismissive South Indian culture The question not limited what language used English studies intersect with orthodoxies the ideologies dominant from
,
IMPERIALISM
PATRIARCHY
, ENGLISH
STUDIES
33
in
it
to
a
.
re -
to is
, ‘
'
it
It
to all
found in departments of Hindi, Bengali or other literatures as well. It is clear that alternative pedagogy will have to question not only the criter ion of Englishness that dominates our curricula , but also the boundaries between literatures and other disciplines : we need to teach not only different literatures but literatures differently may be argued that interpret the Western text way that simply makes more meaningful entrench further into our
.
of
to
,
is
.
it
a
,
for
-
of
appro education and that we need throw out the book instead priating complicated many positions may The debate and our only may distinguish specific strategic be We need between situations example between politically committed theatre and alternative
,
it is
, ,
.
is
in
Or
the space
few
criticism
of ( a
,
,
Western
these ways
is ,
being quietly subverted
in
that the text
be
imagine
is
But
as to ?
."
condensations
all in
)
of
,
' '-
mutilated pages
to
as
becoming redundant key books which offer
on
is
increasingly which the teacher and the class room experience locally produced rely students prefer summaries translations and simplified often
in
ways
.
do
,
in
.
:
a
,
far of
.
to
of
in
English
to In
arguable that urban India the first case limited elite circles and has not absorbed the dynamic influences indigenous traditions which have oflate fruitfully lent themselves alternative theatre practices But given the enormity English studies within academic institutions radical intervention more urgent and imperative This again can take various forms for example one could locate the possible subversion latent the ways that Indian students not comprehend English literature the theatre
is in
academic practice
to
of
a
'.
he
/
s
As
to
;
by
ori
The Tempest
an
'
a
-
,
in
of
as
,
re -
of
of , a
'
their
,
.
in
as
.
expressive
's '
or
people
Alternatively they may
their
of
to
suit contexts different from
be
in
,
written
the African and Caribbean appropriations
adopted alien culture own reality Theodorakis used Neruda Canto General statement resistance against dictatorship interpretation Greece Or else appropriation may involve simul taneous examination their meaning more than one culture and
(
see chapter
re -
deliberately
ginal ones
as as 6 )
be
can
of
.
,
to
en
.
,
to
,
ifs /
. ..
,
:'
on
I
-
a
of
,
.
at
are
,
we know
for its
hegemonic institutionalised deployment jobs education and many hours classroom con somewhat naive tact still stake One script school leaving examination that Fagin was saw contained the following remarks Oliver Twist sweet old lady One night before Oliver was born his mother died The student failed and he had obliquely resisted what was supposed learn the result was hardly revolutionary teachers who are not about resign our jobs masse we have look for other alternatives rather than romanticising subaltern incomprehension The appropriation literature itself can take different forms texts even
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA than one history
more
.
, of .
of
,
in
to
,
be
as
far
It is in this sense that I approach Renaissance drama, which constitutes the privileged core of the canon ofmaster texts of English literature . In terms of language it is a body of literature removed from Indian may imposed texts students and therefore seen the most alien question this presence While we may continue the absence
of
being removed from existing curricula likelihood explore the possibility identifying ways which the texts interact with the students own reality Women who have been seen the centre the dominant deployment literature will also my emphasise that interact here does not mean be focus need expanding the universal applicability the text The colonial and post cope with alienation suppressing colonial reader has been forced since taken the very index his her inferiority Thus point simultaneously Othello colour which identification for point such reader and alienation from dominant readings that can
,
. of his ‘
of
a
of
.
/
of
is be
to
a
a
's
,
is
it
it,
to
by
.
of
'
,
of
.
of
.
I
to
at
be
to
'
in
of
it
any immediate
we can
,
,
,
).
2
'
's
,
to
'
an
is
to
as
.
a
to
'
if
a
,
.
is
to
see
.
In
to
to
or
,
the
or be
.
,
,
, to
be
–
or
as
of
on
a
(
‘
as
of ;
an is
in
).
5
of to
as
,
act
of
to
a
it
to
).
of
an
's
, .
(p
phrase
47
from John Berger When Cleopatra herself trans Antony forms into Roman wife we are told understand process oftragic compromise romantic sublimation rather than pathetic attempt erase the contradictions her existence see chap explained ter Or the violence against women Jacobean drama women who themselves experience daily violence indication spiritual chaos the transgressive woman here becomes reflection degenerate society and indication The female reader potentially not actually rebellious silenced along with the literary creation Appropriation here does not question only institutionalised readings but the text well which may seen contribute the marginali disorderly woman Cleopatra sation Othello order why they focus this recover these marginalised voices a
adopt
an
of ,
'
in
to
to
(
'
in
is
's
in
blackness favour universal passion jealousy the Indian classroom Masculine jealousy and female passivity become natural human conditions Again see chapter history and dominant criticism works efface the subaltern woman experience persuade her adopt white male positioning order For example Indian woman who made see Cleopatra the stereotype object the Oriental seductress turns herself into erase Othello suppressed
in
's
in
,
is
,
I
it
it
; .
in
in
is
,
,
be
-
a
of
cannot recovered series barricades erected around the literary negotiated and these include the way text must which the reader encounter with the book lifted from the historical geographical and gendered spaces only one strategy possible which occurs This some specific classroom situations will hope problematise both dominant readings and feminist reductionism Western discussions
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH STUDIES
of female
oppression and resistance
in
, and
on racial difference in the texts
in
35
Renaissance drama by drawing the readerships of the texts .
Notes 1
I am indebted to Rajeswari Sunder Rajan 's ‘After Orientalism ', Gauri Viswanathan 's “The beginnings of English literary studies in British India ’, chapter three of Chris Baldick s The SocialMission, and the papers presented at a seminar , ' The study of English literature
'
99 )
of
.
at
)
as a
',
.
;
TLS , , 4 - on 10 11
of
as
by
3
.
(
,
to at
.
'
(p
western cultural practices Butler was delivering the Krishna Memorial lecture Miranda House Uni Delhi December 1987 this was almost identical her article Revising the canon December 1987 which was earlier presented lecture Cam bridge Movements that challenged brahminical domination and caste traditions also revolted V
our understanding
Marilyn versity
'
2
on
its
in India : ideology and practice ', held at Miranda House , University of Delhi , in April 1988. All of these have marked out a crucial area of inquiry . I was pleased to find that Thomas Cartelli 's, ' Prospero in Africa ', acknowledges that it was the product of a deepening involvement in the study of postcolonial literature and clarifying impact
,
,
( .pp
51 70 )
of
;
28 50 )
( pp
.
tional traditions was undermined
Thapar both suggest that Aryan and Liddle and Joshi Romila speaking peoples had suppressed the indigeneous Dravidian and tribal peoples the racially inferior and whose own traditions subcontinent who had been relegated
,
,
,
as
of
.
4
“
,
in
63 )
, .p
' . (T
an
in
against educational orthodoxy using languages other than Sanskrit such Prakriti Magadhi and Jaina teaching was first preserved Pali and Shauraseni Buddha taught hapar oral tradition thus the authority Sanskrit and dominant educa
I
,
of
a
to
of .
,
of
).
(
,
, p to .
a
,
to
is .
's
A
M
.
E
,
in
5
'It
of
was under the influence Darwin that Fellow the London Anthropological Society argued 1864 that the Chinese and Indians were superior the Africans being more notable for docility intelligence and industry Moorhouse 175 Passage India for example the spirituality and emotionality Forster
In
6
far
So
.
,
, I
am
in
to of a a
is
by
.
so
a
of
including that matrilinear organisation had been enclosed gradually within patriarc hal and highly stratified society This view has been generally accepted but have Nayanjot Lahiri that recent archeological work been informed challenging the conquest notion the strict sense without attributing patriarchal and racist Aryan conquest notions here confining myself the ideological results conflict with racial sexual and regional underpinnings
in
is
,
as
of
.
are
a
.
,
to
directly interwoven with their immaturity irrationality and incapacity Indians deal with practical matters Their government with the less likeable but rational English then widely taught regrettable necessity Incidentally this book India and becomes
of
'
as
a
by
,
in
-
,
.
of
to
to
In
the British had been unyielding and had not gradually introduced parliamentary institutions into India during the last forty years British rule the nationalist move revolutionary form ment must have organised itself must have become contemporary nationalist junta like Kuomintang China more probably (
a
; it ,
in
,
or
Strachey quoted Lawrence
Just plain common
',
party
.
67 , ) a
communist
the nationalist movement itself consolidated
its
,
On the other hand the leadership
of
.
',
p
conditions sense
,
,
in in a
of
If
7
.
,
as
examination questions concentrated around the representations the Hindus soul the Muslims heart and the British head while the political meaning these remains unexamined strong and deter the transition from the Raj Indian self government despite mined opposition the British radicalism was kept check both British strategy and the leadership the nationalist movement On the one hand
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA character by deflecting radical challenges . The idea of anon - violent struggle was a brilliant strategy on the part of Gandhi , not the least because it also guarded against more militant and revolutionary alternatives . No doubt there were conflicting elements even here , since Gandhian politics simultaneously mobilised large sections of the people , including women , into action . Even so , the continuity of certain hegemonic attitudes was insured : for example , women were drawn out of the home, but under a patriarchal leadership and on nationalistnot feminist platforms . For a fuller
bourgeois
discussion of this see Kumari Jaywardena ' s Feminism andNationalism. only are English departments the most resistant to syllabi changes , or democratic functioning , but they have largely isolated themselves from teachers ' politics . A recent point overwhelming majority India teacher strike case Delhi Univer sity English department teachers those not employed the colleges and involved only post raduate teaching refused join They stressed their loyalty department
‘
to
of
.
to
)
-g
in
's
.e .
by
of
An
.
is a
's
all -
(i in
Not
8
or
all
'
as a
of
.
,
,
be
's
on
.
,
',
all -
in
to
rather than those the Delhi University Teachers Association the India organisation Even when 230 000 teachers universities and colleges over impending policies whereby teachers India were strike against the government bureaucratically monitored and their recruitment promotion and evaluation would service conditions would worsen they did not stop teaching Arguments stressing the decisions
to
to
.
in
,
no
of
's
a
,
teaching difference between teachers and industrial workers the morality noble profession above pecuniary interests and teacher moral obligation students teaching were made justification One also teach matter what the conditions at
,
a
to a
-
to
',
p .
',
on
at '
,
' '
'
).
1
,
, .p
22 ;
.
', as p it . 75 ;
;
(
in
's
to
'
,
P . am 60 ;
9
, .p
'
in
participation teachers politics See Alison Jaggar 373 Rosalind Coward Ann Rosalind Jones Julia Kristeva Michele Barrett Ideology Stuart Hall Recent developments 162. referring Sangari paper was delivered the Miranda House seminar English India see note above Pratibha Parmar points out that even today discus sions of the hardships of Asian women can provide further fodder for the liberal racist
I
10
,
to
of
by
.
,
,
by
.
If
heard these through the government propaganda machinery one had any doubts about the politics bred institutionalised English studies they were set rest during question this period On the other hand especially among younger college teachers ing greater inter dis the critical practice taught this orthodoxy has led not only ciplinary research and commitment alternative pedagogy but also more active
to
.
,
on
.
, ' It is
to
of -
of
it
);
to
;
it
in
'
,
';
is
; of
a
(
.
).
(p
all
of
Asian men beingmore sexist than white men too easily reinforce ideas and can especially relevant 252 The case sati this connection has been dicussed elsewhere see Mani Spivak Rani Liddle and Joshi we only need recall that provided major moral justification for continued British rule The British consulted brahmins while formulating legislations sati thus giving official sanction the right represent the diverse and enormously varied customs and this high caste group significant that sati traditions the Indian people As Liddle and Joshi point out
,
,
to
'
'
as
as
‘
'
.
extended
.
Such manouvres
for
am
tendencies
in
's
)
,
of
)' (
BA (
3,
:
(
‘
is
-
.. , .
Following
Gramsci
,
'.
-
sense
defines
not have
theory underlying
or
does
a
.
knowledge
It
as
,
unified body
not
he
on
'
-
'
essay Just plain common
contradictory
of
as
,
,
's of ,
constituting
a
sense
).
,
Errol Lawrence
common
-
in
I
13
9
.. , .
12
.
's
to
indebted Geraldine Forbes article facts about women education cited these paragraphs typical French diplomat Indian origin The following matrimonial advertisement visiting India this December draws monthly 500 dollars seeks marriage with bride god fearing pretty fair slim Tamil speaking literature The Times India Bom bay November 1986 use the notion common sense here and subsequently drawing the discussion
I
11
's
as
sified and calcified existing patriarchal women economic life well
-
of
30 ).
'
.
(p
a
a
of
was practice the higher castes with whom the British had made alliances whereas matriliny was form family structure which both British and patriarchal high castes found immoral Hence British non interference well their reforms inten
IMPERIALISM , PATRIARCHY , ENGLISH STUDIES beneath it , but is perhaps best seen as a ' storehouse of knowledge ' which has been gathered together , historically , through struggle . . . in common -sense
'hidden
terms , historically and culturally specific images of femininity and masculinity are presented as 'natural ' attributes of females and males . Whilst we should not forget that these definitions are contested , we must also remember that they are embodied
)
-49 50
.(
-
character
.pp
granted
as
is
.pp
's
'.
of
to
's
).
,
'
. ,
(p for
did
'
to
in , a i.e .
). It is a
'
of
because
22
America
all
of
to a
of
:
to
of
all
a
States
a of
the United The
English
in
,
in
ment
to
a
' of
.
It
.
(
et al ., p
is
in
).
85 -6
(
'
‘a
of
ring British empire has truth Today English spoken by roughly seventy one million people India more than multilingual the number Britain McCrum 322 crucial link language country with fifteen recognised languages and over 300 dialects has aquired the being passport status the important government posts controlling the economy and ensures new export labour the west according recent news Technology finds employ paper report one the Indian Institute three students in
15
' taken-
Spear finds those Indians who supported English education for glossy India Britannica anxious 126 Similarly Geoffrey Moorhouse emphasise what distance itself from the conventional imperialist stance but also Empire India Moorhouse also smugly comments that Roy praise the
Not surprisingly ward ooking -l
14
sense ideologies their
for
within the dominant institutional order and are inscribed within the social relations ofeveryday life . This ‘massive presence 'has the effect on the onehand of disciplining the subordinate classes in practice and on the other hand of giving these common
our qualified
professionals
speak
it is of
.
The
,
Wandering is
still this influence and the general in
(
a film,
to
or
in , in a
,
see
of
, in
– ) . in of In
in
little halls and stages small towns dotted across the land many ways subtle oblique and hard Company document visible the casual phrase thrown Hindi Tamil equation highbrow with English literature was recently told
Pym in
'
sit
of
of
'
to of
' .
).
of
,
(
,
16
'
Times India March 1986 high culture over time Shakespeariana was downward filtration There has also been patronised by the local ruler whose order that they down and tell sad stories kings speaks the death the cultural schism the upper classes India But important remember that the players survived because their popular performances
” to
of
at a
a
on
to
a
his “ to
'
‘
',
is a a
‘ .' It
.
:
on a
of
of
',
.
's
in
"
,
of
as an
to
back the colourfully translated Hindi version the text and memorize the proper answers from the same source thus making both teacher and text redundant appropriation along the lines article Bhabha Anund Meseh
.. . "
by.
go ',
')
,
('
,
.
? '
in
or of in
,
of
's
'
, /
In
to a
dangerous spot mountain road the way famous shrine the Himalayas reads When shall we three meet again thunder lightning rain Sunder Rajan invokes Homi Bhabha analysis the ambivalence subaltern response Signs colonial authority where mimicry and camouflage also mark subversion taken for wonders She suggests that we should see the responses of Indian students who confronted the double authority the book itself and the English teacher to
17
to
his
.
'
, :
be "
? '
,
is
of
.'
to
in
"
I
joke about famous villain the Hindi screen he asks henchmen administer Hamlet poison the they ask him poison that will convert hero What that boss be replies the boss Although only joke not this captures the survival the particularly unexpected places someone also told me that traffic hoarding text
Sexuality and racial difference Men
's power )
(
pp
,
as
in
('
of
,
a
is
-
of
an
-
on
in
on
,
its
In the context of female Indian readers the violence repeatedly com mitted the female body Renaissance and especially Jacobean urgent contemporaneity that challenges not only tragedy takes the self enclosed and self referential readings traditional criticism but simplistic First World feminism which danger Spivak also becoming complicit with imperialism points out Imperialism and
is
,
in
in
an
,
are
is
(
,
in
:
to
of
.
be
I
,
in
is
is
It
).
-6
.
',
sexual difference 225 true that the similarity between vio lence the plays and that which directed against women India important factor startling and assessing how these shall suggest plays can received Even the most sober and conservative estimates acknowledge the following wives the latter would have mur dowry dered for Delhi alone the reported figure two such deaths
, )
-
( by
'( ,
-
;
-
of
,
,
a
.
in
it .
to
of
to
to
is
of a
on
are
in
,
169
, of
);
its
in
(
is
,
-
.
of
to
an
as
of
of
,
that we need
to
this context too
,
in
is
It
.
a
,
its
in
be
,
As
of
a
,
on
of
Western accounts the pitiable condition non European history which inevitably went suggest the barbarity and primitivism such societies and the superiority Western civilisation Indian feminists have stressed however the increasing oppression against women must analysed the context modern Indian society contemporary contradictions not and unfortunate remnant feudal past women
of
history
an
on
to
is
)
(
as
)
p
, .
,
( )
,
,
of
)
'
of
poor and dalit lower caste daily rapes and sexual exploitation women and nurses office workers domestic servants landlords employers and policemen are part their daily lives Kishwar and Vanita 255 and are daily escalating age old and high tech methods coexist female infanticide continues and intrauterine chromosomal examination amniocentesis used abort female foetuses unprecedented scale see Miller the practice widow immolation vigorously defended sporadic revival years after being sati officially abolished and the countryside women are still harassed and even killed the grounds that they witches These are but few examples constantly vulner situation where the average woman patriarchal and class violence and the ideologies attaching able While recounting such facts we need always bear mind the long
see how
institutionalised
SEXUALITY
AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
(
-
)
's
.
of
all
)
a
Tis
readings of Renaissance tragedy work . In this body of drama , female transgression , both real and imagined , is repeatedly and ruthlessly oppressed by the family , state , church and judiciary : Desdemona (Othello ) , the Duchess of Malfi , Vittoria (The White Devil ), Bianca (Women Pity She Beware Women ), Annabella (' Whore and Beatrice Joanna The Changeling break the rules female conduct and are punished Early
'
it
,
as
-
' of
modern Europe witnessed the mass scale burning and torture women witches and Renaissance dramamakes clear that witch
of
of it
,
In
see chapter
as
,
is
(
,
at
.
of
,
;
–
of
.
,
to
of
a
-
of
the
.
a
is
to
of
category flexible enough cover any sort female deviance and rebellion spiritual chaos The much vaunted theory Jacobean drama implicitly connected female disobedience with degenerate social silencing any notions order and thus contributed disobedience which actual women readers may harbour the Indian classroom imposing universalised models commits another violence that human relationships upon subaltern readers paradoxically the points intersection with our lives are carefully excluded For example undergraduates Miranda House Delhi the name not insignificant
a
‘
.
in
-
an
: .' “ “
of
the
in
is
of
,
. ..
to
.
in
'
-
a
'
. ” . , .
,
"
. . .
I
,
. ..
. . .
in
).
'
.p
'(
'
,
” .. . . “
That
never
so
's
. I ' s ..
"
Revenge
thought
is
what felt Romara said dreamt that you would feel many ways the same You seemed be like my mother High and low literature thus together Lord Ravenscar said 261 reinforce common sense assumptions about woman love Lord Ravenscar
but never
I
land
of , “
-
to
of
.
,
In
are
as by
,
'
in
It
'.
in
,
of
‘
of '
in
's
'
's
,
'
)
6
of
–
who were dissatisfied with Desdemona silence her husband brutality we were told that we did not under stand her because we had never been love Othello thus became sort universal text love and love implied female passivity can be argued that many ways we were prepared for such readings by the popular Western romantic novels which flood the Indian market English speaking urban schoolgirls and which consumed vast quantities these novels the English Studies Group point out The subordination the woman the narrative ideological syntax home strikingly visible progressive extinction and children her powers They cite articulate speech instance from Barbara Cart
the face
,
an
.
's
),
is
,
By
.
of
as
a
.
by
on
of
it
to
,
of
of
-
(
by'
,
as
a
in
Many college students very uneasy space where India occupy romantic love free choice and sexual passion can exist ideals popular cinema where they become reconciled nurtured also common sense notions female obedience but where the probable reality their own marriages entirely different Desdemona defiance her father plays and encourages such ideal but she then betrays her submissiveness Discussions with my own students later located being murdered betrayal such the source our uneasiness
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE
40
DRAMA
Desdemona comes uncomfortably close to the battered wives that now crowd the Indian ( especially urban ) scene. A recent Indian feminist interpretation of several Shakespearean plays as spectacles ofwife -mur der can be seen as a response (though unacknowledged as such ) to the similarities ; it also implicitly addressses the discomfiture of readers told to accept rather than question Desdemona 's silencing and locates this within the daily experience of Indian women (see Vanita ,‘Men 's power , pp . 32 - 9) .
is both compelling and disturbing . But reading the play woman immediately problematises the notion ofmen s power and therefore also any comparisons we may make . I found it difficult to accept that 'Othello 's words could easily be interchanged with Claudio ' s' or that ‘universal harmony ' is at stake here (Vanita , p . 35 ) . Western feminist interpretations have also claimed that 'the play 's
Such
a view
'
as a black
,
in
and indeed
in is
,
in
a
to
an
of
of
in
If
, .p
in
(
is
of
80 , ).
are
,
,
' ,
in
of
A
the Indian situation
a
at
is
of
:'
of
of
,
.
in
as
is
If
).
, .p
(
'
of
to
a
theWestern classroom
well
.
as
resonance
is
its
central theme is love – and especially marital love , central conflict Neely men and women 212 Othello treated prototype universal man and his blackness not even hinted we preferred readings Othello like most men return the paradigms combination the forces love and hate which isolated impossibly pure states Desdemona and Iago Kernan we probe deeper into how male violence constructed the plays how ever our critique the silencing women literature and the exposure classroom can include other sorts violence and silences text like Othello can then be seen have more complex between
,
It is
.
an
a
of
of
).
I
66
.
by
'
(p
to
an
of
be
a
,
to
,
of of
in
of
to
as
,
Christopher Norris has pointed out that despite variations Othello part from Johnson Leavis can be seen certain domin Shakespeare studies ant cultural formation the history effort ideological containment attempt harness the unruly energies significance suggest that this the text stable order stable order could only invoked the simultaneous exclusion criticism
' as
'
a
).
black
,
a
men
and
a
sexuality
,
the rampant
as
,
'
‘
is
,
89
of
against
of
warning
),
p
' , )‘ .
)
as a
'
of (
of
. . .'
(
.p
,
,
In
of
all
to
'
(p
. 8 ). ? ,
in
'
'(
,
;
's
‘
,
(
‘a
,
gender and race therefore firstly recent feminist essay points out both Othello critics who sentimentalise Othello and Iago critics who emphasise Iago realism and honesty badly misunderstand and misrepresent the women the play Neely 212 and secondly largely ignored by critical Ruth Cowhig indicates the question race commentaries 1693 Thomas Rymer interpreted the play caution Maidens Quality how without their parents consent patriarchal they run away with Blackamoors This combined waywardness necessity view female and the obedience racist both
class
SEXUALITY AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE consciousness which prioritises the submission of women ' of Quality '. Nearly 300 years later , Leslie Fiedler , among the first in recent times to acknowledge the connections between the racial and sexual themes , argues that Othello moves from being a stranger whose colour estab
lishes his difference (' cultural' rather than ethnic ) to becoming, towards the end of the play , ' colourless : a provincial gentleman - warrior , a down right English soldier fallen among foreigners ; which means that he no longer functions archetypally even as a stranger , much less a black ' ( p. 160 ) . For this downfall of the inwardly white Othello , Desdemona the 'white witch ' and Iago the true black are jointly held responsible . Emilia
‘by
‘ first
is
' and
and last an untamed shrew
. . . seem
their lives and functions
'
rather
generally
, the women
'
Iago s view
to sustain
of
( p . 141 ) . It is a measure of the problem Iwant to highlight that although Carole Neely criticises Fiedler s misogyny , she both ignores racism which Ridley but there nevertheless and makes less crude than Rymer analyse the impact no attempt Othello blackness the sexual relations the play address sexual difference the expense the produce what Newton and Rosenfelt have called racial feminist on )
(
his
at
's
of 's
or
To
.
a
to
is
in
to
's
is
'
of
women
been
Ben
Okri points out that
is
or
of
fully inserted into
is
it
),
not
of
and has
at )
's
(
,
criticism
of are
.p
'(
'
',
”
.
of
in
“
of
especially invalid version the human condition xvii which for women the third world who the juncture both sorts oppression Although the question race has been admirably dis essays cussed recently see Cowhig and Orkin often ignored underplayed even by those concerned with alternative and political discussions
gender to
reduce the colour
is
to
'
brief article
,
a
In
.
difference
be
's
of
'
of
,
'
of
as
;
)
of
,
.
,
of
,
in
as
as
(
,
of
,
;
;
in
or
of
of
,
,
to
is
's
or
of
I
,
in
to
's
is
of
no
.
).
.
to
on
'
(p
of
quite diminish the force the sex Working together they can simple mapping unbearable 563 Even though racial differ ence the sexual possible precisely because Othello colour and gender make him occupy contradictory positions power relation any suggest firstly shall that Othello blackness central under standing power structures male female sexuality the play secondly the filtering sexuality and race through each other prism profoundly affects each them thus indicating more clearly what Len tricchia has called the multiplicity histories both authority and thirdly interweaving resistance and such does not dissolve the tensions oppression but acknowledges and addresses between different forms placing the schisms and discontinuities identity them well foregrounded which recent criticism has seen Renaissance drama Tragedy within the see Dollimore Radical Tragedy and Belsey The Subject neglected context racial difference
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
Historicising
for
racism
It had been amajor problem critics blackness with his central position
of
the play the play
's
to
to
(
,
all
to
's
.
,
at
all
’
.
are
all
-
's
'
are
‘
).
16
.p
to
of at
in
, or
.
in
reconcile Othello Therefore either his trying colour was ignored much critical effort was expended prove that Shakespeare did not intend him be black see Cowhig premised upon racist notions black inferiority Both views The notion that men are the same includes the apparently conflicting Ridley one that blacks inferior and hardly men efforts prove Othello non negroid racial origins are notoriously and crudely
, ”
,
“
a
,
/
at a
as
to
,
,
in
.
with moral connotations
is
to
no
pp
to
.
,
's '( of
.
the sources from which real surprise either quickly slide back ethnic is
at
-5 ). all ”
black
Cinthio drew his story Fiedler 143 discover that Fiedler moral categories ones How colours come be invested precisely the history racism to
' of
;
to of is
ethnically
“
not
it
,
that Othello was
the play that since miscegenation had primar read the blackness Othello no real surprise therefore discover It
no
'
ily
'
is
mating part therefore not yet been invented we are symbolic and finally
is
a
,
to
,
‘
”
in
of
';
no
“
. .. .
an
-
'(
in
is
.p no li ).
'
:
in
racist There are more colours than one Africa and that man European eyes black colour reason why he should even look sub human Then we also hear that for Shakespeare black does not describe ethnic distinction fair has primarily moral significance that there was England that the racism Elizabethan kind horror that contemporary audiences might feel black white
'
a
. G . K - .
of
I
it
a
, of
history during Elizabethan Evidence such times has been accumulating and here will only amplify aspects that crucially link gender powerful and with the question Hunter identifies
.. .
its
.
of
-
to
-
in
.
of
35 )
.
(p
'
's
to
up
a
)
(
ancient tradition associating black faced men with wickedness Shakespeare which came right own day Part this tradition derived from Bible centred conception ofthe world which humanity was graded according geographical distance from the Holy Land hence black people were devilish because they existed Christianity outside both the physical and the conceptual realm
,
,
,
of
.
, :'a
of
's
in a
of
of
Blacks became identified with the descendants Ham and their colour direct consequence sexual excess The devil and his associates even Reginald Scott fairly rationalist The Discovery Witchcraft were inextric ably linked with blackness damned soulmay and doth take the shape
to
a
to
as
).
34
.p
‘a
to
of
to
,
a
'(
a
blackamoore Hunter strangers Hunter also includes general cultural hostility factor influencing racial prejudice but erroneously locates this response day and night which the basic antinomy him explains the
AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
‘
presence of racism
all
SEXUALITY
)
(
of
'.
the latest times
.
's
,
of
:
of
Cowhig
gentry
and the landed
,
the aristocracy
.p 5 ).
'(
of
‘
so
;
to
'
to
to
of
.
's
in
a
its
the households
in
of
of
on
's
-
a
,
to
in
over the world even darkest Africa from the This dangerously universalises and naturalises white racism whose various histories indicate interlinking situations oppression rather than trans historical colour consciousness Eldred Jones pioneering study Othello Countrymen established that Shakespeare literary sources for his portraits did not depend black people and growing black presence England with evidence that there was widening contact with white inhabitants Hakluyt Principal Navigations bears witness the beginnings slave trade between 1562 and 1568 England and sold hundreds Hawkins brought blackamoors black Spain slaves there were several hundreds black people living earliest
'
is
. is
,
's
of
'
, of to
-
or
' '
or
18
.
A
on
,
to
'.
too
are
in
of
as a
by
.
are
)
32
.
(p
'
of
‘
's
Thus Hunter arguments that Elizabethans had no continuous con tact with black people and no sense economic threat from them historically disproved But the crucial point that the black presence was both perceived and constructed threat the state Royal proclamations and state papers nervously point the great num negroes and blackamoors bers the country which kind people there manye Queen Elizabeth correspondence already deport eighty nine black people with the Privy Council seeking significant July 1596 contrasts black warrant issued those
a
-
in
of
,
as
,
' ' 'us ,
a
of
,
,
of a
to
,
'
'
.
',
',
of
's
, .p 7 ).
a
is
(
in
'
people
startlingly
'.
of
people with her white subjects Christian illustrative the Orientalist split between superior European culture constituting and the inferior non European peoples and cultures constituting them This split Said has argued establishing the hegemony crucial component the former Orientalism But Elizabeth communique also crucially puts for ward the argument that blacks will create unemployment want ser rampant vice for her white people Here again she evokes the myth black sexuality and their populous numbers seeking limit and con
kinde
passage
, .p 6 ).
(
in in
of
of
.
in
of
.
of
a
of
by
's
in
Its
in
trol black presence the imperial country quoted Cowhig immigration and deportation laws are not acci today echoes past prejudices dental but are ensured continuous reworking later relations dominance Cedric Robinson speaks the ways which the ideologies earlier feudal relations were both preserved and transformed the new mercantile and colonial situation He says that the identification black with evil had not only been directed
to
.
as
.
,
as
upper classes since the European nobility projected itself drawn from different ethnic and cultural groups than the common people Thus travelling merchants were regarded foreigners According Robin
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
44
son , racism was not simply a result of capitalism . Rather, capitalism itself was profoundly shaped by ideas of racial differentiation . Therefore , although the ideal of a unified greater Britain was encouraged , the ten dency of European civilisation through capitalism ... was not to homogenise but to differentiate – to exaggerate regional , subcultural ,
'
, of
).
3
,
of
(
by
up
of
'
as
.
by
of '
,
in
,
;
in
to
as
.
of
a
;
-f
-
of
a
as
, of
the
dialectical differences into “ racial ” ones ' (Robinson , p . 27 ) . A similar tendency is traceable in the case of women ; increasing , upon restrictions their activities inheritance and public participation accompanied the widening separation of the centres of production and consumption , even as dominant ideology posited the notion woman more equal companion man see chapter Women and indeed other marginalised peoples were excluded from the pro personal achieve jected ideals self fulfilment and self ashioning mobility ment and sexual difference became central preoccupation religious and secular authority Irreconcilable contradictions with respect people are opened women well those kinde such exclusions both cases medieval differentiations were not simply adopted but modified and altered the new circumstances
-
. ..
or
its
63 )
,
of a
to
. of
‘
to
a
of
the
of
to
by
.
,
or
of
' as '
'
a
pre sixteenth century Therefore the definition black supplied deeply stained with dirt version the Oxford English Dictionary having dark deadly purposes malignant was useful beyond medieval religious and cultural chauvinism Even this chauvinism has been attri project greater buted Robinson the failure unified Europe during the eleventh and twelfth centuries and transference spiritual kingdom from one terrestrial social order that Chris
, by . by p
(
)
3
'
'
.
D
‘
a
.
as
'
It
2 ).
.
,
for
,
,
(
of
a
is
of
not solely constructed the purposes rationalising the economic aspects colonial plunder but this certainly crucial component rationalisation them see Lawrence
of is
true that racist ideologies
are
(q
'
to
in
's
of
lay
.
(p
'a
to
.
).
'
(p
10
Both Hunter and Said Orientalism note that the new knowledge about foreign peoples generated Renais expeditions was filtered through and shaped existing sance ideologies and prejudices But religious traditional outlook which explain why increasing factual information Hunter uses fallow was itself adapted and pressed into colonial service Winthrop Jordan projection says that the linkage between black and devil represented onto the African the bourgeoisie own anxieties about their role entrepreneurs developments capitalist the burgeoning that disrupt uoted threatened the social order Lawrence pp 61 tiandom
expediency
a
newer
,
)
of
in
).
57
’, .p
- -
towards blacks and
a
hatred
be
(
“
Just plain common sense Hence common sense attitudes towards black people Othello which will identified shortly indicate both the older tradition
more complex
SEXUALITY
AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
ideology of racism . The attitudes ofmodern audiences / readers may not be identical with those of Shakespeare 's original audiences; moreover , the play 's readership is not a unified category and Indians among them have experienced a different history of racism . Even so , contemporary colour prejudices are interlinked ; they draw upon and rework this ear lier history . There is a historical dependency between patriarchalism and racism . In Europe , the increased emphasis on heterogeneity of peoples and groupings that Robinson mentions occurs alongside the escalation of patriarchal discourses on the separateness of female identity from mas said , in the Indian subcontinent
, the consolidation of exclusions . In the colonies , specifically 'called out the basic sexist tendencies ' in the racism colonised countries and cultures ,'calcified existing ones and introduced others ' (see Ogundipe -Leslie ). Helen Carr points out that ‘ colonialist , racist and sexist discourse have continually reinforced , naturalized and legitimized each other during the process of European colonization ' ( p . 46 ) . Although the specificity of racism and patriarchy should not be important Both women blurred by this analogy , the connections biological and natural inferiors and and racial others are posited similar characteristics are attributed them culine . As I have power involved
racial , sexual, and
:
to
, , -
,
,
on in
of
-
,
,
,
,
,
;
,
,
or
,
no
, , ,
)
, .p
.(
Carr
50
,
evil unpredictable the
tive
,
,
,
,
,
no
no
,
:
,
,
of
-
,
as
in
.. .
of
.
as
colonialism non Europeans occupy the same symbolic part women Both are seen nature not culture and with the same ambivalence either they are ripe for government passive child like unsophis ticated needing leadership and guidance described always terms lack perseverance initiative intellectual powers the other hand they are outside society dangerous treacherous emotional inconstant wild threatening fickle sexually aberrant irrational near animal lascivious disrup
space
the language
.
as
'
'
are
caste
.
it
of
areas in
to
,
to
.
,
as
of
of
operations patriarchalism Thus seek extend the control and authority man father over women and white man father over black men and women Both black people and women need guidance yet both threaten elude and disrupt
of
'
'
'
‘
Ravenous tigers and inhuman dogs
on
of
a
of
's
on
in
).
4 -5
, .pp
'(
as
of
as
Cowhig points out that only we recognise the familiarity the figure the black man villain Elizabethan drama can we appreciate what Shakespeare audience must have been the startling impact Shakespeare made significant departures from his black hero source material from other representations blacks the Renaissance
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
46
stage , and from his own Cowhig have shown ).
earlier portraits of Moors (as both Hunter and
The tradition of the black villain -hero in Elizabethan drama resulted in a series of negative portrayals of black men , such as Muly Mahomet in Thomas Peele 's The Battle of Alcazar or Eleazor in Lust 's Dominion , written by Dekker and others . In Shakespeare ' s Love s Labour Lost, Black is the badge ofhell / The hue of dungeons and the school of night ' ( IV . 250 Cinthio version the Othello
of
's
)1.
In
'
iii .
'
his blackness already displeases Desdemona
'
to
's
at
A
.
,
's .
caught
of
to
'
'
)
,
is
,
. : of .iii 5 ).
,
95
for
by
‘
a
of
the play are actually the result
V
. iii .
and The recurrent savage tussle Roman victory over the consolidated
(V
'
'
ravenous tiger
23
II .1 .
(
/,
a
,
)
-
as a 63 5
.1 .
(V
'
to
of
)
(V
14
'
', ‘
in
of
. of iii ‘ . ,
.
of
In
,
referred horrors
, , /
,
of
murder her without being
in
of
,
and Othello care Hunter points out changes many features Cinthio tale but not the Shakespeare earlier fullest treatment colour the hero brief look race Titus Andronicus reveals the extent which Othello departs from the usual linkage black men with deviant white women Titus Andronicus the siren queen Tamora and the inhuman dog unhallowed slave Aaron are not only lovers not only accomplices unleashing tale murders rapes and massacres night Acts black abominable deeds Complots mischief treason separately villainies but are almost interchangeable each story
fully plots how that Shakespeare
of
'
is
, ';
),
of
)
's
.
If
'
is
.
' ', (I. 1
in
'
,
52
.1 .
(1
of
'
of
-
,
'
to
'
22 ,
'( I.i .
. 28 )
',
'
its
a
which has recently been barbarous Goths but they are projected onto the others Roman imperial patriarchy Roman nobility claims be both masculine and civilised Titus grand patriarch deriving his status from his twenty five sons twenty one whom have been slain manfully arms 196 from the beauty and virtue his daughter gracious Lavinia who Rome rich ornament and from his own military exploits Rome has empery
'
its
of
'
-
. ,
as
,
as
?
)
.1 .
(I
'
so
a
a
–
'
:
,
of
'
a
tigers because become wilderness rulers disregard for the people and because their brutal traditions and scramble for power Tamora points out was never Scythia half barbarous 131 what better scapegoats than black man and disorderly woman scapegoats however The play does not really acknowledge them pathologically evil for blackness and deviant womanhood emerge
or
to
no
is
by
,
.
,
, ,
:
to to
he
.
by
is
of
,
to in
, or
,
of
,
no
Significantly there has been debate about the colour ethnic origins prove that Shakespeare had not seen Aaron the Moor effort Moors that racial hatred and miscegenation had not been invented Elizabethan times for unlike Othello Aaron more easily reconciled the stereotype black wickedness lust and malignity His unmiti repeatedly linked gated evil his physical features both himself and others Thus refers
SEXUALITY
unroll -34 6
some fatal execution . ( II.
To do
,
again
III . :
)
-6
of
16
split the patriarchal stereotype gracious gentle
them
.
is
),
.
'
', (II ' .v
23
;
),
a
').
'
do . iii .
-2 ).
(V
, '
, /
of
's
,
'
are
(
of
) , .
a
),
,
'
.i .
II
a
)
“
.1.
,
88
, .1.
its
( by
:
it
( by
:
by
'
(V
,
(I
'
,
is
, ,
passive
'
for Lavinia civilised virtuous chaste and obedient Tamora barbarous most insatiate and luxurious woman and siren Lavinia enclosed Roman patriarchy king father brothers husband nephew militarily waging war against Rome sexually Tamora challenges marrying and manipulating ruler and maintaining lover and Appropriately racially because she and her lover both barbarous she becomes the agent Lavinia destruction along with the irreligi ous Moor Chief architect and plotter these woes 121 Tam
if
woman
Goth and therefore barbar
is a
,
white but she
,
's
lover
is
Aaron
,
Tamora
ous She and Lavinia between
205
1 .
(
.
,
good and fair men call for grace Let fools Aaron will have his soul black like his face
, ' is ), ‘ 52 (
do
Or
of woolly hair that now uncurls
as an adder when she doth
)
fleece
Even
iii .
My
AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
'O
:
, . ' of
,
of
of
).
is
-
(
,
–
of
-
of
of
'
st
at
.
no ..
is
(
).
-5
II
. iii .
-
it
's
of
ora sons are wicked because their mother not learn her wrath she taught thee Even her teat thou had her tyranny image simple 143 But Tamora maternal destructiveness She combines the attributes the warrior woman masculine prowess military skill and usurping the Amazon male authority sexual promiscuity see Shepherd Amazons She both the epitome stereotypical female duplicity and the converse stereotypical female
.
subservience
of
;
of
pure evil the sup Both Tamora and Aaron become embodiments posedly uncontrollable sexuality women and blacks motivates their Iiaison
.
's
Aaron
blackness makes here honour
,
,
,
as
)
73 -9
II .
(
?
If
foul desire had not conducted you
, iii .
,
an
a
'
to
-
'
all
.
,
's
of
.. .
his body hue Spotted detested and abominable Why are you sequest red from your train Dismounted from your snow white goodly steed And wand red hither obscure plot Accompanied but with barbarous Moor
,
the
be
of
of /
a
At
).
-8
67
,
,
the bosom
of
.
).
embraced
in iii .
V
up
be
to
'(
of
to
is
ii .
IV as .
'( ‘,
'
a
'
of
fac d
contrast
,
by
'
is , to
.
is
-
is
accordingly Amongst Their child devil loathsome toad play the fair breeders our clime the end exposed and purged through the literal expulsion evil Aaron and Tamora He be walled and starved while she must thrown prey beasts and birds 198 Lavinia the compliant woman the civilised world
and
).
as
But passive
she
.
to
iii .
194
'closed in our household 's monument ' (V . her rape has made her too impure live
is ,
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
48
in
at
is
a
,
'
ye
'(
, .p 3 ).
‘
:
stereotypes
black barbarity
Thus even this play and female deviance in
).
9
of
'(
. ii .
IV
97 -
'
Ye
!
'd
lim
is
'
better than another hue
the apparently secure
it
is
.
's
,
,
's .
,
his
,
.
to
,
his
Ye
/
coal black
'
o
for 'er
/
's
); life
,
of
to
!
);
. ' III 1 .
);
-3
'( I. .i
A
20
to 19 -
3
did .
(
'(
of
'a
is
is
of
's
, /
'
he IV .
54 .
is
officially located outside Roman patriarchy But we are Thus evil tigers reminded that Rome itself wilderness that Tam reign ora terror unleashed after she becomes incorporate Rome Roman now adopted happily 462 that Titus himself suffrages threw the people On him that doth tyrannize me that Tamora one level merely revenged Titus what her son Moreover Aaron occasionally strains his stereotype Whereas both Tamora and Titus are responsible for their children deaths the black man stereotypically denied human emotions barters safety his own ensure son What more important defending momentarily while his child that Aaron becomes represen Cowhig tative race protesting against prejudice He claims sanguine shallow hearted be better than his white adversaries boys white walls alehouse painted signs and asserts that
is
.
patriarchal authority
patriarchalism
/
Racism
will
,
,
interwoven with the disturbance
to
.
as
,
,
I,
In
.
,
,
are although marginally opened out Othello shall suggest common sense ideas about blacks are evoked but more clearly questioned dis misrepresentation closely closed And crucially this disclosure
of
,
to
by
.
is
'
'
,
of
,
,
in its
it
to
its
on In
.
a
a
,
on
's
an
is
a
by
I
to
a
as
of
precisely the opposite locate movement which the one honorary white Fiedler and will trace Othello passage from total outsider movement that depends the impact both racial and sexual difference other words Othello moves from being colonised subject existing the terms white Venetian society and trying ideology towards being marginalised outcast internalise every way until he occupies his true position and alienated from precarious ruptured entry into the white world other His
seen
in
's
in
,
of
of
So
At ,
.
its
'.
split inconsistent subject and occupies not
,
is a
,
discussed later she too
'
to
,
,
of
-
a
.
,
it
secure the Othello self conception instead the unified subject humanist thought we have near schizophrenic hero whose last speech graphically portrays the split he becomes simultaneously the Christian and the Infidel the opponent Venetian and the Turk the keeper the State and the being ally passes same time Desdemona from his who would guarantee becoming his sexual and racial other As will be his white status
,
his relation with Desdemona which was intended first place and which only catalyses the contradictions
SEXUALITY
AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
in the play , not only as Othello 's 'other ' but the Venetian patriarchy . The ' central conflict ' of the play then , if wemust locate one, is neither between white and black alone , nor merely between men and women - it is rather between the racism of a white patriarchy and the threat posed to it by both a black man and a white woman . But these two not simply aligned against white patriarchy since their own relation cannot abstracted from sexual racial tension Othello not merely jealous but man whose jealousy and blackness black man who are inseparable Similarly Desdemona initial boldness and later sub mission are not discordant the context her positions white tripartite and extremely woman and white woman There thus complex relationship between black man white woman and the state the first 125 lines the play racist images Othello blackness
one but various positions
of
is
.
a
,
.
', 's '
of
,
old
he
In
of
,
a
as a
of
's
is
.
a
in
.
,
a
is
or
be
,
are
also that
's
'
society into honoured guest thing thou 101 see Cowhig
).
) (
8
'
, (I. .p ii.
as
a
)71 to
Venetian
From
iii .
I.
'(
of
‘
is
all
'
an
.
's
's
Brabantio
a
of
of
in
which transforms the latent racism digust virulent anger and Iago that inhuman Othello becomes such against whose liaison rules nature
,
woman
of
,
'', a
,
is
'.
‘a
It
'
'',
is
–
Barbary horse devil and abound thick lips black ram significant that unlike Aaron case these images lascivious Moor are evoked almost exclusively the context his contact with white
is
,
an
's
.
is
.
-
being
an
as
an
and we are reminded that sorcery uncivilised and Christian activity Cleopatra sexually themselves Othello and cannot attractive Egyptian
be un
;
in
as
to
linked her being repeatedly constructed well
of
is
,
it
,
.
.
i.
e
an
.
to
to
of a
's
to
at
conviction that Othello has used magic win her once dislodges Othello the status barbaric outsider animal whom he claims his daughter was afraid look upon Here Othello activity with overwhelmingly female connotations associated with may be recalled magically witchcraft Cleopatra too accused enchanting Antony But Cleopatra feminine wiles are specifically Brabantio
no
Constructing the other
notes that
prior
'
,
a
the
eleventh
or
Robinson
to
.
civilisation
'
is
by
-
or
an
.
'
of
or
to
to
as
,,
his
to
us
,
de
on
in in
,
to
of of
.
in
to
despite
is
is a
,
Moor but there real clarity his precise origins slavery and references his being sold his unChristian past Debates over whether Othello was black brown mulatto anxi brown ously tried recover the possibility hiswick whiteness from this ambiguity possibility which the contrary the very construction the other contrary alerts Oriental Orientalist and colonial discourses While we must recognise that group has uniformity each non white race individual identity conferred upon them their common differentiation from white
Othello
twelfth
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
50
centuries the use of the collective sense of the term barbarian was primarily a function ofexclusion rather than a reflection ofany significant consolidation among these peoples ' ( p . 10 ) . Thus , to consider Othello over the textual confusion but to concur with Fanon that colonial discourse itself erases differentiation between various subjects and treats outsiders black while locating
not
to gloss
as
its
its
is
;
black man
all
as a
', is
‘
is
of
.
( or
-o
,
co
to
pt and exclude variously construct certain that the Senate will back his opposition
to its
,
in
is
71 ).
, .p
,
(
,
In
.
Brabantio
'. 't, 's
‘
or
a
amazing capacity
others
is
an
of
as
be
a
of
to
of
.
-
of
,
to
therefore we need stress the common exclusion ofits others whose political colour rather than precise shade non whiteness what matters The conversion the outsider the service dominant culture crucial feature the European encounter with other peoples Hence incorporated Said Orientalism the alien must also Othello valuable Christian warrior the exotic colonial subject the service the state the Senate scene the Venetian patriarchy displays racism
.
to
as
us '
of '
be as
is
': ' -8
).
236
, .p
it )
-
an
often cited
of
,
almost mythic as
his
as
of
is
as
are often regarded hardly human wicked example such illogical
statements
do
:
.
,
Iago
of
is
partly because many This irrational and evidence ness The following passage behaviour
as
's ' ' ( (
).
‘
to
‘
's
I.
'(
iii .
of
'
to
)
if
to it
,
remarkably liberal that appears strange Othello marriage and they don we need only recall their concern with the Turkish threat opposed strategically included Othello the warrior one the Turkish they You must therefore content slubber the your new fortunes with this more stubborn and boisterous gloss expedition 227 Coleridge called according Iago famous motiveless malignity opaque Fashioning Greenblatt still remains Renaissance Self
;
sin
great
a
, as
stand accountant for
diet my revenge suspect the lustful Moor
led
,
to
But partly
do
I
love her too absolute lust though peradventure
of I
. ..
Now
Not out
he
)
-
285
93
wife
.. . ( II .i .
wife
for
with him
,
even
'd
I
Till
am
,
;
a d
;
' I
For that Hath leap into my seat the thought whereof poisonous mineral gnaw my inwards Doth like And nothing can nor shall content my soul
,
,
In
.
of
'
in
a
,
of
is
'
.
,
a
as in
in
?
of
?
In
really suspect what sense does Iago love Desdemona Does Emilia with Othello Rather than confusion motive the passage illus expressive power struggle trates the way which sexual desire specifically racist context Iago loves Desdemona here the same way Ferdinand loves his sister the Duchess Malfi the latter case
SEXUALITY
AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
erotic desire , brotherly possessiveness and male authoritarianism blend as expressions of aristocratic bonding , and of protection of state and family power . Similarly Iago s love speaks of a racial and patriarchal
' '
'
“
his
as
(
white women losing wife an
Desdemona
choice reveals
's
disgust
at
: 's
,
As
.
Othello Cowhig indicates Iago almost phobic racist horror
of all
,
a
Othello Such possessiveness over suspicion
the fear rationalised
')
to
also reflected
in
to to is
rather than
him
as
.
. ,
all
bonding whereby he becomes the' protector ' of white women from black men More specifically white woman Desdemona belongs
,
-
emphasis added
)
see
us
-7
233
;
iii .
III .
a
thoughts unnatural
.(
Foul disproportion
,
!
in
in all
,
Of her
,
,
to
affect many proposed matches own clime complexion and degree things nature tends Whereto we see Foh one may smell such will most rank
Not
to
is
's
as
of
).
iii .
III .
-
as
'
'
So
as
‘
'.
is
'
'
,
as a
(
‘
to
to
of
a
,
to
his
-
.
is
'
's
a
,
.
,
is
to
'
,
‘
‘
to
This interchange between Iago and Othello allows that the legitimise them naturalness which dominant ideologies invoke selves and which central common sense thinking generally flexible category For Othello seeking efface own blackness through Desdemona patriarchal view love female constancy supposed dis necessary natural Therefore for him Desdemona honesty becomes nature erring from itself 231 But Iago reinter prets erring nature define Desdemona white woman whose love for and constancy Othello unnatural he yokes together stereo typical notions repulsive and female both black ever capable of
In
'. in
'
its
of )
)
(
,
,
of
of
, .
as
,
to
of ,
of
a
as
As
.
of
unnatural transgressions Lawrence correctly points out whereas the rapes black women by white men were seen sort favour the black race the mating white women with black men was regarded fatal Whereas the first extended the power the white man over all women the latter eroded his own territory and allowed for the possibility invasion the Indian context British and other colonial men indulged wide a
as
on
's ;
's
? It
a
of
?
(
a
is
,
in
:'
to
to
a
in
it
Titus Andronicus
Such
is
).
.p
nexus the fears responsible for engender where results racial pol
,
of
',
sense female sexuality
-
common
by black and active ing the extreme horrors evoked
72
:
Just plain
',
rence
as
as
of
's of
,
:
is
a
as
A
to
in
.
of
(
spread sexual liaisons with including rapes Indian women matter course But the horrors British women taking Indian lovers are obsessively foregrounded literature diverse Forster Passage India Paul Scott The Raj Quartet and Jhabvala Heat and Dust contemporary they persist feature racism Britain today the question marry never would you allow your son black girl marry always would you allow your daughter black man Law
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA communiqué deporting blacks , referred to immigration earlier laws, the ‘ preservation of the white race is seen to be at stake. Fanon offered a psychoanalytical exp lanation for this fear , pointing out that racist phobia always reduces the black man to his sexual potential : ' the father revolts because in his opin ion the Negro will introduce his daughter into a sexual universe for which the father does not have the key , the weapons, or the attributes '
,
Elizabeth to today 's British
the possibility feared
,
their desire for black lovers
is
white women
;
the complicity
is
especially threatening forwhite patriarchy
of
what
is
So
)
.
(p .
of
l's
. From
165
lution
a
of
to
the
of
as
as
.
in
,
the
6
's ' s
,
.
of
–
of
‘
'
it
for
In
. ,
is
if
will be further discussed
far
by
).
is as
is is
's
, ,
is
in in
a
,, a
of
64
, .p
'
(
a
at
'
to
.
,
forbidden but always imminent The spectre combined black and female insubordination threatens undermine white manhood and the Empire stroke Lawrence The effort then becomes project the white woman provoked by the animalistic lust desire provoked the black man notion which which traceable back the fifteenth n otion Europe century myth Euron and much earlier India The the black century perpetuates black animalism while rapist even more useful for obliterating female agency and thus simultaneously erases the two patriarchal racism most problematic areas the humanity the alien race and the active sexuality women passive however the white woman Even she contact with the chapter supposed rapacity alien male pollutes her black man in
.
's
' ,
of
'
In
-
).
356 am
black
the
’
'
I
. iii .
(I
a
an
of
. .
of
an
is
Haply for
disrupted
a
in
is of
the context The Tempest But Othello the precisely arises because Othello not rapist and Desdemona unwilling victim not his sexual assault Their desire cannot be spite contained within the myth the black rapist this Iago racism and his misogyny together make him confident that the relation erring barbarian and super subtle Venetian can be easily between problem
,
,
,
).
, .p
I
as
,
an is
–
he as
;
;
he
to
of
(
to
an
is
of
,
of
by
At
in
in
. of
,
,
:
,
of
to
in
is
Othello described terms characteristics popularly attributed blacks during the sixteenth century sexual potency courage pride guilelessness credulity easily aroused passions these become central and persistent features later colonial stereotyping well seemingly remarked the first chapter the beginning the play honorary society well entrenched and accepted Venetian attempt speak better than any white whose hyperbolic speech the language his adoptive civilisation see Serpieri 142 The vul nerability his entry prompts him reiterate his intrinsic merits his lineage and his achievements appears confident that these will match
SEXUALITY AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
done the signiory complaints
-
19 )
I have
services which out-tongue
18
Shall
:
racism
his
My
's
.. . (1 .ii .
Brabantio
,
is
of
,
of
to
/
,
is
31 -2 ).
by ' (I
. ii .
'
to
Othello needs believe that my parts my title and my perfect soul Shall manifest me rightly He discover that the dominant ideology encouraged adoptive society especially the notion his doubly illusory the power and indestructible essence the individual
he
he
on
is
,
on
in
of
is
is
.
-
as
are
.
of
by
.
of
if
is
,
.
is
when your skin black simply any black But Othello not archetypal man neither played out spaces already man The drama racial difference occupied divisions class He involved the process social mobility and self fashioning others around him but somewhat different terms Brecht rightly pointed out that
it
or
,
it
for
;
of
of
)
is
,
.
to
- to of be 88 ).
I
:'
of
.
of
's
,
Cassio
in
is
preferment and also Othello who more successful their common pursuit status Iago gains considerable mymeans wealth from duping Roderigo have wasted myself out jewels you The have had from me deliver Desdemona would half Iago
jealous
of
.(
, .p
,
as a
a
.
in
him
he by
,
as a
a
,
't
,
be
as
post general which only possess Desdemona he also possesses outstanding achieve inherited feudal general would but won ments and presumably snatched from someone else must defend fighting property and will snatched from He lives world position and his relationship with the woman he loves develops property relationship quoted Heinemann 217 doesn
he has not
he
as
',
,
.
or
's ,
'(q
:'
. ii .
of ,
to
,
,
,
effect
of
an
located
as
others should
be
control events and the lives
of
's
to
.
's
of
is
.
is
,
is as
's
of
.
).
, , 'is p
in in
,
(
a
IV
186 votarisť have corrupted However class differences cannot sealed off from others Stuart Hall has pointed out the context contemporary Britain Race uoted says themodality which class relations are experienced Gilroy Applied profound 276 Othello this illuminates the invasion gender relations by race Iago intensification and alteration class jealousy Cassio advancement does not become deflected into hatred for Othello sometimes supposed Rather each breeds the other for Othello socially superior the outsider the racial inferior who Iago who has become the means own preferment Greenblatt has persuasively and correctly argued that Iago improvise and ability
)
195
is
and her husband
's
. .iii
(I
'
jewel
“
's
is
.
's
by
of
ence racial hatred Desdemona both her father
,
an
(
to
).
-
, .p
'
of to ‘
colonial ideology which seeks sustain indefinitely indirect enslave by moulding psyche ment the the oppressed Greenblatt Renaissance ideology Fashioning Self 229 But we need add that such not just generally imbibed but shaped and spurred Iago specific experi
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
of
As
'purchase ' ( II.
, ,
's
of
as
,
for
'
or -
.
–
)
'
I
love and when why she loves
if
iii .
III .
361
Frantz
of
).
.
That
gone
'
's
294
( is )
92 's -3 '( ). I.
111
III .
is
'(
occupation
Othello
!
Farewell description
iii .
.
faith
'
is
, s' , , ; ' / not
in
to
of
why my life upon her Chaos come again
that
thee not
It
of '(
iii .
III .
'
'd
'
identity him
. ).
to
(
to
his
is
is
all of
iii .9 ) .
the guarantee her husband upward mobility similar Bianca Women Beware Women But unlike the latter Desdemona also the gate white humanity Slowly his conception own worth comes centre the fact that she chose him over the curl darlings Venice Her desire for him she had eyes proof replaces his heritage exploits and chose me 193 and measure his worth thus becomes the primary signifier his she
,
:
's
of
of
Fanon the encounter between the black man and white woman although somewhat reductive female sexuality illuminates this aspect Othello desire do
,
of
a
am
.
I
of
. am
a
I .. ,
of
.
my restless
,
,
I
.. .
a
am
I
.
By
?
to
be
of
mymind surges my soul across the zebra striping the blackest part suddenly white this desire who but white woman can this for worthy loving me she proves that me white love loved like white man marry white culture white beauty white whiteness white man Out
At
)’
63
.
.
(p
,
hands caress those white breasts they grasp white civiliza dignity tion and and make them mine When
'
‘
-
,
his
.
is
,
his
.
as
as
,
of
.
it
to
in
,
the same time wemust remember that Othello actually emphasises bridge his difference order and win Desdemona His magic invoking his exotic otherness his cultural and religious dif consists ferences well heroic exploits which involve strange peoples and territories He oscillates between asserting his non European glamour and denying blackness emphasising through speech and social position his assimilation into white culture He thus hopelessly
's
Desdemona
:'
,
;
it is a
'
's
to
it
at
to
xvi
).
p
"(
',
Introduction
's
to
a
.. .
at
.
. . .
in
of
is
, ;
in
as
split Homi Bhabha writes relation Fanon split subject black doubling dissembling skins white masks not neat division image being places impossible least two once which makes accept the colonizer identity for the devalued invitation
disobedience power and
to
her very submission
).
, .p
on
in
'
as
it
.
(
'
,
of in
it in
locates
law
's
contrast
,
by
,
'
of
to
as
to to
it
Greenblatt
assertiveness
’; of
of
has already been play central evaluations the Fiedler characteristically calls the power the white witch Tennenhouse desribes the gives her the power speak the language turn which the power marriage give her own body Display Power 125 Desdemona
The erosion
presented
desire which
SEXUALITY
AND RACIAL
DIFFERENCE
arouses sexual tension in Othello (Renaissance Self-Fashioning , p . 250 ) . I suggest that Desdemona 's disobedience and later submission are both related to the shifting positions she occupies in relation to Othello , and to the contradictions that they impose upon her. Cowhig insightfully
's
love
's
the context of a white woman
in
fantasies
:
for
locates Desdemona the exotic male
to
(
of
a
was
early travel book
fanatic
'?
say that Desdemona
'
we not
an
'
,
')
can
)
13
.
of
to
,
black tribe (p
'
'
‘a
of to
so
in
of
?
of
.. .
is
to
of
she not more attracted the exotic myth otherness than the real Given the enormous popularity travel books among white women the Shaftesbury 1710 was lament the fact that thousand Desdemonas were obsessed with stories African men that they would readily abandon husbands families and country itself follow the fortunes hero the
man Earl
of
) of to
are.
for
's
,
.
,
's
'
, '
to
of '
to
of
's '
If
of
in
's
as
,
be , ',
for ‘
(
of
to
not
to
If
subscribe the usual myths about female propensity however the susceptibility Desdemona and her sisters example later figures such Hardy Tess the proverbial out sider must viewed the additional context the confinement the woman and the increasing restriction her mobility and freedom Iago love for Desdemona and Ferdinand the Duchess protect race property and power through emblematic the desire the enclosure the woman Desdemona fascination conversely indi cates her desire break the claustrophobic patriarchal confine Travel we are
for romance
‘
to
to
of
is
It
.
to
to
its
in
's
is
so
in
.
.
on
to
,
)
, .
, '
. iii .
(I
of
all
I
'd '
a
,
adventure and freedom being male domains she first wishes that heaven had made her such man and then begins love Othello for Projected the dangers had pass 163 167 the outsider are the fantasies freedom and love both which are unable be even visualised from within her world true that Desdemona only invokes the right owe duty her husband and not her own autonomy But doing she defies patriarchal control over her particularly disturbing explicit desires Desdemona eroticism
,
;
of
,
iii .
I.
'(
'
250
).
Self Fashioning
-
Renaissance
, .p I
'
to
of
and frank avowal the downright violence her passion and her claim the rites for why love him 248 252 see also Greenblatt
of
of
)
.
, p .
on
'(
a
of
to
a
on
'
:
of
Tennenhouse underlines the connections between sexual relations England Des and the political body Elizabethan and Jacobean specifically Jacobean assault monarchy when she demona poses assumes authority over her body and persuades the senate assert the priority contractual relationship over and against the will the patriarch Power Display 127 The early modern state was not only
,
.
of
an
as
its
patri increasingly misogynist but made explicit the usefulness for tightening authoritarian controls State legislation strengthened the household instrument social control and laws
archalism
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
,
to
,
–
' of
,
;
and
ofof
,
(
:
its
as
).
,
,
,
of
is a
,
of
,
of
,
even
of
potentially deviant people the poor vagrants category prostitutes witches attempted and even alternative religious orders sweep the population within the boundaries the household and alterativendaries strengthen the authority the father Hill Society and Puritanism Stone puritanis Theory The Family Kelly Women History The consolidation the state primary unit the word involved consolidation the family against every category
, .
obligation
The parent child
-
of
making governance intelli
of
in
of
stood terms the patriarchal theory relationship served the precise function
.
,
or
of
in
).
p
'(
of
an
”
"
epitome the whole gospel Thomas 319 Gordon pointed Schochet has out that social hierarchies were explained terms divinely sanctioned status and political authority under natural father
).
55
‘ if
.
'(
p
at
in
. At
is
it
. ..
of
By
'
all
I to
).
is
a
.
(p
-
to
of
to
to
all
expand the experienced and gible and that had be done was comprehensible and therefore acceptable category relationships sub sumed under the parent child rubric include that between ruler and subject argued that 439 Hence James the Law Nature the King becomes naturall Father his Lieges his Coronation concluding that Tennenhouse therefore right Jacobean drama proves one thing that sexual relations are always political and
I
pp
of
; :
of ;
..
of .
of
to
his is
's )
(
am
,
politically subversive desire the same time uncomfortable with intention dissolve the sexual theme into those thematics which determined the components Jacobean drama and the nature their relationship Kingship versus kinship power the signs and symbols natural versus metaphysical bodies that Desdemona
an to
of
fail
–
‘
it,
all
-
is ,
).
-4
.
,
on
As
.
;
be
of
'(
a
adequately
analysis
in
adequate
tools
, of p . . 6 ).
category unto themselves Women are society demands new conceptual their position quoted Kelly The sexual theme can contextualised but
it
define
,
,
is
in
if
'(
of
Display versus the exercise state power Power 123 For sexual relations are political only the way that the non sexual analogies their very specificity denied Gerda Lerner put approximate the position class group caste women but state
-
.
is
is
is
is
,
,
.
,
by(
,
it
by
,
),
,
of
‘
as
If
Desdemona the most explicitly erotic and precisely because her choice heroines Iago and Brabantio and even naggingly seen unnatural not only by Othello himself but also most probably the audience Her
's .
Greenblatt underplays Shakespeare sensual
,
is
its
I
's
is
its
it
ofof
,
to
or
dior
of
of
-
, is
is
an
it
,
is
.
to
,
of
or
and the analogy the wife husband child father rela that subject and king cannot explain the entirety Renaissance gender relations Active female sexuality disruptive patriarchal con anxuality analogous trol not just because emblem for other sorts analogouser patri directly rebellion but because threatens the power base base dependent upon regulation and control archy which especially trans will emphasise again that Desdemona desire object gressive because black which Tennenhouse ignores and tion
of ,
not dissolved
SEXUALITY
AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
expressions of love do not unambiguously confirm their suspicions about female response to black men because they also shatter the assumption
.
that black men need to force their attentions on white women
scene ,while Desdemona is surprisingly bold and explicit modestmaiden facing the Venetian state Othello finds necessary my appetite deny the palate would agree with Cowhig that these speeches relate directly Othello colour Desdemona hasmade clear that his sooty bosom no obstacle desire while Othello must defend himself against the unspoken accusations the audience it
of
of
of ,
;
to
.
's
is
”
“
it
'
to
I
'.
of
'
to
a
,
for
In the senate
'
.
, fate '
of
the
in
is
of
on
,
's
sexual
an
of
in
maturity
greater female least partly
as
, ,
at of
,
'. : ) ' .
do
,
/
to to
in
‘
for
;
190 1 as
.
1
II .
( |
realism and more generally relationships prefer see
:
at
of
).
'(
1
. .iii
far
is
in
an
,
of
is
,
At
).
10
.
as
(p of
'
as
well the senators because the association sexual lust with blackness the end the scene Othello exonerated from honorary white your the sexual slur and accordingly pronounced son law more fair than black 290 Cyprus after the storm Consider also the meeting the lovers Othello would happily die order arrest the perfection their meeting not another comfort like this Succeeds unknown emphasis added reply contrary Desdemona optimistically looks forward our loves and comforts should increase grow Even our days For Neely this evidence her greater
,
'
to
as
.
in
'
'
his
at
's
;
of tio
an
by
.
,
,
as a
it
,
.
I
to
indication her greater confidence which Othello black man cannot share His insecurity which has already been catalysed words betray Braban present wonder and joy are partially compounded reaction actually possessing her just disbelief his desire revel the uncertainty about the future betrays moment
of
of
.
's
,
's
on in
-
's
.
in
it ?
it
is
, up , or
a
of ,
of
.
to
in
to
,
of
of
of
,
in
in
to
,
.
(
an 4 )
of
in
of
,
in
is
,
an
of
-
's
,
Desdemona power then the confidence both race and class upper class Venetian beauty secure the attentions men around her and the advantages her position She shares something here with the confidence Beatrice Joanna Middleton The Changeling see chapter Desdemona persistence Cassio behalf for exam upbringing where women are taught that their power ple reflects cajole and chide men into favouring them lies their ability Her initial confidence her own persuasiveness and her methods coquet tishly insistent owe something the illusion female power the courtly love This slowly gives way ethic the more sobering reality power that Othello asserts the power the husband over the wife despite his blackness Away from the world because grown which she has Desdemona becomes less assured and confi
's
of
to
a
of
a
is
to
.
a
dent Her transformation from woman who confronts both her father and the Venetian Senate the wife who submits her husband truly feminine love but manifestation insults not result the
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
58
contradictions imposed upon her by
a
racist, patriarchal and bourgeois
. It is important , of course , to guard against reading dramatic characters as real , three dimensional people . But , as Alan Sinfield says, Desdemona seems even more discontinuous than Othello because she is ' less a society
developing consciousness than a series of positions that women are conventionally supposed to occupy . . . (She ) makes sense not as a con tinuous subjectivity . . . but in terms of the stories about “ woman ” that were and are told in patriarchal ideology ' ('Othello', pp . 20- 2 ). Female inconsistency (which I deal with at length in chapter 4 ) is a complex amalgam of being ' scripted by men ' ( the phrase is Sinfield 's ), not only literally
, in
the plays , but generally
, in
patriarchal society .
' s obedience
Desdemona
is
it
of his
he
Othello needs to encourage Desdemona 's sexual freedom up to the point that it ensures his own mobility but also subsequently to curb it . He is proud of her speech in the beginning of the play , for it confers a power and a legitimacy on him . Later he smothers her voice , for she suspected must speak and move on behalf only and not when
a
'
if
of
's
of
-
a
of to
of
white world
's .
At
black man
in
.
to to
,
's of
,
in
of
:
a
is
-4 ).
iii .
( III .
, /
can
, /
of
'O
-
is
marriage not the object her passion curse That call these delicate creatures ours And not their appetites 272 This not general male dilemma however we take into account the importance Desdemona for Othello entire exis tence white society then the power the misogynist idea the changeability duplicity and frailty women rouse and disturb Iago Othello and his vulnerability tales female inconstancy become clearer He has begun feel the limits self fashioning for that
we
point that women
in
is
by
up (
is
)
is
's
in
.
;
I.
iii .
',
's
of
'd
to
,
is
it
impressed upon Othello frailty conjunction with his own blackness Brabantio plant the the first possibility duplicity Desdemona Othello mind She has picked lago deceiv her father and may thee 293 which later each
,
;
)
12
's
to
as
,
of
in
,
in
,
By
.
as
,
to
, of
misogyny and racism Iago later speeches cannot opinion capable be missed Women his are the most unnatural loving black men and the greatest fickleness such ceasing acts such asking acknowledge questions love them Othello this he both
.
The interweaving
-
'd
. 'd ( III . to , iii .
She did deceive her father marrying you And when she seem shake and fear your looks She lov them most 210
SEXUALITY AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
say
?
a
:'
).
to
he
,
-9
to 87
..1 /; 61 , I 65 ,
'(
to
. 's
,
/
a
IV
of
a
,
'; )'; '
iii .
III .
(
be
?
,
sir
'; '
in
all
in
all a
are
a
or
his
Othello 's humanity and appeals to manhood Are you man Have you soul sense 378 Would you would bear your fortune Marry patience Or shall you like man Good man spleen And nothing man The more he questions Othello humanity the more he appeals his mas begs Othello culine power over women Promising kill Cassio at
up
to
's
in
.
to
,
.
are a
's
by
:
sexual pleasure and specifically excluding racial difference Christian orthodoxy but the erotic inten experienced tension with The ten
,
than
-
2
;
241
a
Othello
.pp
”
doctrine over sexuality
Christian
(
specific
blackness
to
it .
in
is
some atavistic
colonial power
'
manifestation
of
manifestation the
a
less
of
is
‘
sion
“
passion
Nothing conflicts openly with sity that informs every word
of
or
of
to
all
's
to
.
's
to
at
of
's
as
of
.
,
is
to
of
‘
'
a
of
's
,
's .
as
',
let
'
killing her live although Othello has that time never hinted Desdemona Just Othello white identity was dependent upon Desdemona love his destruction her involves belief women frailty which helps him rationalise her supposed infidelity Desdemona begins embody the common patriarchal dichotomy the white yoke together the otherwise devil For Othello this the only way contradictory experiences being black and man Therefore deepened Desdemona schisms are Othello even though one seeks heal itself the expense the other vulnerability lago Greenblatt accounts for Othello narrative referring the guilt that Christian orthodoxy imposes upon forms
, to
is
)
of
a
to
as
.
a
in
by
(
by
?
of
,
).
,
an
emphasis added Why should Christianity adoptive religion for Othello inform his psyche more fundamentally than the blackness which pervades every aspect his history and identity On the contrary Christianity sexual guilt possibly including that conferred rooted and intensified colour consciousness Thus Othello begins subscribe what wemay see Christian patriarchal view woman
-
of ;
As
,
, '
(
all
-
to
' of ll
on
As
-
's 'd
'
it
/ -
' . s
is
of
A
, /
as
as
at
it
)
. ii .6
(V
.
,
of ,
as
)
3
21 -
In
).
-2
iii .
of
'(
III .
'
(
IV .1 .
'a ,
as
as
of
in
of
,
as
deceiver and sinful but because not over and above his blackness Evident the imagery black and white Othello internalisation his own inferiority well the wickedness women his position honorary white erodes Desdemona becomes the honorary black her duplicity makes her subtle whore closet lock and key my own villainous secrets well begrim and black speech face 391 the Desdemona bedside the whiteness her skin makes both necessary and difficult kill her necessary possible that she betray more men because her beauty makes and therefore Othello must act behalf men including
all
of
,
in
to
,
,
is
it
, he or
all
; ' . ,
),
to
a
,
is
of
,
ironically Brabantio thus transcending his colour become his everyman sort difficult because still the signifier that desirable Othello and that cannot have reminding him that he cannot be everyman Desdemona rather what she represents
view
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
,
As
'
'd
he
a
be
of
.
as
his wife
.
have pointed
out
,
the murderer
also
oppos most
:
by
,
to
of
he
ition male female feminist critics clearly articulated Emilia
An
of
its
,
yes but
as
of
,
Lonely figure
is
and white
is
,
as
' us '
a
).
. of
striping
by of
behalf
slashed
of
‘
's
357
. ii .
'
is on
crime was that he beat Venetian and traduc the Thus even last picture the time when could act simply evoked but white society one cannot his position outsider The flimsily put together zebra his mind disintegrates into constituent polarity black
The Turk
(V .
killed state
he
-
,
of
.
,
or
,
to to
of
is
he
),
,
it
of .
;
-
of
(
.
As
's
).
' (V .i .
/,
17 -8
‘
to
his
and what she is made to represent by Iago , thusmakes Othello alternate between two definitions of his own identity – he is a man in relation to her femininity and black in relation to her whiteness . The contradictions necrophiliac fantasy should be kept in mind when we view kill thee And love thee after Alongside the sexual tension the play charts Othello increasing racial precarious integration society isolation his into white vanishes he becomes more obviously the alien critics have often noted the upsurge his non European past his pagan history and more alone and iso lated becomes even more obvious that also the only black around Compare the confident Othello the senate scene the lonely figure the last scene desperately recalling his services the state Antony delivering his own eulogy already and unlike Hamlet noted his last words graphically capture the split his identity into Christian and infidel becomes the circumcised dog that he once
,
;
all
up
-7 )
.
iv
us .
( III .
,
,
us all
They are but stomachs and we but food They eat hungerly and when they are full They belch 105
racist innuendoes
inform
as
,
,
Moreover
of .
,
is
of
.
even the
:
the play
wit
)
-3
.
1
II .
132
the
,
,
as a
–
do
,
?
of of
in
'
,
all of
is
If
?
?
,
If it
' or '
Iago Othello the authority the play Brabantio the Senate them what we make the tensions between them Othello the patriarch triumphs what Othello patri black man who disintegrates Othello should neither be read is
patriarchy
(
white that shall her blackness
hit .
,
and thereto have
a
of
,
'll
find
a
If
she be black
She
Who
women
casual moments
the
is
the world
most
,
),
to
'
,
in
'
(
, .
p
of
of
an
,
to
to
prioritise this uncomplicated opposition between But set the world men and the world women the former being political Neely loveless and undomesticated 215 would contribute the rupture posited patriarchal thought between private and public polit ical and domestic The world men itself deeply divided indeed
SEXUALITY
RACIAL DIFFERENCE
AND
.
of of
as
oft -
archal , authoritarian and racist spectacle , nor as a show of female or black superiority . Iago has often been seen as related to the Vice figure in a morality play . Unlike the morality Vice however , he does not simply challenge accepted morality but is also the spokesperson for racist and patriarchal platitudes . His position as a sort of mediator between audi producer ence and action and his commented upon role the play within the play are crucial He undoubtedly articulates many the
's
,
is
at
.. .
to
"
.
of
to
of
,
,
,
.
E
in
(“
”
”
"
”
“
,
is
in
).
.p
',
-a
of
to
,
of “ is
,
As
‘
,
to is
by
.
it
,
'
,
viewers common sense attitudes and hence even while his plot offends them seekstheir complicity Peter Stallybrass says Iago narrative superhumanly ingenious but believed others not because Iago the contrary because his the voice common sense the ceaseless repetition given the always lready known the culturally Patri archal Territories 139 Jean Howard hasmade the same point relation Don John Much Ado about Nothing who like Iago often seen be constructing the plot and manipulating the characters the substituting Margaret for Hero play His trick the bedroom window silently assumes and further circulates the idea that women are univer deception and impersonation sally prone Don John lies about -5 ).
a
.
',
's
.
is
,
At
's,
or
.
's,
it as
of
a
black
's
a
produc
Barbican
:
London
in
tion
's
of
.
ideological constructs rather than natural aspects women people Ben Okri became painfully aware Othello colour during
or
of
.
of
by
is
to a
is
,
is
pp as
in
it
, “
,
'
(
of
,
lie
easily passes Hero but his works because Messina truthful reading women Howard Renaissance antitheatricality 174 Therefore not merely lago Brabantio but the audience assumed responses are under scrutiny one level the stereotypical upheld for Desdemona duplicitous and Othello barbarous But open the play radical and alternative reading precisely because laying bare the process unravels and problematises these stereotypes duplicity and barbarity their construction We then get view
to
. I
, .
I
felt
.I
I
.M .
I
.
if
a
.
by
.I
on
it
it
in
it
)
Orkin has recently shown how prevailing South Africa silence about the racist tendencies Othello actually supports racist doctrine and practice Othello and the plain
'( '
in
,
‘
in
:
This history has been varied Martin
3
. . .. -
pp
it
.(
a
is
its
,
. L . R .
C
If
.
agree with James that Othello not play about race play also about race then history has made one 562 a
not begin
as
did
hide
to
I
to
unable used
up
lit
't I
,
I
a
.
to
of
.
in
I
It
performed stage was the first time had seen was the only black person the audience The seats beside me were occupied three white girls They noisily crackled their packets sweets and giggled lot wanted tell them spoke faces would turn towards me After be quiet But suspected that any longer When spoke what feared happened while couldn bear y skin glowed recognition myselfilluminated Faces turned eyes
GENDER
,
RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
face of racism , p . 166 ). Orkin places the continuing prescription , for South African students, of the Arden edition of the play , with Ridley s notoriously racist introduction , in the context of the apartheid state (Shakespeare Against Apartheid , p . 107 ). Surely the fact that it is also the standard text in India , as is Kermode's edition of The Tempest (see chapter 6 ) cannot be viewed as an accident . Nor is it inconsequential that African students are the butt of racist jokes in Delhi. In India , the assumption often is that we are outside racist structures , even while our own brands of colour prejudice , which are complexly intertwined with caste , regional and class differences , and which have been deepened by the being intensified Many colonial encounter ,not only flourish but
'
of
.
are
'
in
-
an
of
to
,
it
of
.
of
.
to
us
of
a
as
a
of
its
of
.
,
of
in
be
-
in
the common sense notions that have been identified white racism closely echoed the instance inter caste marriage India Finally the patriarchalism Indian society does not stand outside allowing own history colour consciousness Instead become means confirmation these attitudes Othello must be point from which wemay examine and dismantle the racism seized and the sexism which both our own hegemonic ideologies and years adopt colonial education have persuaded
would
. of
in
,
.
a
by in
to
.
's
on
11
'
‘
in
as
of
an
,
a
at
,
.
a
, on
a
.
,
an
of
of
contemporary vio Search Answersincludes many accounts analysis lence against women India See also Mies PatriarchyandAccumulationfor how older customs are given modern revival and intersect with modern practices persecution For report women witches Bihar see Hindustan Times October eighteen year old Rajput girl was burnt 1987 Recently her husband pyre Deorala Rajasthan while thousands of people watched Later many more collected temple there Fierce protests for festival the site and money poured build
Kishwar and Vanita
' s in In
1
Notes
to a
of ,
.
'
of an
.
's
,
of
,
,
or
a
is
do
burning
's
of a
's
an
of
of
.
's
by
organisations were countered women revivalist processions meetings and pub lications Hindu revivalists have been contending that abolition sati amounts rights and therefore also violation individual woman freedom Under the guise sophisticated sociological analysis there has also been the argument that sati being opposed today only by westernised section the Indian intelligentsia who not understand India her customs their spirit Kishwar and Vanita article The a
is
. It
,
.
-
essay despite the fact than she concentrates on the neglect whenever she does mention gender relations she relates analysis also indebted Errol Lawrence common sense along with Fanon illuminates several aspects the play archetypal man and Othello black man are premised Ridley black inferiority We might assume that crudity such
's
to
-
.
of
's
as
as a
-
,
.
its
of
's
to
as an
,
.I
,
of
of
-
,
am
,
in
to
of
Both views then
upon racist notions
's
,
.
in
's
,
,
,
up
assumptions are traceable somewhat passé but more sophisticated accounts asserting Othello Fiedler for example ends essential moral whiteness and lago
is
3
; in , of
am
Cowhig indebted race Othello criticism them racial politics racist assumptions which
I
2
,
to
,
is its
,
in
',
of
Roop Kanwar simple revival shows how sati not just ancient practice but ties with dominant political and economic interests also discusses promulgation how despite new anti sati legislation the Indian government has dealing with the issue failed and not interested
AND RACIAL DIFFERENCE
SEXUALITY
63
status as the true black . Ridley s arguments , although in other respects very different , similarly oscillate between rescuing Othello from the status of ablack (he maybe African but is he altogether negroid ?) , arguing inherent inferiority somewhat loving instinctual creature and warm reason and intellect though deficient thoroughly ignoring Desdemona evaluates her worth the dignity with which she facesmen who have seen her publicly struck
( he
by
,
,
),
is
his
in
is
's
on
in
of
)
in
at a
saw
. I
,
's
”
“
of
to
, .
beginning
am
I
,
's
,
and Martin Orkin book Shakes article And wash the Ethiop white Karen Newman peare Against Apartheidboth make significant departures different directions from previous criticism very late stage the play them the production this project unique unable comment them fully Newman article so
4
).
he
(
in
a for
'
of
so
'
:
by
in
‘
,
that Othello Desdemona and Cassio gloss over the ways which they
'
in
I
.
).
bation Othello also think that seek only love and honor the play
(p
a
to
( p . 88 to ) is say to
65
of in
of
.
I
's
-
of
to
interrelate racial and sexual difference and Orkin brings together the my own production contexts and reception both together discuss many concerns here differ from Orkin assessment of the Venetian Senate no evidence emerges suggest that they share hidden racist disappro the detail the language
to
;
of
of
,
,
be
‘
'
, .pp
no
I
,
)
(
'
'
It
,
as a
of of
:
)
, .6p
by
,
up
so
he
of
at
, be
89
to of
.
in
and
by
, s'
to
.
,
be
,
, to
to
in
of
a
to in
in
to
to
only desireth have lycense take much blackamoores here regard transport them into Spaine and Portugall Her Majesty this realme and the charitable affection the suppliant hath showed being stranger worke the delivery great greatmisery and thraldom and our countrymen that were there bring them home their native country and that the same could not done to
prisoners
-
to
yt
London whom
to
,
of
,
a
of
and Vice Admyralls Maiours may appertaine Whereas Casper van Senden merchant Lubeck did his labor and travell procure her Majesty subjects that were detayned prisoners Spaine Portugall released and brought them hither into this realme his owne cost and charges for the which his expenses and declaration his honest minde towards those to
open warrant the Lord maiour and other publicke officers whatsoever
all
An
(
's
.
's
's
. an
'(
motives Renaissance SelfFashioning 233 251 should noted tht such slips coexist explicit devaluation will discuss race theoretical parameter which with shortly Eagleton discussion the play William Shakespearetakes almost account Othello colour communiqué quoted Cowhig Elizabeth reads
of
5
). or :
- 's
of
to
of
.
to a
of
as
'
guard against viewing any are themselves flawed the racial structures we need simple oppositions them racist Iago Even otherwise radical critics have not purged their language the racist moral commonly attached connotations colour Greenblatt for example speaks the Iago human the unfathomable darkness whole enterprise dark essence
to
so
a
,
the land and Christian people that to
aide and assist
him
to
name required
take
of
he
's
their Lordship as
up
They are therefore
in
,
perishe for want of service whereby through their labor they might be mayntained
.
hable persons the subjects
and numbers
of
of
in
of
,
so
of
without great expense and also considering the reasonableness his requestes many blackamoores from hence doth thinckeyt transport very good exchange people may well be spared populous and that those kinde this realme being
to
's
,
of
of
, of
,
suche blackamoores shall finde within this realme with the consent good pleasure their masters who we doubt not considering her Majesty have people sent out her lande and the good deserving those kinde the stranger
,
.
to
of
by
of in
'
'
I
,
to
am
I
;
',
by
',
'
,
I.
in
to
'
use the term honorary
relation patriarchy
's
phrase honorary male black following Alison Heisch Elizabeth Heisch her essay Queen Elizabeth and the persistence argues that Elizabeth strengthened patriarchal rule emphasising her mas suggesting that Othello stresses his usefulness culine attributes white society
I
6
in
to
's
subjectes and that they shall doe charitably and like Chris towardes her Majesty people tians rather be served their owne countrymen then with those kinde will yielde those their possession him
in
of
of
in
of
all
.
In
the black rapist the section approach the history of the Hindu epic
.
of
to
I
. of
I
on
to
perpetuate the myth white woman has been used The Tempest will return the limitations Fanon Some the things have been speaking surface
,
on
a
of
on
,
to
,
as
as
of .
to
.
,
's
of ,
on
of
's
' in s
,
.
a
to
by
of
to
Ramayana This tells the story Ayodhya Rama who the heir apparent the throne was exiled the forest for fourteen years his father the direction the latter fourth wife There Rama wife Sitawas abducted by demon king Ravana The battle victory and his sunsequent return which followed resulted Rama his kingdom The development the story over the centuries bears testimony the grafting various episodes emphasising chastity wifely devotion and obedience demonising of female propensity for evil well idealisation the stereotype of passive wife to an
on
in
of
,
of of )75 .
.
(p
a
of
,
so
-
in
to
.
originally simple story Uma Chakravarti has suggested that these additions were made the Ramayana accordance with increasing Aryan taboos women and alongside the socio economic development feudal society and later tied with medieval consolidation that the depiction Sita represents the codification the stereotype passive Hindu woman p 68
;
,
in
in a
the
'.
's
's
on
,
on
it is
to
.
as
of
in
to
's
'
is
.
's
is In -
to a
a
,
to
.
is
's
till
.
of
it
to
But still remains be analysed how this process also reveals deepening racial story differentiation The original geographical parameters North India sub sequently expanded Ravana kingdom became popularly located the South and today Sri Lanka Ravana people are rakshasasthe term became identified with what originally signified lower caste and today taken mean demon Rama originally dark colour has faded near white representation the stage and cinema whereas Ravana becomes ever darker the story current serialisation the national televi depicted through South Indian dance and music forms sion network Ravana court We need locate how racial differentiation crept and how connected the
's ,
:
's
of
.
is
the story
.
of
-
,
-
,
male collectively constitute the evil forces
.
of
is
'
's
'
, to
as
,
is
'
'
the wicked woman While Sita the depiction the passive wife well sexually licentious Ravana the white wife chaste and obedient the alien woman sister Swarupnakha propositions Rama brother Lakshmana Not only does he chop off her nose and ears but this incident the provocation for Ravana abduction Sita Thus the wicked step mother the promiscuous alien woman and the non Aryan
theme
.
8
him
,
of a , in
's
's of in
;
it
to
.
a
to of a to
of
,
of
acceptable his adoption of rules conduct achievements which make order efface the negative connotations blackness the same way that Elizabeth king even though she had the needed claim that she had heart and stomach body woman use this comment with some reservations needs be carefully and selectively used inferiority has resulted for the idea that black men them lusting after any
I
7
his
its
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
The ' infinite variety of patriarchal discourse , mobility
Fragmentation
and women
The theme of racial difference in Othello allows us to locate the heterogeneity of patriarchal power and the oppositions to it . But what of other texts of the period in which such a theme either is , or has been generally construed to be , missing ? Renaissance and Jacobean tragedy repeatedly poses a real difficulty for dominant Anglo - American critical traditions with their emphasis on what Dollimore, following Fekete , has discussed as a preoccupation with a unified metaphysical and experi ential truth , order and stability (Radical Tragedy , chapter 3) . If L . C . Knights finds that Antony and Cleopatra ‘ embodies different and apparently irrecon ciliable evaluations of the central experience (quoted Brown , Antony Cleopatra 172 Clifford Leech feels compelled confer unity text that resistant The Duchess Malfi we are pulled succes sively different directions and the completion our reading are likely constructing whole feel we have the task which Webster has given the separate parts Clifford Leech quoted Brown Duchess English studies texts have not only xlviii Throughout the history interpreted satisfy this demand for been evaluated and written unity but Tony Davies points out even mutilated they are seen
on a and
to
,
,
,
of of
,
a
if
to
to
re , -
,
as
( pp
,
be
,
)
(
on
of
(
us
of
to in
).
p
.
of
in
:' .. .
it
is
to
),
, .p
'
,
,
' ' in
of
of
).
.
8 -9
defective Recent materialist criticism the Renaissance has been increasingly occupied with forces heterogeneity contradiction fragmentation
as .
,
,
But first this view
is
a
its
to
.
these plays
.
in
,
is
to
.
in
of
to
of
or
at
of ,
disobedient women
I ,
to of
or
a
as
,
of
,
as
,
of
archal view
.
p
',
.
of
as
of
5
),
as
(
',
society Montrose difference Renaissance literary studies power The with identifying the diversity well consolidation very characteristics Jacobean drama that liberal criticism read symptomatic decadence chaos lack moral cohesion can and have been interpreted radical resistance idealist ideologies work ing then employ the idea stability now their favour shall comply with the drive suggest that this refusal Renaissance drama closely related foregrounding towards moral and poetic closure disorderly patri least problematic women We certainly get and
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA rather heterogeneously composed , by which I mean it is not presented as having that seamless and inviolate quality which hegemonic ideologies seek to acquire . Instead , we can see the various sources from
, ,
.
by
in
,
are
which it is derived , the purposes which it serves and the strategies which it employs . All of these not consistent and their internal conflicts their politics are revealed Secondly patriarchal attitudes are also con
to
I
In
,
of
a
of
.
by to
on
.I
in a
ity
do
at
of
as
a
of
.
of
I
in
.
,
of
of
the
.
of
tested the women themselves and the resultant conflict prob lematises their hegemonic stature Both these disturbances affect the plays structure this chapter want examine the construction disorderly women and the next two chapters will consider the female subject and the form the dramas Especially when viewed from the perspective society which has not gone through the same process consolidation Western Europe patriarchal author these texts foreground the efforts consolidation but not participate closure that ratifies the same have already single artistic truth and valid indicated that the critical emphasis reading worked socially marginalised exclude the reader Not only
air
,
In
,
,
of
(
firm
's
as a
to
. M of . W . of
E
as
an
,
.
A
as
of
.
a
in
, , .p 8 ),
of
'
a
of
,
.
of
to
the
it
for
of
-
in
a
to
book
is
all
.
,
,
on
a
is
on
.
to
it
,
,
to
in
as
,
in
as to
, .
as
s
/
is
disorderly women the polyphonic foregrounding experience may contemporary but her be seen useful for feminist evaluations The need sixteenth century England absorb massive social and geographic mobility and political well economic upheavals was emphasise almost desperately that the world manifested the effort could not turn upside down that was too solid melt into There multifaceted dialectic between movement and change the one change not hand and fixity and stability the other Although necessarily progressive during this period becomes particularly threatening the dominant order which had face vast and early modern Europe wide ranging changes affecting the society unprecedented social mobility religious and political crisis the face polarisation and hardening there was doctrine Sinfield Literature pro orthodoxy Protestant England reiteration the form misogyny videntialist belief monarchic absolutism and represent society and The dominant ideology the age sought conception nature stable and static the world fixed and unchanging hierarchy was the ideological map the world according particular power elite and not Tillyard influential
he admitted
’
,
to
see
,
' , (
the people
.pp 5 of -7 ).
):
, ',
mind
(
'
in
,
uncontested and belief Dollimore Shakespeare cultural materialism Montrose quotes the officially prepared homily Exhortation Concerning Good Order and Obedience Rulers and Magistrates 1559 The Elizabethan World Picture claimed
the collective
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
,
of
,
in
,
,
, ,
,
to
. ..
, no
,
be
to
,
is
.
('
,
,
.
.pp ,
).
or
,
,
is
all
,
,
,
in
,
in
So
:
',
of
,
ryghte ordre there reigneth For where there enormitie synne and Babylonicall confusyon The
laste
abuse carnal libertie purpose playing
-
all
continue and indure
53 4
of
, of
,
,
.
in
,
in
,
in a
all
Almightye God hath created and appoynted things heaven earth and Everye degre people waters mooste excellente and perfecte order theyr vocation callying and office hath appointed theyr duety and them hyghe degree ordre Some are some lowe some kynges and prynces some inferiors and subjectes priestes and laymenne Masters and Servauntes Fathers and chyldren husbandes and wives riche and poore and everyone thynges have nede other that lauded and praysed the goodly god wythoute the whiche no house no citie no commonwealth can order
Not only
as
,
of as
,
the props
the medieval
of
most
of
collapse
654
).
(
'
, .p '
a
social hierarchy picture world Stone to
lenge
of
it
of
,
,
to
all
does the picture presented here attempt erase contradic tions between the sexes classes and other social groupings well those within them and thus patently falsify the actual state affairs but also implicitly acknowledges the spectre disorder and the chal
in
at
of
of
,
in
-
in
to
of
.
on
,
in
, ,
in
, -
to
in
is
It
this context that the foregrounding the woman question this time needs be placed not just literature but religious tracts and sermons state policies the non fictional writings both men and women educational theories conduct books and pronounce ments the family The political and ideological necessity redefine
unpre status women becomes obvious the face changes gender changes span cedented that included relations These
.
in
of
the nature and
of
.
,
of
,
of
the economic and social status women their demography and spatial placement within society and also the ideologies their containment and scope for resistance in
in
,
by
in
an
in
's 's ,
,
of
:
's
,
in
of
in
Assessments women the drama have fluctuated accordance with differences about the status real life women the early modern period Juliet Dusinberre Shakespeare and now much refuted view emergent feminism the Nature Women that there was Renaissance society and consequently the plays has been challenged Lisa in
's
to
-
of
.
,
lic
a
;
is
.
a
a
on
as
of
,
on
in
,
Daughters Jardine contention Still Harping that the decline women actual statuswas accompanied by the punishment assertive femininity warning against transgressive the stage which served women Both views suppose mimetic relationship between history argument that the Belsey and literature rather more sophisticated drama moves towards bourgeois liberal split between private and pub woman and man Feminist criticism needs contextualise the frag
of
of
;
of
in
of
mentary and ruptured identities the disorderly Jacobean heroines fully terms recent documentations the heterogeneity and complexity Renaissance society the literary representations
more
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE
DRAMA
emerge as both constructed by and radically disruptive of an authority which was historically simultaneously being consolidated and
women
.
in crisis
Both the fear and the possibility of female mobility
:
since
her
)
1 . 3 -4
(
,
Women Beware Women
III .
speaking
to
's ,
's
but ever
there
cutted
,
grown
She
so
She was but one day abroad
home
the
.
privacy
,
symbol
no
away from
of
the
increased in the transition from feudalism to capitalism . Increasing urbanisation made spaces available to women hitherto confined to feudal estates : new shops , theatres , streets , each others ' homes . This , at least theoretically , opened up the possibility of new movement for women and under mined effective male supervision over their smallest actions . Bianca 's sexual transgression is mapped out in terms of her literal movement
115
of
's
by
.
in
,
an
of
is
);
(I
in
Chaste Maid
..1
A
'
's
in
the freedom
'
Middleton
the daughters
of
Cheapside calls city women although this freedom not aspect realised the possibiliyofmobility becomes female disobedi rejection stereotypical femininity ence the drama Moll Cutpurse
Yellowhammer
her restlessness cannot Based the real life Mary marry and appropriates the Frith Moll dresses like man refuses normally male role keeper social peace Both literally and ideolog ically she strays from her kind 211 The Duchess Malfi pioneer movement conceives her own transgression terms into wilderness Where shall find nor path nor friendly clew Interestingly be my guide 278 Hindi morally loose woman on
:
'I
,
).
,
of
1
'(
a
,
in
). (
To
/
a
in
of ).
.ii . .
to
.1 .
of , II,
80
-
I
/
, .ii , ‘
one who walks
literally
'.)
chalu
–
is
I.
'(
'
a
of
‘
so
( of far )
a
,
(
’
is
expressed also her quick movements stay she repeats The Roaring Girl 165 184
,
as
of
by
of
is
, , a
(
.
to In
a
,
of
,
,
,
.
in
of
emphasise
,
as
,
their adversaries then although from very physical and conceptual female mobility The repeated comparisons the literature the period woman with gold jewels money and other easily transferable property express among other things notion the unstable nature wealth comparable idea conveyed and women the Indian context The women well different perspectives
wife
that loves
,
a
be ,
,
men
's
from
all
up
‘
cas
'd
be
,
her husband
;
as a
)
keep close
in
.)
.
st
'
.
43 )
he
I.1
of
.
Therefore she must now
170 and taught
.1 .
(I
' To
'(
). is ‘a
162
. , 12 ,
I.1
'(
is
stolen away again eyes
of or
as
girls paraya dhan the reference alien wealth Butmobility and escape For Leantio transference contain the possibility Women purchase and most match Beware Women Bianca most unvalued less jewel But has spirited her away from her parents she the best piece theft and like other property may
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
To go after the rate of
Not the
my ability ,
swinge of her own will. . . . (1.1.90 -2 )
licentious
of a
).
,
99
11 .
to
-
a
of
of
in
of
.
to of
is
.
of
;
of
-
as
,
III .
The
Thus Monticelso defines whores as 'treasuries by extortion fillid / And emptied by curs ' d riot' and compares Vittoria to a ' guilty counterfeited coin ' ( White Devil 945 Here we see how the mobility compared society cash oriented with land based one reinforces the instability patriarchal gender relations images comparing women property evoke the potential loss both Themedieval notion female changeability and duplicity thus reworked terms the political implications movement
is
be
's
up
in
to
.
,
is
,
.
of
,
is
This not discount the authoritarian consolidation the state and the family and the increasing confinement exclusion and oppress ion women The plays themselves often proceed towards their literal enclosure which now something which cannot taken for granted repeated violently but must be often Middleton Yellowhammer not alone his intention
,
so
)
40 -3
1 .
,
:
,
,
up
'
in
in
,
Beware
a
Tis
Women
Pity Women Penthea The Broken Heart and Annabella are variously confined locked and closed the attempt
'
in
Bianca
III .
Cheapside
to She s
The Changeling
in
Chaste Maid
,
in
Malfi Beatrice
,
The Duchess
of
(A
't.
on
a
,
if
or
.
as
As As
lock this baggage my gold She shall see carefully little sun close room Can keep her from the light
Whore
control
,
as
,
of
).
,
,
to
as
its
to
to
,
as
'
of
.
as
of
of
has shown
accepted
it
Tawney
),
(
firstly
as
'
for ,
limited
–
of
,
as
its
of
,
of
.
to
be
of
–
.
's
of
its
(
,
The
,
,
as
of
of
.
female deviance becomes spatially explicit Economically the productivity Renaissance women was lessened they were eased out brewing spin traditional occupations such ning weaving and midwifery and from skilled retail and provision Working Life Joan Kelly suggests that since patri trades see Clark production archy derives historic forms from the current mode the separation home and workplace during this period intensifies oppression The family becomes increasingly restricted women two essential roles the unit for individual consumption and the means biological reproduction and regulation sexuality and women begin economically spatially and ideologically restricted domain Although Protestantism some extent resisted medieval forms misogyny redefinition woman was consistent with the strengthening patriarchy within the family well the parallel and related tightening monarchic control and state authority The sup posedly democratic implications Protestant thought were certainly the main institu
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
70
tions of commercial civilisation and provided
a creed for the classes who were to dominate the future, and secondly , women were clearly excluded from the individualist ideals of personal fulfilment and were increasingly defined by their relationships to men instead of being invited - even theoretically – to participate in any self -fashioning . Witch
of
an
.
on
);
3
, .p of
.
to
it
to
to
and valuable documentation
of
the literature concerning the nature and status women formal controversy intellectual calisthenics similar arguments have been advanced concerning the four century long querelle femmes see Kelly chapter four and debates
'
as “ a
; of
);
no
(
des
-
,
p
.
'(
Jacobean
'
vast
or
her own
by the Elizabethan and
generated
44 )
sections
:
to
of
,
or
as
.
to
-
is
-
is
to
-
no
I
of
,
of
(
'
‘a
of
,
,
on to
in
its
height overwhelming majority mania reached the 1650s and those brought trial were social deviants Therefore the one hand feminist historiography effectively footing perfect equality with removed Renaissance women from Kelly placed men where earlier historians had them the other evidence and expressions their resistances and the instability light Although the status quo have also increasingly been brought paradox here surely repression likely intensify precisely see challenged many feminist critics have found when authority dif ficult reconcile the two Thus literature ranging from pamphlets plays has often been regarded either unconnected actual female seeking rebellion contain the same Woodbridge dismisses
a
of
if
(
by
(
of
lay –
of
to
an
as
of
as a
-
to
, or
is
.
,
to
in
up
);
68
, p .
(
,
to
)
(
of
').
I
is
it
)
of is
or
in
'
of
-
a
Jardine suggests that the assertive dramatic heroine indication proto feminist impulse society the drama the period Still Harping and The Duchess Malfi background great social Elsewhere have argued that against upheavals and woman oriented discontents not actual feminist purely actions hard read the writings the querelle either conspiracy academic exercise intellectual contain female Firstly although the debate was formally isolated from assertiveness political action there ranging evidence active female resistance from the Beguines late medieval cities who were celibate women living female communities and supporting themselves their collec tive work women within the radical English sects who actively tried liberate themselves from male clerical and familial authority although they did not theorise their rebellion Kelly and from women
to
.
)
p
',
on
',
s
I'
of
a
byto
,
in
,
in
'(
of
of
of
In
.
in
,
,
in
turn
and bread riots
in
rebuking priests and pastors being central actors grain town and country and participating tax revolts top and other rural disturbances Davis Women 176 the significant percentage women seventeenth century English enclo sure riots Calvinist Edinburgh 1637 the resistance Charles imposition the Book Common Prayer was opened crowd
who
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
71
,
31
In
51 ). in
.
in
.
,
,
(S
to
(
pp
,
at
tax
serving women ' as was the Montpellier revolt 1645 en become increasingly vocal and specific England proletarian women voicing their demands hepherd Amazons becament Parliament
‘ rascally
to
,
to
."
in a
by
to
of
of
is
;
an
of
The querelle remained unaware activistsshed and vice vice versa but their coexistence ver justification not coincidental the former was answer the ideological logical oppression the women which was resisted different way the latter Secondly we need pay attention the powerful ideological con
,
of
a
is
of
;
are
are
on
a
in
is
in
of
.
in
tradictions the dominant discourses about women For example quasi what emerges the writings the humanists kind egalitarianism equality between the sexes which there sense that derives from increasing emphasis individualism but gender in
of
's
A
via
are
in
,
as
of -
to
of to
a
of
.
,
up
.
,
of
of
.
still sharply defined These now expressed both terms governing rules conduct and statements about the essentially different nature men and women which had been the hallmark medieval thought and orthodox Christianity The humanists stress civic virtue and social roles but end with even stricter control over female activity permitted education than traditional Christian culture Women arguments sometimes because their minds are conceded variety Henry Cornelius Agrippa be equal those men Treatise roles
of
is
,
?
to
a
it
.
to
;
in
as
,
of
in
to
at
),
(
as
to
's
,
of
the Nobilitie and Excellencye Woman Kynde 1542 and other times rectify nature defects logic with Thomas More but both kinds Utopia More seems work exclude them from public life be typically patriarchal household and yet generally favour completely typical He writes his daughter and favourite pupil
:
Margaret
up in
to
if
a
',
.(
,
's
to
to
I
,
be
all
by
it
girl
a
.
means
892
Similarly
in
to
of .
p
',
',
see
,
revolt against fathers who society they forbade women enter
'
to
all
in
‘
daughters
on
).
69
.
(p
of
feminist theorists schooled some them
a
early
for as
:
it
a
for
).
,
(
in
for
on
radical view
Christian Woman but
of
a
of
Juan
The Instruction
a
female education pros the same essay goes cribe the role teacher the female sex Kaufman Vives 892 Despite their social prescriptions the very contradictions space humanist arguments allow female learning which rapidly strains the limits prescribed for Joan Kelly has aptly characterised
,
Luis Vives takes
on
)
p
.
little one like his mother girl only she will make zeal imitate her mother virtue and three boys Kaufman Juan Luis Vives safely
of
.
. ..
grant you happily and everything except sex Yet let for the inferiority her sex by her learning Such would prefer
a
May God
to
,
Then too the rationalist attack custom and tradition gave contem porary feminists powerful arguments resist the roles imposed upon
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
women (see Smith , ' Feminism in Seventeenth - Century England and Reason 's Disciples ) . For example , in the debates over cross -dressing Hic Mulier or the mannish woman , neatly demonstrates that change is a
of nature and that every custom and transitory :
part
and social value is both relative
the
,
without
discourse
1620 emphasis
,
Vir
-
censure Haec
.(
contempt
and
slaveindeed
to
become
.. .
Reason
a
,
will
of
To concludecustome is an Idiot, andwhosoever dependethwholly upon
,
him
It is a fashion or custome with us to mourne in Blacke : yet the Agian and Romane Ladies ever mourned in white . . . for you to cut the hayre of your upper lips , familiar heere in England , every where else almost thought unmanly . . . Imight instance in a thousand things that onely customeand not Reason hath approved .
)
added
of of
'.
,
of
'
as
of
).
in
of
on
, ,
as
of
-
'.
of
,
,
as
:'
to
as
.
in
on
as
My point
An
of
is
It
.
,
;
13
of . 2 -
,
of
to
(
it -
as
,
or
of
)
(
'
,
as
for
for
-
's
Many humanists were using similar arguments William Heale example considers law Apologie Women man made and therefore changeable not argues that natural divine lack education that has disabled women mental courage for revenge Heale also reverts the patriarchal stereotype women the patterne beauty the Mistresse innocencie the Queene loue the picture delight pp see also his chapter four Such oscillation between remnants earlier thinking the woman question and newer argu ments reflects the problematic inconsistencies the forgrounding thought women Tudor and Stuart social But Hic Mulier uses the attack custom assert female equality We are free born men have free election and free spirits we are compunded like parts and may with like liberty make benefit our creations
of
)
to
an
as in
'
'
in
to
),
‘
to
.
So
by
to
de
be
by
be
;
in
's
of
by
,
(
-
'
‘
By
,
by ,
on
by
.
of
to
of
's
to
,
to
's
(
on
up
on
on
is
that Protestant and humanist doctrines were more incon traditional misogyny because the one hand they invoked logic and rationalism question many existing orthodoxies and legitimise women the other hand sought subordinate position period clearly which women defences the related custom with out the full authority the crude but powerful natural arguments stressing that women are equal medieval misogynists men and advocating mutual affection marriage and frown still not the same ing advancing holy matrimony passion ideal and yet tight excluding women from the new emphasis ening parental control self fulfilment which itself was apparently paradoxical view state authoritarianism the dominant ideologies tried redefine women status the changing circumstances but actually they opened uneasily yoked irreconciliable contradictions that could only together and could also seized upon women writers Christine Pisan had earlier begun counter misogynist arguments asking women notice how these same philosophers contradict sistent than
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
73
' ( p . 7).
each other
Moreover , women 's defences and other writings of the querelle went beyond utilising rationalist elements of male discourses – they began to confront and challenge masculine learning . Of course these writings are themselves riddled with contradictions . Woodbridge says that they are not feminist in the twentieth -century meanings of the term . Surely any
expectations would be ahistorical . Christine de against male arguments and logic :
such
had
Pisan
warned women
,
)
256 -7
.(
up
.pp
,
,
,
.
to
of
all
are
-
,
as
,
try
Remember , dear Ladies , how these men call you frail , unserious , easily influ strange and deceptive tricks enced but yet hard using kinds catch you just one lays traps for wild animals Flee flee my ladies and avoid their company under these smiles hidden deadly and painful poisons
is
all
to
:'
to
can
).
,
,
is
on
patriarchal thinking women itself contradictory but duplicitous and changeable identity confer upon them a
to
seeks
changeability
,
:
in
88 -9
).
. ii .
in
,
in
in
European feudal society which saints the Church angels
'
of
is
(
a
IV
or
a
Is
/
as a
treated women
in
of by
up
.
is
to
'
pit and pedestal common curious mixture
between
an
.
are frequently mouthed
In
remarks above indicate Renaissance drama such views patriarchal The splitting feminine identity stereotypes adequately summed Brachiano The White Devil god Woman man either wolf Such oscillation
's
Christine
as it
:
of
White devils the politics Not only
,
.
as
’
(
,
of
is
to
.. .
at
,
In
least some women writers picked
of
this tone passion male institutions and ideas We are contrary men good because they are contrary that which Their unreasonable minds which know not what reason make them nothing better than hardly dis brute beasts Jane Anger Protection Women 1589 We protest miss such academic England
ate opposition
20
in
its
108
is
,
. ..
'
fac d
' -
of
' ,
the white devil the cun fair
the exterior
)
.
-9
The Changeling
of
(
,
,
'
.
's
43 )
, of .
(
'
,
, V . .iii
p
Hence the common theme whose real nature lurks within
(
’
saints
devils
p
'
of , of ' . 37 ). ,
's
of
Brustein
ning
St ).
, .p
'(
in
in
,
the streets devils the kitchen and apes bed Rowbotham Sublimation and malediction had been ingeniously reconciled garments means the Paul view that the purity the body and impurity beauty the soul Russell Women was the instru ment temptation hiding the loathsomeness under within she stinking putrid excremental stuff Chrysostom quoted phlegm full
,
a
no
is
,
.
of
is
is
a
in
Although such splitting appears universal patriarchal thought the stereotype neither simple nor stable but culled from vast variety historically specific inputs For example there precise counter
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
74
, and initially no formal malediction of woman thought as in Christian . The feminine principle was neither subordinate nor weak or inferior but appeared as Shakti or energy , force and power . However , with the consolidation of feudal relations , Shakti worship gradually dwindled into a secret practice and survives today largely as black magic ( see Chattopadhyay ). The power of the goddess figure is now split – into the figure of the benevolent married goddess and that of the malevolent single goddess : ‘ The blood thirsty goddess . . . never appears in a matrimonial context , but rather alone , and surrounded by the paraphernalia of killing . . . But as the consort of any of the gods the goddess seems to undergo a kind of transformation into what is almost ( an ) antithesis . . .' (Babb , p . 141 ) . Thus despite totally different contexts part
to
Eve in Hinduism
Hinduism began to posit a dichotomy of female purity and malignity analogous (but never identical ) to that in Christian thought , and a com parable demonisation of active femininity as witchcraft . The notion of female duplicity and changeability is premised upon such a dichotomy . It reflects the attempt to contain the possibility of female change within a patriarchal stasis - by offering a notion of the
.
-
in
:
of
to
of
,
of
lity
in
the
of
of
is
of
all
eternal changeability of woman , a theory of female instability is employed in support of universal and unchanging female nature and a uniform butnot unified identity is conferred upon women The stasis power pre Copernican any system the oppressed crucial thought the stillness the earth guarantees the movement the sun fixity the Elizabethan world picture each link ensures the stabi
,
/
,
as
:'
is
of in
,
is
the chain colonial discourses the racial other immobilised posited and the stillness women crucial for social familial cosmic harmony Thy firmnessmakes my circle just And makes me end where
').
,
.
no 's
, be
.
is
is
it
.
,
on is
air
it,
in
to
of
(
’
I
, ‘
Donne Valediction Forbidding Mourning Patriarchal thought incorporates the possibility female movement order control investingwomen stability with moral values Thus the wandering woman evil and accident that witches are mobile riding through the broomsticks The good woman still But every began
.
to
in
an
fix
.
its
of
in
of
to
as
to
is
's
all
,
.
is a
so
capacity formovement must women The attempt them relation men and also construct their duplicity eternal Such effort becomes particularly imperative the context Renaissance politics and obsession with change The theme female duplicity runs through the
woman devil within anticipated and curtailed
,
,
,
,
to
changing conditions
.
sources and adapts itself
to
,
us
all
,
,
of
a
of its
variety
,
.
from
or
of
,
:
,
drama Iago Bosola the Cardinal Flamineo Monticelso Alsemero preoccupied with the changeability DeFlores Antony Othello are suppose the repetition women However should not lead uniformity stability the stereotype which actually enriches itself
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
The language of patriarchy The figure of Cleopatra is the most celebrated stereotype of the goddess and whore and has accommodated and been shaped by centuries of myth -making and fantasy surrounding the historical figure . In Shakes
peare s representation of her , we can identify several different strands of contemporary meaning which intertwine with connotations attach ing to her from earlier stories . My purpose in unravelling these is to suggest that Shakespeare does not simply indicate a stereotype but depicts it as constructed by variousmale perspectives in the play. Later , in chapter 5 , I shall suggest that such a construction is then challenged
'
pp
of . 87 -8
see
of
.
's
can
and dismantled ; here we see how Renaissance politics and stagecraft shape Cleopatra representation
, )
4
)
to 25
'(
IV
. .xii
as
of
(
' :
of
,
.
).
( III .
‘
',
as
as
is
, '
'a
),
or
, of
's
,
of , 's
of
or
Iago
(
like Monticelso characterisation whores below view Desdemona the pronouncements Flamineo Bosola Ferdinand DeFlores and Alsemero see chapter the construc Cleopatra draws upon the medieval notion tion the sexual appetite rampant and potentially criminal women the primordial sexual being she also maledicted immoral the false soul and boggler play xiii 110 Ellen Terry one the first actresses Firstly
-
.
'
as
as
54 )
, .
,
Isis
'( .
13 )
.
xii
'
(
, IV .
is
whore
p
,
Cleopatra believed that through her Shakespeare had told the truth quoted Brown Antony and Cleopatra about the wanton Therefore she simultaneously and goddess well gypsy and triple turned contradictory position social status places her are refracted their operation through the prism not work the same way for men For example Changeling Middleton Beatrice Joanna thinks that she can buy power But DeFlores gives DeFlores her wealth her the illusion although literally her servant beyond the reach man and such her class power Soon has her kneeling feet
.
:
his
at
is
as
, ;
I
.
all things
:
62 )
-
155
.
iv
( III .
.
me
?
'd
its
;
of
all
soon may you weep
,
.
of
-
a
for
in all ;
I
in
go
am
I
rich
Let this silence thee The wealth Valencia shall not buy My pleasure from me purpose Can you weep Fate from determin So
.
,
is
,
he
.
,
all
.
me once make thee master gold and jewels the wealth have poor unto my bed with honour Letme Stay hear
Of
And DeFlores
.
as
in
,
The
's
;
of
Beatrice
,
in
's
do
,
class
,
,
of
in
in a
Cleopatra
Secondly
Status wealth gender and
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE
DRAMA
183 4 to
pp
).
-
in
to
,
, be . a
of
'(
,
The
,
the
Beatrice cannot simultaneously be a woman and have power over a appropriate man . Throughout drama women find the need Subject Tragedy masculine virtue see Belsey Since femin inity and power are increasingly incompatible woman author Isis
.
an
,
,
fill as
Elizabeus
goddess and served dessant
to
as a
her visually by
fixed
I
to
'
is
to
is
'
ity
As of
any sort necessarily occupy uneasy sp space the precious queen Cleopatra deified into the goddess deificesy recalling the attempts depict Elizabeth the Virgin Queen which
the iconographic
vacuum
,
to
,
I
by
(
p
',
of
a
of
of
a
. 55 ). too , '
of
a
,
of
I
I
:
asserts
)
-
18
, 16
vii .
.
First Blast
Renais
the Trumpet
of to
John Knox
of
government
;
of
,
will
and Cleopatra evoke specifically
Elizabeth
female
the
sance fears
man
's
Despite this both
( III .
for a
Appear there
,
i' th '
we bear war my kingdom
president
of
charge
as
A
And
, .ie .
of
'by
as
I
'
similarly
,
Elizabeth
.
Catholicism
;
by
the exit
:'
it
of
needed however rein negating her femininity she could only secure her force her power repudiat transcending the limitations status ruler her sex ing body know have the weak and feeble woman but have king and king England the heart and stomach Heisch Patriarchy Cleopatra Queen Elizabeth and the Persistence created
in
.
,
to
,
- of
)
(
,
it of
,
as
of
,
de
–
,
of
against Monstrous Regiment Women 1558 was directly addressed Mary Tudor but other queens Mary Queen Scots Margaret Parma Catherine Medici and Mary Lorraine contributed the spectre female government which attacks Ironically such fears were heightened even actual female authority several spheres was a
as
,
). a
).
(
in
all
's
as
in
.
of
,
for a
a
,
a
by
a
Margaret Cavendish testified that heroic actions public employ and eloquent pleadings are denied our this age Kelly
,
1656
,
as 86
, .p
71 ;
-
.pp
,
(
,
of
.
is
dismantled Evidence available that women constituted substantial part medieval armies and often occupied leading positions within Kelly them Hacker 643 Moreover during the early royal partner but Middle Ages the queen had reigned the state consolidated into centralised authority her political power dwindled symbol glamour This was into ceremonious role token and emphasised prescriptions also the female behaviour medieval Castiglione The Courtier 1561 By conduct books and books such
of of by
).
86
, . p
'(
in
sex
,
ments powerful governments
,
,
particularly
Renaissance
fears
of
and
)
patriarchal
(
together
is
,
,
:
is
The distinction made between warrior women and Amazons Shepherd Cleopatra enters the realm useful here like Elizabeth androgyny but unlike Elizabeth who remained within the confines female chastity Cleopatra more properly the Amazon who brings female
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
sexual activity . Since women as lovers function ofmen , their trespass into the public world of politics implies a dual identity , a changeability which also contributes to Cleopatra 's construction as an inconstant and shifting being . Thirdly , the idea of Cleopatra ' s dichotomous identity is elaborated in the images ofher play - acting , dressing up , putting on disguises , planning and stage -managing her encounters with both Antony and Caesar . She is the supreme actress – theatrical , unruly and anarchic , whose ' infinite variety ' also derives from the roles she plays . Not only does she play the queen with theatrical grandeur and self -consciousness , she also government
as
well
as
as the private lives
various other identities and becomes in turn masculine , or , the jealous lover , the angry mistress , the penitent
assumes
ultra - feminine
disguise - once when she recalls wearing Caesar ' s armour ( II .v.22 - 3) again when she conjures up the image of a boy - actor impersonating her in Rome ( V .11.213 -20 ). She is as unpredictable as the theatre , and controls her audience at least partially by surprising them , as she does her lover by her changeability . But this last is misogynist Enobarbus 's concept , and he conjures up the image of her seated in the barge to to
and
glamour to Antony . The negative implications of this link with play -act ing are derived from the precarious social position of popular theatre and the threat it posed to the status quo during this period ( see Weimann , p . 172 ; Montrose , ‘ The purpose of playing ', pp . 51-74 ; Dolli more , 'Shakespeare, cultural materialism , p . 4). Hence the fears inspired by the duplicitous heroine are explicitly analogous to those generated by the theatre itself . Fourthly , Cleopatra 's play acting specifically reverses gender roles ; she not only wears Caesar s military attire but put my tires and mantles on Antony ( II . v .22 ). Although cross - dressing is evident in translations of
'
'
'
classical drama, of Greek romances and medieval stories , and
pp
'
'a
as
its
in texts such as Metamorphoses , Decameron , Orlando Furioso , Arcadia , The Faerie Queene , emergence and much stage comedy , central Renaissance trope
on
as a
,
in
).
,
2
-
.
,
pp
of
-
,
's
(
of
of
of
be
in
–
-
As
-
of
.
to
in
),
79 -
89
.
Vir ,
,
- of
(
-
one which was repeatedly interwoven with the female rebellion the drama and the pamphlets cross Haec Hic Mulier and Mulde Sacke can hardly attributed stage convention alone Jardine points out dress emerges crucial signifier sexual and social identity the prescription and dressing during the reign enforcement elaborate and precise codes both Elizabeth and James Still Harping 141 150 From indicting extravagant against women and lustful natures satire cross dressing became specifically directed against their appropriation male preroga see Staton
themes dressing
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
78
tives .Monticelso identifies ‘ Impudent bawds / That go in men ' s apparell as among ' the notorious offenders / Lurking about the City ' (The White
Devil , IV .1.56 -7 ; 33 - 4). The female
transvestite
is seen
to
transgress
into
.
in
in
:
as
/
a
'd
of
a
as
/
I
a
:
).
to
14
-
by
is
It
.
In
).
-
13
12
ii .
,
I.
of in
I.
'( :' '(
he
's
i.
',
of
of
by
-
of
.
to
,
by
to
)
all
male territory and becomes a hermaphrodite , a monster who threatens sexual (and by implication social distinctions Hence the fear that Cleopatra has the power unman men echoes throughout the play making explicit the threat posed themonstrous visually expressed woman male power and authority the images cross dressing More generally this ties with the usurping any disorderly woman Philo male positions the opening lines Antony the triple pillar talks the world transform Into strum pet fool the next scene Antony sees his great love bondage These strong Egyptian fetters must break Or lose myself dotage 113 Caesar too refers the relationship reversal gender roles
he
Ptolemy
7 )
. (I . iv .4
than
of is
,
More womanly
not more manlike
;
in
of
. . .
fishes drinks and wastes The lamps the night revel Than Cleopatra nor the queen
's
'
,
'
. ,
by
)
).
sexuality
to s
's
70
us
So
',
/
to
is
IV
36
. vii . .ii 69 -
'( : '( III .
as
ment and
of
compromise the masculinity Antony soldiers This reversal seen well Canidius comments our leader led And we are women men and Enobarbus warns Antony Transform not disguise theatre female govern women The fears posed thus flow into one another
Finally Cleopatra
the non European
',
).
26
on
, (
'
,
,
.
,
to
is
to
in
,
). is
),
'(
II .
vi .
,
' s '
is
of
In
.
its
as
18
-
.
III .
is
(
's '
/
a
As
‘
.
is
.
21 )
1
II .
'( .
- : . 2);
11
II .
(
/
', a '
's 's
's by
'
II . .vii -
-E
of
is
'
),
25
. iv .
a
(I
'
, of
in
of
. of
.
all
,
's
, ,
,
-
as
,
In
'.
'
,
is
the outsider the white man ultimate other Othello we have already seen colonialist racist and sexist discourses are mutually dependent Cleopatra embodies femininity and non uropeans common the overlapping stereotypes dangerous and snake like the old the language colonialism She serpent Egypt the Nile the serpent On the mysterious power Antony one hand she has over the other he constantly reminds her that he found her morsel cold upon Dead fragment Of Cneius Pompey Caesar trencher xiii 116 The white man love confers worth upon her and she made whole Antony attentions The recurrent food imagery reinforces her only primitive appeal she makes men hungry she does not cloy their appetite Antony Egyptian dish 240 she 122 she salt Cleopatra She the supreme actress artifice herself and simultaneously primitive and uncultivated Cleopatra with Egypt points The identification more than her queen status colonialist discourse the conquered land often explicitly endowed with feminine characteristics contrast the
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
.
in
be
'
'
its
as
.
as
as
.
's
as a
,
,
,
–
,
by
All
Egyp masculine attributes of the coloniser ( see Hulme , pp . 17 -32 ). represented symbolised queen tians and their are associated with they are irrational sensuous lazy feminine and primitive attributes place con and superstitious Therefore Cleopatra identification with veys her power ruler and also specifically identifies her alien territ ory The tensions between Rome masculine and imperial and Egypt threatening other will elaborated the next chapter The
207
in
as
,
the
).
51
.
(p
/
of
of
of
).
/
of
In
.
(
, p,
discourse Orientalism another context Carr has described the metamorphosis opposition good wife witch virgin whore into that Cleopatra participates both sets dichotomies she whore
as
:
,
in
images that cluster around Cleopatra are specifically Orientalist nature her waywardness emotionality unreliability and exotic appeal are derived from the stereotypes that Said identifies recurrent that
of
'
is ‘
;
- :
of
-
',
;
-
.
',
pp
are
to ; . of .xii ' all 28 , . ). a '
a
is
')
a
(
‘,
).
47
. xii . 13 ,
'(
'
IV
as
in
well exaggerated witch Witches both the projections patriarchal fears Stallybrass Macbeth 189 209 Garrett Women and witches and also colonial fantasy whereby the non Christian outsider devilry connected The episode with the soothsayer paves the way Egyptians and particularly Cleopatra with magic for connection
in
on
Of
this variety also reveals
of
.
it
-
the politics
is
'
a
of
Consolidation
'
)
)'
.6
(
IV
'(
-
'
.
of a
‘
of
is
22
.11 . . II xii So .
‘
an
)
12
,
.
.
IV
'(
's
a
,
as
of
'
to
IV
10
,
So
'( an I.i ' .
great fairy
enchantress
gypsy
‘
a
is
viii but alien variety Pompey desire that witchcraft join with beauty lust with both Antony into inaction clearly charm Cleopatra unites both patriarchal and racial implications witchcraft emerges the composite deviant mostmonster like other the Roman patriarchal self duplicitous woman The representation the Renaissance stage just stereotype not derived from transhistorical but betrays the finite variety sources from which constructed she
violence
and
point
crisis
in
synthesis
of
point
a
both
a
reveals
of
I
.
women
in
is
:
a
course consolidation diverse authorities seal their pact over the female body and their unified action violent and ruthless Here will discuss the ways which violence against on
,
,
I
.
as
can
be
can
.
by
is
,
,
,
so
a
as
,
to
authorities hostile women The drama will suggest focuses both these aspects that again violence against disorderly women appears social and contested strategy and not authorised the final statement erasing the disruption offered these women loosely Early modern Europe and contemporary India called
,
a
to
do
in
.I
of
in
transitional societies that both we locate tension between different forms social relations not want force the comparison
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
,
of
I
to
all ,
.
of
of
in
of
.
;
by
to
are
which is necessarily qualified - not only by the vast differences between European and Indian feudalism and capitalism and by the fact that in Europe feudalism preceded capitalism whereas in contemporary India both are concurrent and also subject the intervening colonial and imperialist histories but also the enormous range cultural geo graphical and historical differences Above want firmly distance myself from modernisation theories whereby the historical processes Europe are replicated the development the rest the world
at
of
of
.
it
I
all
', a
of
in
.
, ‘I ,
Tis
is
'It
'(
',
:'
as
Princes
of do
/
The
);
-
18
217
, V . vi .
Devil
merciful release Yes says Vittoria some great Ambassadors The White Duchess Malfi knows that some mercy death
As
begging
shall welcome death
, -
for of
by
end
up
-
a
,
the economic processes
.
of
,
patriarchal control even inconsistent with capitalism Women Jacobean tragedy are not simply killed but tortured often elaborately over period time by combination familial judicial and religious authorities Many
'
appears necessary
or
'
for
‘
At
.
it
is a
of
to
'
'
to
,
to
,
of
; ;
to
:
,
for
by
to
approach the apparent contradic The analogies are here employed tions between patriarchal consolidation and female discontents emphasising that violence against women intensifies least three sharpen the expropriation reasons firstly their productive and reproductive labour secondly enforce anew the changing ideologies their subjection and thirdly address the instability these periods when both oppression and the challenges intensify Vio patriarchal societies but suggest part lence against women that escalates during such obviously transitional phases such times violence seems irrational and excessive beyond what
"
:
By
)
).
to
of
on
,
I
'(
, ' II . (IV iii . .1.
present when men kill with speed 109 and Lavinia weeps beg making death Titus Andonicus 173 women demand their punishment are the playwrights seeking incorporate violence com mitted the female body into her own guilt and thus blur the edge
of
.
to
I
?
,
of a
.
is
it
the
to
males
most
see also Liddle
;
and Vanita
–
, , .7p 000 1
females
world Kishwar
to
935
only
(
the
sex ratio
in
ensured that today there negative
are
it
be
.
,
,
of
its
be
a
,
)
of
,
,
a
as
,
,
to
(
I
the sexual confrontation will return this later For the moment suggest through comparison with the confessions want witches they must be against their trials tortures burnings contextualised and hangings that the ideological effect the spectacle female punishment cannot have such simple effect because staged representation and crucial elements must decoded Like the punishment the stage heroine the witch trials are not simple exter minations but elaborate and sometimes apparently inefficient and wasteful procedures The paradox here between what patriarchal ideo juxtaposed logy needs and what actually enforces can violence
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
81
displaced
occupations
traditional
see Mies
).
from
,
being
-7
.pp
126
they
(
are
and Joshi, pp . 29 , 52, 77 n12 ) . Surely men do not want the extinction of the female of the species . Surely capitalism should ensure cheap labour by increasing female participation in economic activity , instead of easing them out of formal production , as in the Renaissance. In India , too ,
,
a
in
'
'
,
,
is
is
's
of
it
to
.
,
or
a
of
far
,
can
are
.
It
to
,
it
to
,
;
to
,
of
–
,
ignores Two points here are crucial one that crude economism oppression directly ideological the thrust which cannot be and profit and second that ideology even when linear fashion reconciled inextricably although not appears contradict economic relations reductively connected these relations worth stressing that the procedures outlined below more complex that this brief account fully acknowledge and that ideologies are not matter crude intentionality together slowly conspiracy but are gathered heterogeneously and even contradictorily Initial mercantile and capitalist processes find more profitable dislocate women economic activity while the ideology their subjec
'
,
.
in
be
-
in
at
, or
or
,
to
is
so
tion overhauled that later women will either willingly confine unpaid work themselves even when they are economically inde pendent will obey patriarchal rules will broughtback into produc tion lower wages and non decision making jobs But the inter visible pro internalisa
's
's
of
.
is
mittent years their literal confinement and forced exit from necessary Middleton Isabella laments women duction Oh
:
patriarchal ideologies
tion
!
,
,
in
, ,
:
is
's
,
em
'
to
, do
,
in
,
to
to
if a
As To
'd
-
the heart breakings maids where love enforc The best condition but bad enough When women have their choices commonly They but buy their thraldoms and bring great portions keep subjection men fearful prisoner should bribe yet lies The keeper be good him still
Of miserable
,
)
(
-
166
, I. ii .
Women Beware Women
76
.. . 's .
a
a
, .
by r'
,
a
of
good usage good look And glad Lady No misery surmounts Sometimes woman Men buy their slaves but women buy their masters
,
,
-
,
of
is
in
,
painfully evident contemporary India where among recent dowry victims murders are lecturers doctors civil servants graduates women who were economically independent but ideologically con This
.
fined
it
's
in
's
of
of
.
a
's
entry into the Webster The Duchess Malfi provides useful point relationship between the economic and the ideological women oppression Lisa Jardine incisive analysis shows how demonstrates
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
82
the ways
which
in
'female
regularly represents women
sexuality
's
uncontrollable interference with inheritance (Jardine , Still Harping , p . 92 ) . But Jardine is unable to reconcile the apparent disproportion between the ‘actual ' threat the Duchess poses to the patriarchal family and the 'punishment 'meted out to her . On the one hand Jardine herself documents how during the early modern period ' female had come seen destructive estate conservation and great landowners under direct threat from wealthy status seeking burghers tinkered with every such tinkering one wills ensure their estates the heart almost certain find woman On the other hand she sees no actual threat the patriarchal order from the Duchess marriage since pro perty rights women had fact been severely curtailed during this period she complains that the Duchess acts out stage her inheritance power which real life was no power for the individual woman
, is
on
'
all
at
).
16
-
by
?
social relations Surely the paranoid and violent
actual
‘
206
' ”, in .pp
of
Malfi
Duchess
But what
is
('
The
in
‘
;
in
of
's
to
'.
‘
of
;
a
to
at
to
-
,
'
of
as
to
be
kin
'
of
us
,
of
and sexual autonomy indicate that the fears generated the possibility transgression female are real and actual even where such subversion
,
an
as
,
of
its
in
of
a
it
,
it
On
of
.
on
;
of
an
of
's
of
an
.
it
to
an
.
is
only potential Let example the transformation consider courtly love from adulterous sexual relationship the asexual Petrar chan ideal that later becomes Joan Kelly has argued that even expres initial sexually permissive stage courtly love was never simply sion women sexual freedom but rather the social relation integral part vassalage which was feudalism the one hand practice political marriage reinforced the the other was sort
, ,
at
,
-
co
).
,
30
of
in
22 -
pp
.
,
of (
to
,
to
of
.
'
,
to
concession women since given their property rights that point land consolidation required female support But most importantly illegiti adultery could be tolerated because the relative indifference macy that accompanied primogeniture where younger children posed patriarchal lineage Kelly no threat Therefore existent apparent courtly love was her devalu with the idealisation woman to
.
Sir
'
:
D
Le
'
of
a
are
‘
of
's
is
,
to
property ation her subservience the concerns This clear from Malory Morte Arthur King Arthur seems have been aware the longe love between Launcelot and Queen Guine finally discovered vere but takes stand only when the lovers
,
is
's
,
of
up
ageynst
. ,
Allas
.
prowesse
Launcelot shold
be
of
is a
,
,
merueyllous knyghte
that ever
Sir
he
sayd the kynge sayd the kynge
repenteth
,
mercy
me sore
,
Ihesu
:
as
-
of
.
is
together He deeply moved but his tears are neither for the loss infidelity but for the now his honour nor because his Queen imminent break the Round Table which the real basis for his power king
me
DISCOURSE
for
quenes
. I
,
togyders
in
goodknyghtes shalle never
be
a
felaushyp
. And moche company
emphasis added
of
)
;
562
-5
.pp
(
,
myghte have ynowe but such
of
for
the felauship of the Round Table is broken foreuer . . my good knyghtes lossethan my fayre quene the losse
of
more
for
I am sure I am soryer
Now
no
PATRIARCHAL
is
a
to
by
,
of
a
a
,
a
an
.
,
,
of
,
-f
of ,
of . -
a
courtly love into The subsequent transformation chaste ideal counter indication that adultery had begun threaten patriarchal peasant disorders and riots the institutions Against background fleecing economy parasitic court through entire national monopolies tax arming and enclosures and more fundamental trans society taking place throughout Europe the reinforcement formation including female inferiority was imperative This social stratification
of
of
-
as
of
's
of
,
a
is
).
it (
to
its
,
for
's
no
was true both for the old feudal state which had no police force and standing army and therefore not the modern state instruments control and the newly centralising mercantile capitalist one which yet power and develop adequate means had consolidate enfor cing see Schochet Therefore even the family structure and state subjection gradual deepening controls tighten and there women the eighteenth centuries the fears female trans and are foregrounded obsessively Tennenhouse surely right connecting the fears deviant sexuality the new mobil social relations where adultery has serious implications for the power On the one hand Jacobean tragedy makes possible classes enter the aristocratic body Othello Malfi husband Vittoria Corombona and countless others do On the other hand such transgres sion produces disease filth and obscenity which must be purged produce pure community order aristocratic blood The politics misogyny But the point also that women who are the targets to
it
's
,
in
.
is
' ('
of
,
,
.
p
.
',
10 a )
to
of of
,
,
as
,
,
to
:'
in
,
of
ity
in
of
.
increase
is
,
to
the sixteenth
from
gression
,
,
all
by
).
76
-
pp
.
(
-
as
,
to
,
,
-
,
.
,
in
of
patri violence Jacobean drama threaten the class and race limits wayward through sexuality archal societies their The Duchess Desdemona punished whereas Shakes Vittoria Bianca and Beatrice Joanna are pearean comic heroines who are seemingly independent and who appropriate masculine dress movement and speech are finally recon ciled the patriarchy Andreson Thom points out 259 The
;
. 's of
in
to
:
in
incident sati 1987 that the and torturous existence widows
of ,
,
an
'
status soon after
sexual harassment social ostracism attendant upon property fears
is
let
.
of
in
widows
of
a
survey
story here this later and also the Duchess me against the violence widows India One does not have to
return to
I
will
briefly refer
.
,
is
crucial difference between them also that the former are unchaste patriarchal definition whereas the latter are not Thus sexual and social transgression the case women are inextricably connected
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
, the
common thread that unites these widows in a chain ofmisery deprivation of property and economic independence . Even though the law – the Hindu Succession Act - confers equal property and inheri rural or urban
is the forcible
tance rights on women , widows are rarely given their fair share . In rural India , patwaris and tehsildars (customary local administrators ) usually help the conten ders for property left to a widow and transfer it to other names . ( India Today, 15 November
, . 143 )
1987 p
At the same time , many layers of prejudices enfold the property fears and are expressed as taboos against any expression ofa widow s sexuality
'
which is seen to have drastic implications for the health of society in general – hence a Rajasthani proverb warns that kohl in a widow 's eyes predicts destruction for the community . Frank Wadsworth suggests that widow remarriage was not technically forbidden in sixteenth century England (p . 398 ). Yet we can easily see from the drama of the period that it evokes disapproval and even paranoia which is not dissimilar to the situation Ihave been discussing in India : the Cardinal in Middleton 's More Dissemblers Besides Women
pronounces :
Once to marry in woman and her ignorance Stands for a virtue , coming new and fresh But second marriage shows desire in flesh ,
)
80
.
-
grows. (
1
custom
III .
Thence lust, and heat and common
76
Is honourable
of
in
,
or
to
.
,
to
,
of
-
of
,
, .
is
in
to
in
is
a
,
of
in
or
a
in
's
by a
sexuality The violence provoked widow The Duchess Malfi would have specific resonance the Indian situation where whether any position actually threaten challenge male not widows are property the potential threat they pose patriarchal control economic and sexual structures receives very real punishment Often popular representations disguised the brutality widowhood and punishment the sublimated order reinforce normative prescrip tions against widow remarriage Hence one the biggest money spin
To
.
an
to
be
.
,
as
.
can
of
be
is
to a
's
by
.
of
a
in
to
its
the
,
of
Hindi screen Sholay allowed hero fall love with physical But their affair never transgressed the boundaries chastity and the problem was finally resolved the hero death teach The Duchess class fresh from weeping over Sholay exercise performed within the boundaries that cannot traditional English studies But the play made disturb precisely those assumptions that the film underlines the next chapter will substantiate ners widow
to
at
of
is
of
of
,
to
.
to
is
an
So
ideological purpose and more violence against women serves directly connected capital accumulation than usually the process acknowledged For example the persecution witches served once demonise every category deviant woman and establish male
DISCOURSE
PATRIARCHAL hegemony wifery
female -dominated professions
over certain
medicine , says :
and natural
authorities . As Mies
well
as
as to
enrich
,
such as mid
the persecuting
The capital accumulated in the process of the witch -hunt by the old ruling , as well as by the new rising bourgeois class is nowhere mentioned in the estimates and calculations of the economic historians of that epoch . The blood -money of the witch -huntwas used for the private enrichment of bankrupt princes , of lawyers , doctors , judges and professors , but also for such public affairs as financing wars , building up a bureaucracy , infrastructural measures , and finally the new absolute state . This blood money fed the original process of capital accumulation , perhaps not to the same extent as the plunder and robbery of the colonies , but certainly to a much greater extent than is known classes
today . (p. 87 )
If Cornelius Loos called the witch -trials ‘a new alchemy which made gold out of human blood , dowry in India can be seen as a source of
'
'
of ,
,
for
:
,
in
'
,
by
It
).
is
his
,
87
,
.pp
(
and
which is accumulated not by means of the man ' s own work or by investing own capital but extraction blackmail direct violence Mies 162 most prevalent and exorbitant the big cities and among upper and middle classes bureaucrats doctors engineers wealth
is
as
it
'
to
it .
its
.
of
of
is
,
a
is
it
,
of
it is
(
).
,
,
its
in
is
all
to in
, it
–
it
in
spread what demanded and terms permeate communities religions and classes even where was previously unknown see Krishnakumari and Geetha While true that economic determinism can never fully explain the subordination women also fact that women have been India both has begun
terms
of
.
of
-
of
it
to
,
a
as
,
an
.
It
,
businessmen traders and capitalist farmers vital the growth the consumer industry and provides outlet for black money well capital investment for host small entrepreneurs Moreover ideology filters downwards maintains existing class relations since pay even those who cannot afford and incur huge debts This maintains the hold the money lender over their lives and legitimises actually increasing the devaluation female children Hence dowry
:
.
to
,
in
,
of
.
is
–
as a
category from economic analysis excluded even fundamental data regarding their exploitation not fully available For example the European Renaissance and contemporary Indian women the case dominant effort has been make their labour invisible Ashoka Mitra writes
.8
.
is
of are
is
,
of is
a
to
to
in
is
,
.
in
an
,
In
the last thirty years after independence Indian women have increasingly expendable commodity expendable both the demographic and the economic sense Demographically woman more and more reduced expendable her reproductive functions and when these fulfilled she Economically relentlessly pushed out she the productive sphere and consumption which reduced unit then undesired
become
GENDER
, RACE , RENAISSANCE
DRAMA
'
Stressing the interplay of economic and ideological ‘motives allows us to see that violence attaching to both witch hunts and dowry murders
its
’.
others
‘
demonisation
of
its
is neither purely a remnant of feudal ideology or social relations nor indicative of universal misogyny but is also part of the emergence of ‘modern ' society . Violence escalates precisely in response to the crisis in the structures of female oppression : the crisis itself is not to be measured by any simple or obvious collapse of patriarchy , but also by
not
of
,
is
Moreover the persecuted woman
even
necessarily
actually
be is
is
'
A
of
to
to
.
a
to a
,
.
to
'
,
be
.
One the myths whereby oppression maintained punished the normal person will that although the deviant will looked after Feudalism promises parental attention the hard working rosy capitalism serf future the industrious worker and patriarchy romanticidyll the obedientwoman recent study Indian women transgressive
,
'
, ,
in
create
)
-
(
110
12
,
custom
.
,
or
I
Any new world
III .ii to .
this
,
I
Why might not marry have not gone about
in ?
:
is
,
is
in
'
to
.
as
'
is
is
of
In
, . 3 ). p
.
is
as
(
is
,
it
to
.
in
,
,
in
is
is
in
'
of
claims that the formally subordinate role Indian women Indian spelled out practice men sacred literature law and Yet there perfec no doubt that the woman who accepts this role and plays tion the ideal Indian wife and mother revered and loved Blumberg operation and Dwaraki The Duchess Malfi this samemyth exposed and The Duchess the much loved and protected sister long she conforms Even she tries seek refuge this belief pointing out that she not really breaking any custom that she technically within the rights patriarchally accorded her
is
is
'
by
.
comeddled
with policy
'
is
it
how
,
oh
:
‘
Religion
in
is by
so
.
‘
in a
'
:
it is
to In
subject precisely the most obedient woman who India today themost violent fate the acquiescent daughter who has bought her master dowried marriage and not created any new world not less vulnerable than her defiant sister That monstrous women are also made the punishment accorded them and not only their actual deviancy clear both Jacobean tragedy and contemporary India
at
its
An
of
of
,
is
transitional societies that since their apparatuses control are fluid their coming together and hence the contingency the
more
,
of
.
’,
'
its
in
If
the Venetian Senate Othello demonstrated skill variously con structing others Jacobean drama also reveals the alliances between aspect varied structures within whatwe only loosely term patriarchy
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE
becomes more obvious . Webster s The White Devil ( along with
law
'
The Duchess of Malfi ) is
widely taught
, more
in India . As Dollimore than any other play of the period , it reveals the dependence of individual identity upon social interaction (Radical Tragedy , p . 231) .Wewitness the combined operation of state and church and judiciary against the deviant woman . Although culturally and historically so different , some recent Indian events punishment bare the political thrust Vittoria be
.
's
of
lay
has suggested
in
'd
'
'
for
a
's
is
to
be
'
a
).
.
31
III .
(
'
's
:
to
an
a
to
of
's
Vittoria marital situation would familiar Indian readers that young girl unhappily married older husband whose cousin dowry with Monticelso later complains that Camillo had receiv you not one julio 239 The play exposes the double standard whereby the adulterous woman remains whore even her lover patient since husband while Brachiano wife advised faithless
of
Vittoria
's
's
identical with Brachiano
,
although
is
On the other hand
it
, .
,
of
him
-
in
to
).
,
II .i .
(
'
‘
a
is
slight wrongʻ and must suppress her killing griefs which only ness dare not speak 240 277 Like the Indian wife who lies even from the death bed where her husband has sent her order fulfil her wifely duty protecting Isabella has internalised the ideology her own oppression
;
Sure shall They are first
I
you
?
to
expound whore
give their perfect character
.
I'
ll
I
Shall
public criminal
:
she
is a
,
's
in
?
’
of
,
, .
if
As
,
so
!
in
.
'd
:
Sweetmeats which rot the eater the man nostril perfumes They are coz ning alchemy Poison Shipwracks calmest weather What are whores Cold Russian winters that appear barren that nature had forgot the spring
.
sin
;
,
,
i' , th ' ,
's
all
on
Ay
,
They are the true material fire hell Worse than those tributes Low countries paid sleep Extractions upon meat drink garments perdition his even man They are those brittle evidences of law
,
:
,
,
extortion fillid riot They are worse
.
curs
'd
And emptied
by
Are only treasuries
by
at
,
At
all
.
?
's
a
Which forfeit wretched man estate For leaving out one syllable What are whores They are those flattering bells have one tune weddings and funerals your rich whores
,
a
,
is
a
it
is
a
in
’
'
a
.
a
is
as a
private wrong against her husband but not seen public crime that outrages the entire state and church Mon becomes passionate outburst during ticelso pronounces Vittoria whore her trial which makes clear that the unchaste woman moral rather than legal category and since female morality not private matter transgression
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA at
'd
,
?
a
's
78
in
101
-
.
31
III .
(
-.
that receive
it
All
'
) it
er
's
.
is
he
by
to are
begg gallows Worse than dead bodies , which surgeons And wrought upon teach man imperfect What Wherein whore She like the guilty counterfeited coin brings Which whosoe first stamps trouble
'
,
,
in
of
.
,
of
,
of
's
of
's
language draws upon medieval misogynists arguments Monticelso woman fallen nature Christian doctrines regarding sensual pleasure and Hell but also upon the more recent fears counterfeit money riot and downward mobility and the imagery medical science Similar assumptions have been incorporated the conceptual apparatus The
as
As
.
modern law recently
of
a
),
to
(
: .
law
by
as
',
, of
an
of
all
in
to
in
of
as
of
on
.
It
he
of
the
of
to
‘
is
as
,
by
1
,
in
of
to
on
as
's
a
).
)
as
(
are
/
of
of
(
are
of
's
,
Criminality 1950 Otto Pollack influential Women assumed that women are more deceitful than men because biological feigning arousal capable orgasm factors they combination social and biological factors they socialised into concealing menstruation and purely social factors child rearers they have conceal sexual information from children Pollack therefore regarded woman deviant behaviour based her sexuality and claimed emancipation that female would serve increase female criminality temptress reworked Themedieval view woman modern juvenile sexual crime which 1960 Reiss investigated 500 cases had been presided over same judge was found that while boys refused treat any form sexual behaviour the part warranting more than probationary status girls were regarded the boys cause sexual deviation cases coitus involving adoloscent couple and refused hear the complaints the girl and
to
,
us
let
In
'.
an
,
a
,
of
'.
a
,
a
:
in
'
;
as a
prostitute family the girl was regarded 1973 Vedder and keep Sommerville cautioned that while studying delinquent girls mind when you train man you train individual when you train girl you train Citing the others Drakopoulou comes family the conclusion that even today rather than involving transgressions the
her
be
,
,
a
a
,
,
of
in
.
is
in
,
on
.
all
the
is
. ,
is
).
20
-
4
.
pp
In
'(
,
of
legal code female delinquency involves transgressions the moral code patriarchal criminology therefore female crime sexual and female sexuality itself potentially criminal The implication should not patriarchal laws are that same but that they certainly modify alter and codify previous bias For example the emphasis Vedder and Som temper merville place the female link with the family Protestant sexuality against but retains the older Catholic bias female Sometime during the first two centuries AD legal code India Manu compiled laying which formalised the low status women down that woman
PATRIARCHAL
DISCOURSE all
89
,
in
65 ).
,
as
.
it
,
-
in
governed by men her life her father childhood then regarded women and her husband and finally her son Significantly equally contemptible with slavery inborn the lower castes them
must be
)
on of
of
(
an
of
,
of
).
is
in
-
in
,
:
K
'It
. M .
'(
.p
all
'it,
to
;
in
by
(
, p .
Liddle and Joshi The codification modern Indian law was completed Lord Macaulay theMinute Indian Education fame Spear 1861 according introduced English procedures and the assumptions behind them into Indian courts 127 With unin tended irony Panniker comments the genius this man English great narrow his Europeanism self satisfied his sense
's
, .
).
p
'(
in
,
a
:
of
by
's . , :
by.
on
for by
to
in
by
.
old
-
it .
as
of
In
of
,
of
law
,
to
life
modern India we know He was India new modern incarnate Moorhouse 256 The prejudices both Manus and echoes Monticelso are evident cur rent Indian legal practice the infamous Mathura rape case fifteen year landless labourer was raped two policemen the Chan drapur police station where she had gone inquire after her illegally eightyears the accused detained brother The prosecution went were acquitted the lower court convicted the High Court and that gives
ness
Manu the spirit
the Supreme Court The assumptions the last judge ment are not far from Monticelso was assessed that Mathura was not virgin the time her rape and therefore assumed that she had willingly submitted the drunken policemen although the doctor report testified her being beaten black and blue the judges declared that the alleged intercourse was peaceful affair and that her cries freed
not
, of
Since she was
a
' ,
's
;
her part
.
concoction
course
of
are
on a
alarm
of
'
to
'
to
a
at
of
it
,
finally
virgin
'
-
a
is
as
,
its
in
,
law
,
by
law
-
.
of
to
73 , .
at
,
ten
,
In
'
of ,
of
.
,
of
is
in
'
as a
by
is
68 ).
. .
IV 1
'(
of
's (
,
).
23
,
,
of
In
The
.
,
‘
the conclusion was that she was loose moral character Forum Against Rape leaflet February 1980 Like Vittoria Mathura crime sexuality was her worthy applauded White Devil Monticelso Francisco member the state The Indian state hardly the relatively functioning aspects nascent stage Renaissance authority but the relationship between religion and civil authority revealed starkly contingent and fluid The recent Shah Bano case indicates com eddling religion and policy with woman the centre the alliance year old Shah 1985 the Supreme court India granted alimony years earlier Muslims are Bano whose husband had divorced her governed the highly patriarchal Islamic personal the Shariat than the civil code that otherwise applies Among other blatant differentials under Shariat law women cannot receive alimony Feminists including Muslim women hailed the Supreme Court judge step towards their demand for ment uniform civil code India religi Islamic fundamentalists bitterly opposed this under the banner Interestingly Hindu revivalists have recently defended ous freedom
of
,
.
a
,
(
.
in
,
as a
,
.
,
.
rather
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
90
of
immolation on the grounds of personal freedom Under pressure , Shah Bano withdrew her claim . The Indian
widow
'
choice ) .
state bowed
.
,
of
on
of
a
it
its
of
‘unprecedented Islamic resurgence or rather to a quick survey of support the future elections , and withdrew the judgement Instead special bill placed before parliament the rights Muslim women
to
to
,
,
,
, of
on
ate
which violates the principle the Indian constitution not discrimin among citizens religion race sex caste and place the grounds a
.
of is
To
of to
is
man
efface
us
.
)
of
'
p
, .
. .
- .
'
a
of
the text and
's '
of
'
'( of
by
(
the
defeat the futility Ellis Fermor 152 the readers own existence
marked sense spiritual uncertainity
, .p . of . 3) .a ,
Ornstein achievement politics
‘
on
'
its
as
of
.
a
as
,
of
a
.
of
in
its
).
in
25
,
to of
India
be
to
is
(
Times aim
of
February 1986 government whose Thus pact with usher the computer age India made what appears medieval misogyny The point course that the power woman repeatedly becomes site for the shifting alliances From this perspective the punishment Vittoria stands out clearly misogynist coalition between religion and policy read The White typical suggested by institutionalised Devil the Jacobean pessimism emphasis criticism with the hectic portraits vice and depravity birth
declared
as a
to to
be
to
for
?
of
'
:
F
. L .
's
to
Lucas introduction the text invites view the play real moral problem How were we made care what became these beings who felt no shame and knew no pity and kept no faith
.p
'(
,
,
of
I
, ,
as
by ,
in
1632
do
:
.E .'
one
'T
written
by
Rights
,
Women
's
of
a
.
a
its
to
of
?
to
in
If
.
)
37
us
How was Milton like case make care the Devil himself the play was show only the punishment Vittoria and not political purpose we might enter into her own sharp dismantling problem such Instead shall later demonstrate she sharply under contemporary pamphlet The Lawes Resolution lines the point made
to
in
or
,
in
,
them
.
belonging
to
principally
,
,
it
,
or
or
proper
,
maner
,
are
in
,
Statutes
as
to
;
or
,
at
.. .
to
constituting Lawes hearing Women onely women have nothing charges and yet they stand strictly tyed them interpreted lectures leets nothing excused by ignorance me thinkes were mens establishments little pitty and impiety any longer hold from them such customes Lawes and
of
'a
(
, ,
,
–
.
to
as
is
,
in
on
of
in
in
is
of
,
is
.ii . 73 ). IV
(
'
to a
:
;
.
,
a
clearly
in
is
difference between the placement Shah Bano and their respective trials Ofcourse both women are inconsistent Shah Bano retracts her petition under pressure Vittoria defies stately and the patriarchal court but submits lover who calls her advanced whore But although she divided subject who only see her own assertiveness impersonating men can terms insistently present Vittoria the play Shah Bano the other hand disappears from the controversy she sparks she becomes the object protection various legal political and feminist discourses but her speak see Pathak and Sunder own subjectivity effaced she ceases There
Vittoria subjects
PATRIARCHAL DISCOURSE
91
Rajan ) . Vittoria , confused as she is , refuses to be represented by others ;
,
, as
Tragedy The title
.
of
The Subject up
;
,
Women Belsey
Nature
book TheWorld TurnedUpsideDown picks ,
's
Hill
the
, Shakespeareand
1 Dusinberre Christopher
of
Notes
(see
in society
of
her contradictions are an indication of her placement Belsey , The Subject of Tragedy ) and also of her resistance .
not only the representa
35 ).
air ' ( in .p
to
to
to
,
of
is
all
‘
in
of
as a
.
's
,
to
-t
a
of
topsy urvy world which legitimise tions Natalie Davis suggests actually serve the normative hierarchy but also refers the widespread threats the status quo which the book documents Marx and Engels Manifesto the CommunistParty refers period the slow dissolution feudal economy which that solid melts into
, of ,
,
,
,
;
of
,
in
.
as in of
';
of
',
the
and
in
, ;
.
, on
Theory focuses especially their implications for women For ideological aspects playing Sinfield the change see Dollimore Radical TragedyMontrose The purpose Literature ProtestantEngland and Tawney Religion Rise Capitalism Dollimore RadicalTragedydiscusses discontinuous identity Renaissance drama the foregrounding context of the decentring of man during the period and the social
's
2
'.
'
;
,
of
,
;
,
of
For discussions the changes affecting early modern Europe see Aston Europe; Stone TheFamily, SexandMarriage Lever The Tragedy State Hill Societyand Puritanism Hobsbawm The Crisis the seventeenth century Kelly Women History
Crisis
of
of ,
to
as 'a
of
,
;
).
.
,
,
;
of
.
(p
'
,
-
, of
,
by
'
a
in
's
on a
).
.
(p
'
England Kelly Women History Theory The Women my Disorderly Women Jacobean Tragedy See
.
.
as -
or
-
by
'
is
,
, or
'
be
-
in
',
in
chapter two Both Jardine and Woodbridge advance the unhelpful argument that we cannot identify emergent feminism sixteenth century texts because what they and real life women during that time were demanding would trivial twentieth century standards Surely feminism materialism any other ideology not static uniform there are
'
5 4
's
of
as
's
of
.I
to
am
of
of
in
its
I
liberalism 197 Keith Thomas has said that Protestantism stress direct relation with God had political matters which proved powerful solvent democratic implications the established order and whose impact was also felt the family 320 For documen tation of the anti woman implications Protestantism see Stone The Family Kanner
'
3
's
;
of
construction the self Catherine Belsey The Subject Tragedyplaces women discon tinuities the context the contradictory construction the liberal humanist subject and denial unified subjectivity women indebted both analyses although perfect fable emergent differ from Belsey reading texts such TheDuchess
to
of
far is to
.
to
,
of
a
; to
's
at
as
many differences between varieties contemporary feminisms between least reality Renaissance and modern women demands Surely too demands correspond lapse into idealistic pre and set single transhistorical yardstick for feminism mises secondly writings the querelleare occasionally clearer than somemodern day feminists for the former begin emphasise that gender relations are socially con .
to
is
,
;
-
for
by
,
.
, of
I
6
of
,
to
structed and changeable rather than natural whereas the latter revert transcendental masculinity and femininity and universalist definitions suggest that materialist thought conducive feminist premises since both emphasise identity and relationships and the potential for change Hence the social construction early Indian materialism Vedanta and Chinese Taoismare proto feminist conversely
, by
Still Harping Travitsky
')
The
,
',
see Montrose
;
,
Fashioning Jardine
;
,
Renaissance
Self -
'
-d
Greenblatt
';
playing
.
-
(
of . It
as
purpose
of
my Disorderly Women Attitudesand chapter one The issue cross ressing has generated much recent discussion of of
7
to
, is
of
,
splitting mind and matter fostering transcendental idealism the perfect ground binary oppositions male and female positing also seeks contain changeability goddess and whore see also Eva Figes Patriarchal static binary oppositions such that
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
women are notmerely displaced from economic sectors but‘ reintegrated into capitalist development in awhole range of informal , non - organised , non -protected production
their apparent
invisibility
of
,
,
As in
.
126 -7 )
'
.
by
,
made viable
is
status
do
relations , ranging from part -time work , though contractual work , to houseworking, to unpaid neighbourhood Europe they are not really reduced work (pp . consumers they not really become unproductive but the ideology their inferior
to
8
' The lady doth protest ' ; Rose , 'Women in men ' s clothing ' ; Clark , 'Hic Mulier ' ; Dollimore , 'Subjectivity , sexuality and transgression '. Ashoka Mitra , ' The status of women ', Frontier, 18 June , 1977. Mies writes that in India ,
Women ' s division
of experience
The us
The
Credulity
to
's
',
is
w
all all
?
'
?'(
of
in
to
,
as
,
on
,
, ;
,
.
,
ar a
as
the
by by
).
45
of
,
all
'
,
,po
in
.
)
35
(p
in
, .p
,
by
is
as
I
on
eing
:
the of as
)35 . , .
.her
inin
'
The greatest fault that remains women that we are too credulous Anger wrotegreatest Jane Anger her passionate protest against women inferior status written 1589 The point remains central feminism today Catherine Belsey asks why since since women experience the patriarchal practices are not effects women feminist Construct feminist ing the subject The functioning dominant ideologies hinges subject their internalisation the oppressed subject Patriarchal discourses Isation heterogenous necessarily experienced which have identified opgenous are not dichotomy upon the latter such women although they confer which not always stable the contrary we saw the case the Elizabethan world picture they seek efface contradictions and appear In
'.
‘
-
as
',
,
at
:
of
of
.
by as
,
at
‘
'
as
plain common sense natural and obvious the texts we have been looking women internalise the values conferred upon them did that early feminist Christine de Pisan Shewas first overwhelmed the force male disdain women
finally decided that God had made vile creature when He made woman my heart for detested myself great unhappiness and sadness welled though we were monstrosities and the entire feminine sex nature Alas my folly God why did You not let me be born the world man and considered myself most unfortunate because God had made me inhabit female body this world in
. ..
in
,
I
,
'(
.5p ).
in
I
a
.. .
as a
,
in
,
as
.. .
a
up in
I
a
And
The to
'(
a
I
,
,
‘
in ' O –
to
I );
)2004 that ;
her , , of of -3 IVIV . or ). 1 .the
ut
.
ii
). to
or
Much Ado About Nothing Nothing
III .
man
,
be
,
In
Renaissance drama women repeatedly express similar desires possess what Vittoria calls masculine virtue either men White Devil 135 Beatrice cannot express her solidarity with Hero for womanhood Tobs robs her the power act God that were
in to
is
of
'
In
109
).
Changeling
, .II .ii
The
-
);
(
freedom
"
of
the soul
/th To To
to to
/The
in
,had
‘I
, -7 I. ). iii .
Othello
(
man
woma
Desdemona wishes that heaven 163 Beatrice Joanna reiterates
236
.ii .
' V,
a
man
'
a
be
to
,
this
for
.. .
had made her
Cleopatra
is
Antony
(
'
me
and
,
i.
'(
II .
I
.
.
a
I
: ' ‘O (
304 Isabella The White Devil echoes Isabella that were man that had power execute my execu apprehended wishes Conversely 242 assert this power assert deny femininity and Cleopatra declares have nothing Ofwoman
her
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
94
the comedies , such wishes take physical shape as women
As
to
,
:
of
).
.
p
, of a
of
as
of
,
in
,
-
so
to
to
' , (
:'
,
.
a
)
The
step out of gender -roles and costumes ; Moll Cutpurse ( in Roaring Girl single status permanently adopts both male clothing and Belsey comments predictably these creatures who speak with voices which personate masculine are not their own are unfixed inconstant unable Tragedy virtue through the end The Subject 183 Their very attempts transgress their limitations rob them unified subjectivity typical and express their self negation the psyche the colonised with their female skins and male masks they approximate the splitting oscillating between black colonial subject whom Fanon describes
both
the
.
skin and white mask
as
of
to
of
“
I;
,
,
in
on
by is
of
In )a
a
,
to
a
,
as
,
of
To
.
to
an
is
be
,
,
a
,
in
.
of
,
on
.
in
is
's
as
As
.
,
in
is
of
,
to
at
it is
a
,
in
As
a
,
.
of
,
is
).
,
of
( for
to
by
.
,
.
be
').
(
its
'
an
,
(
its
its
is
of
;
on
”
).
of
(
it
,
its
on
by
.
is
,
in
,
ideological effect The point however assess this split represented the drama Recent Renaissance criticism has pointed out that while the one hand contradictions are the very means which power achieves aims the other these also set motion the process which undermines see for example Goldberg James Brown This thing darkness Homi Bhabha has analysed the complexity the terrain which colonial authority and the colonised subject interact he has suggested that the effectiveness colonialist discourse under mined not only by internal fissures but by mis ppropriation patri native recipient see Signs taken for wonders the case analogous process may archal authority traced The similarity neither accidental nor fanciful given the historical parallels and overlaps between patriarchal and colonial authority Patriarchal discourse invites women inhabit spaces split series oppositions example between man and woman goddess and whore public and private But we saw earlier such discourse itself heterogenously composed unevenly imposed and subject conflicts with the lived reality the oppressed subject the case the colonial subject the divisions involve constant shifting torturous impossible but dynamic movement between two positions which occupy the same time the extent that women have internalised patriarchal ideology they live the divisions and contradictions imposed upon them and also the myth long their duplicity this ideology not crisis the inherent opposition between women lived experi kept ideological ence and taught roles check But when there crisis the various contradictions imposed women serve destabilise patriarchal notions No longer reconciled within the supposed fixity change alienation fixed and static whole these contradictions result
or
.
to
of is
of
,
is
it
of
on
.
and finally resistance What needs examined whether women duplicity exactly live the myth the terms the oppressors whether altered used against the intentions the patriarchy
'S
WOMEN
DIVISION OF EXPERIENCE
are
by
by
It is important to remember , however , that we are speaking of female protagonists of male authors , not of living women . Neither are they psychologically 'whole ' or real entities with the subjectivities we may assign to real women , nor are they even the products of a self- con sciously feminist imagination . Time and again feminist critics have asked whether we are not simply investing the plays with our own concerns , expecting the male authors to rise above the limitations of their sex and time, in reading an emergent feminism in the plays . The answer will be discussed over the next two chapters . As I have previously mentioned , on
a
,
So as
,
,
,
as
.
at a
of
,
as
.
,
scripted both women characters male author and men within the plays But Alan Sinfield suggests these texts repeatedly focus gender relations and institutions such marriage that issues such point were crisis during the early modern period the represen
:'
in
or
;
or
So
's
of
).
26
-
.
14
as
pp
',
‘, as
To
'(
of
be
.. .
a
,
of
a
of
women repeatedly produces disruption these scripts we scripting upon activity should observe and reflect the the plays rather than simply helping the text into convenient plausibility Shakes pinpointed pearean texts need not either conservative radical they are stories through which analysis and discussion can disclose the power Sinfield Othello workings straightforward documents read these plays either women tation
is
.
‘
a
in
of
of
,
of
of
,
on
elaborate
to
patriarchal devices for containment erase complexities the conflicts and the Renaissance politics discourses playwrights women the position the popular theatre and that Shakespeare suggests sadly Sinfield says that the scripting women
liberation
be
',
of
'
',
no
of
.
a
;
as
be
;
can
).
24
.
(p
us
by
although these stories can conservative body stories contested But we should consider why the drama becomes increas ingly preoccupied with the disorderly woman why woman longer presented stable entity and why the stories themselves become deeply contradictory and contestable The individual author may not be feminist but the ideological effects his fragmented
of
its
,
,
:
,
, , by
of
a
of
of
in
is
, ,
,
-
on
. If
on
is
as a
presented female protagonist are radical precisely because she discontinous being the one hand she the product mobile and fast changing society the other she becomes the means the interrogation this drama the series boundaries induced dominant paradigms between male and female private and public emotional and political natural and artificial Europe and others
.
as
in
as
of
,
as
at
of
by
are
the
be
concurrently pro which are not only interrelated but can seen duced and emphasised from Renaissance onwards These boundaries intensified both patriarchal and colonial dis they are apparently erased courses the same time was seen
'
its
by
.
the case Othello Institutionalised readings Jacobean drama have legitimised such manoeuvres emphasising either supposed quest
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
96
for moral order ' (see Ribner ; Ornstein ) or to
. S .
as T
be
–
of
's
to
,
as a
a
to
as
of
-
; of
the disturbing implications and cross dressing negated invoking timeless
transvestism
by
from
is
thus detached
the Jacobean controversy over female gender boundaries her questioning
a
‘
of ',
,
.
is
.
by'
an
by
Moll
).
'(
p
Girl
169 –
its
,
is
to
's
order Thus even The Roaring Girl may be
its
spiritual chaos measured Eliot concedes that Middleton and Dekker seen illustrate the transition from government government city aristocracy landed aristocracy dispassionate picture he anxious add that literature comedy deserves human nature Middleton remembered chiefly by perpetually real real and human figure Moll the Roaring against such
of
a
-
is
to
to
of
's :
is
of
of
an
,
.
of at
,
:
a
is
ity
.
as
.
in
to
us
.
femininity and humanity Let return the question internalisation and the resultant taught schisms female subjectivity Beatrice Joanna think her self both sublime and degraded Her name indicates dual personal Beatrice Petrarchan namemeaning purity and recalling Dante passion chaste and Joanna was apparently one the commonest names among servant girls goddess the time Her initial role that tragically unaware her sexual vulnerability arrogantly sheltering behind her spoilt and privileged upbringing that nourishes illusion
of
all
's
of
:
a
is
as
.
by
,
of
power and callous with the innocence her own distance from violence Both naïvety and arrogance are stripped from her DeFlores displaced from the privileges reminder that woman she her own class
)
40
134
as
far
as
).
-2
.
iv
'(
So
/
?
III .
:
'
to
'd
its
are
The Changeling
money function beyond the reach women approximate concerned and thus Fate itself Can you weep Fate purpose determin soon may you weep me 161
Men appear
from
me
.(
And made you one with
-
'd
, , .III of iv .
I
,
.
: no
to
'
,
y
,
,
;
act to
's
!
'
by
In
Y
your birth but settle you Fly not what the has made you are more now You must forget your parentage me are the deed creature that name You lose your first condition and challenge you As peace and innocency has turn you out Push
of
to
in
be
as
of
an
as
's 's
in
for
's
to
of
.
.
.
;
at can
.'
,
In
in
in
of
class and gender The Changeling were indicated the previous chapter Women Beware Women they tear apart Livia whose only wealth and power derive from and used the interests autonomy strips her ordinary her male patrons the briefest attempt and vulnerable femininity Such contradictions also problematise our critical practice Newton combining gender and class and Rosenfelt indicate the difficulty Terry Eagleton analytical parameters when they refer dismissal Lucy Snow desire self fulfilment Charlotte Bronté Villette These conflicts
'S
WOMEN
DIVISION OF EXPERIENCE
overriding need to celebrate bourgeois security . This reading , they say , ignores the potential radicalism of even a middle - class woman 's desire for autonomy (p . xxv ). This is surely correct , but it is then necessary to go beyond such polarisation to grasp the ways in which a middle - class woman 's desire for autonomy may be experienced and expressed as a need for bourgeois security ; on the other hand , a woman 's economic independence spills over into a gesture for autonomy . Similarly , dif ferent interpretations are possible of the assertion of Webster 's heroine - 'I am the Duchess of Malfi still ' (IV . ii .142 ). Is she here affirming her identity as a member of the aristocracy which she has threatened by marrying her steward and which , in turn , has tried to punish her, or is she asserting her feminine self who has rebelled against patriarchal con trol ? Are the two incompatible , or mutually reinforcing ? As we saw in relation to Othello , patriarchy is transformed and modified by racial or class tensions . Here I want to emphasise that these complexities are not
'
by
'
as a
's
.
sex internalised and includes her various be For example her initial faith romantic love was contrary but coexistent with the new individualist ethic which had taught her that even love marriages are not made heaven but cruelly and coolly
' to
by
manipulated
,
in
'.
,
liefs
in
'
'
class
is
but the inferior
of
as
are
occupy in just reflective of the conflicting positions women necessarily patriarchal societies , but painful confusions also experienced the women themselves Beatrice split member the superior
-
of
is
till
As
',
!
;
to
)
-31 5
,
falls
. (V ' . d .iii
,
oh
er
of ne '
:
it
It
a
It
a
it
What horrid sound hath deformity blasts beauty Upon what face soever that breath ugly you have ruin strikes repair again What you can
of It
/
is
its :
,
I
or
a
,
.
by
at
be
;
,
of
,
to
is
to
is
This
am
to
lie
';
in
so
she alienated from Alsemero the same time she also repulsed the domestic ideal and continues DeFlores suggest not course that Middleton has some strange
by ,
victim
lives
, sir ,
:'
for
).
is
as
).
82
iii .
’
of .
(V
is
'(
V
. iii .
77 8
'
reiterate her
'
of
patriarchal myths and the victim their judgement love Alsemero Forget not protect the dream for your sake was done She can illusory Remember domestic bliss which she knows true unto your bed This not just simple duplicity deceit for Beatrice conceives herself both innocent goddess and degraded whore she participates her relationship with DeFlores and not just she continues
to
the product
'
therefore innocent
:
is
loving husband and
to
a
as
.
.
as
goddess any She not treated the men even potential whore whose virginity must be clin Alsemero treats her ically proved Yet the end she cannot relate the word whore for
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA intuitive understanding of female psychology . Beatrice 's relationship with DeFlores at one level conveys shades of Miss Julie , Lady Chatterley s Lover , A Streetcar Named Desire and of The Paradine Case . As Hitchcock remarks particular thrill in relation to that for male audience there seeing immaculately dressed upper class woman messed the end the scenario especially manure melling stablehand man -s
a
in
, up by
a
is
-
, aby , . ‘
,
of
an
a
,
film
'
a
a
),
p
'(
. of
fantasy manure Truffaut 210 thrill deriving from Equally for women audiences there may be pleasure deriving from the idea this situation double transgression play exploits the first maybe the second but Middleton and Rowley allowing the contradictions position develop posits Beatrice
who reeked
a
.
;
,
,
to
an s
aberrant sinner
.
split self not
as
'
, of
's
heterogeneous
,
as a
by
her
a
of
,
in
of
male power
Women beware women
.
in
;
92
, p .
of
of
in
).
'(
p
, .
is
of
-
to
a
led
a
,
of
‘a
at
.
a
of
in
of
(
).
is
69
, .
p
of
to
of
's
to
.
is
by
in
of
The experience dichotomous existence results also women becoming their own enemies This graphically portrayed Middle ton Women Beware Women but not limited that play Both Dusinberre and Jardine have referred the loneliness the female tragic hero period Shakespeare the texts the and the Nature Women Still Harping Isolation not simply the result their confinement male world but indicates also the impossibility these split beings realising female solidarity and companionship On the one hand the attempts female friendship constitute secret space the midst subjection are cancel male society haven where the normal modes traditionally male substantiality and where version annexed whatwemight now hope call human intimacy Whigham 172
of
,
's
in
this idea also crops Fatima Mernissi analysis Muslim female quarters Certainly women folk songs even marriage
's
zenana
.
, , or ;
purpose
up
a
,
In
of
the context Indian culture Sudhir Kakar has suggested that the family can serve female companionship within the extended similar
,
,
's
as
of
-
's
.
as
's
,
,
to
of
as
be
,
to
I
.?
in
,
in
;
on
's
a
at
men notion perspective
a
ship affords
of
their own power and female companion their own subordination potentially even subversive space On the other hand think that both Indian society and the plays these spaces are unable realised female havens because they are subject not only the contradictions class patri and race but also the power relations resulting from women they manifest women archal positioning internal schizophrenia opposed well Germaine Greer idealisation the extended family
lyrics jeer
a
as
be
it
;
's
- of
‘
to
in
is
to
the nuclear one perhaps possible from the perspective women may isolation the Western family seen well intended response those who argue that such families are more developed
' S DIVISION
WOMEN
OF EXPERIENCE
or
to
in
of
be
.
of ,
.
to
,
or
law
no
than other kinds of households . However , it ignores the tortuous reality of provide support situations where mothers and sisters in the young bride mother and instead connive hermurder for dowry contribute her daily harrassment Communities women are not inherently free and may reproduce patriarchal power relations For it
in
, ,
in
:
the secret space
of
Beatrice and
)
Changeling
, . .
.(
IV 1 97 -8
The
,
,
of a
female jury
destroyed
is
Finally Diaphanta
their
in
's
in
on
:
to
as
's
to
is
of
.
-
violated
in
patriarchal class the rules that govern women society That the recurrent mistress maid friendships Renaissance drama desperate loneliness are acts evident Beatrice rather pathetic response question Deflores how she could ever trust her maid
is
fellowship
me will
search
forewoman
by
Like
by
the
will not
She
she
's
of
.
is
,
example Beatrice and Diaphanta may partners conspiracy but the relationship essentially exploitative Beatrice plays the male testing Diaphanta virginity and reproducing the structures male legality
to
of a
).
is
as
).
to
,
's
so
as
(
'
:
on
, of
be
's
(
'
all
ties
of
(
'I
V , .1. 15 ;
emphasis added They are also based must trust somebody the concept feudal loyalty which now exposed the tensions world including those between servants and their superiors where natural are fast eroding see Whigham for the Duchess relation Cariola Women often operate from what may crudely defined male pos procuress itions Livia acts behalf men that Bianca last words are that like our own sex we have no enemy Women Beware Women
,
Hippolito
;
behalf either the Duke her own desire for Leantio
or
of
,
gence betrays other women
of on
.
,
as
do
.
,
's
),
,
as a
is
in
(
of
).
. .
V ü
Whereas Shakespearean drama female solidarity undermined power Beatrice cannot defend Hero woman Emilia defends Desdemona but both die anyway Middleton female changelings cannot even establish contact with each other Their loneliness isolation and warnings against their depraved fissured relationships not emerge natures but indicate the contradictions imposed upon them within the patriarchal and class confine Livia who claims both power and intelli 215
by lack
of
in
By
of
.
,
is
.
,
in
but the one time she acts out and reverses gender positions the sexual market she signals her own end Beatrice hopelessly trapped Joanna may betray Diaphanta but she herself disallowing independent female agency between several men con
, , is
,
.
a
a
of
a
is
of
a
in
,
in
.
,
idealising ditions their subordination the plays refuse the possibility the oppressed subject Read situation where female participation willing and unwilling painful reality the oppression other women these texts foreground the fissures the honorary male who potential rebel nevertheless both victim and
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
100
‘ giddy
A
turning
for
's
).
of ,
in
or
a
,
is
-
, .p
it
, if
(
'
,
. ..
to
a
;
of
to
its
is
a
is
: ‘
its
of
it
),
160
The discontinuity of Jacobean heroines has long presented a critical puzzle , as Belsey indicates ( The Subject of Tragedy , p . but had been ingeniously reconciled the concept fixed human nature example Middleton seems have grasped the principle that the more generously nature endowed especially perhaps woman corruption the more bitter thwarted maimed the full development course Ellis Fermor 142 Nathaniel Richards
'(
).
's
'
/
,
;
of
,
of
of a
, .p
of
/
;
's
,
Middleton first critic observed that he knew the rage Madness women crossed and for the stage fitted their humours see Gill edition Despite their underly Women Beware Women 379 emphasis added ing assumptions unifying concept female nature even traditional readings acknowledge this repeated crossing and thwarting female Renaissance drama
.
in
One significant movement
is
.
do
or
as
part
in
.
to -
, ,
or
of
of
,
of
increasingly
Despite their their assertion approach the the Duchess
or
a
of
of by
in
is
the plays that restriction accompanied identity fundamental dislocation appropriation male clothing even roles and despite female independence Rosalind Portia not dichotomy disorderly women later drama such Beatrice Joanna Vittoria Bianca The difference may
,
desires
be attri as
:
,
of
-
's
9
).
-
.pp
he
is
is
by
),
.
'(
.
,
'
iv
III .
Y
:'
by .
by
defined not her birth but something that con 137 change resisted the changed has Alsemero replies
her actions are the deeds creature stantly being made However recognition
of
DeFlores reminds Beatrice that she
is
.
as
is
in
(
,
to
of
.
an
in
It
as
no
;
of
is
of
a
of
. In
of
to
it
is
a
is
genre but even within tragedy there buted such movement no longer possible posit the unified subject liberal humanism the experience survival becomes discontinuous one short there no pure opposition idealised subject and oppressive structures despite the increasing violence their contact the violence reaches out and slashes the psyche and self conception the woman and ber longer remains simply act committed upon her has been pointed out that the title The Changeling could apply nearly every character play the see Randall 348 The heroine near schizophrenia therefore latent those who regard themselves changeable stable Repeatedly human relationships too emerge
:
).
34 5
' . / (I. .i
to
is
it
as
be
-
am
to
IV
in
of
',
,
'
. iii .
I
/
).
11 of ).
, if
:
's ' All 's
.
(
IV .č
is
'(
'
,
No
I
Jasperino asks Alsemero keep the same church same devotion friend Shakes peare Parolles affirms Simply the thing Shall make me live Well That Ends Well 310 The Duchess asserts that she spite the Duchess Malfi still what has been done her Antony repeatedly affirms his identity even constantly 139 characters
' S DIVISION
WOMEN
OF EXPERIENCE
101
in
the
).
5
;
92 3
.
to
an
to
I
).
of
,
,
be .
of
of
in
of
,
;
(
,
.
' in
'
are
III .
being eroded : ' I am / Antony yet' ( xiii see also chapter desperate eroding beliefs attempts These sustain the essential selves which are being increasingly battered Discontinuous identity the drama has been previously analysed see Dollimore Radi suggest that such Tragedy cal Tragedy Belsey The Subject want interplay stability and change texts that foreground disorderly qualifying indeed questioning received women has the effect identity notions feminine The plays move towards increasing female as a
'
as
.
by
, .
of
to
successful version Romeo and Juliet their runaway marriage Matri
of
a
initially
and are flushed with the excitement
mony
be
).
are
Leantio and Bianca
,
The
In
. of 1.
(I
'
by
,
-
to
in
to
.
fluidity Desdemona may actually divided her various positions relation the status quo but she perceives herself unified person when compared Beatrice Joanna who acknowledges the giddy turn ing inside her Changeling 152 both Women Beware Women and swiftly undermined the conventions romantic love are evoked
movement
.
of
of
It
,
a
is a
it
my
country
-2 )
..1
(I
I
in
I
't. ,
have foresook friends fortune rejoice And hourly 131
and
:
.
his
in
end
to
an
both
of
for
is
stability marks promise Leantio the end his restlessness and the eternal pleasure willing effacement newly acquired treasure For Bianca her previous identity evoked
to
's '
;
of
as
-
are
.
's
as
to a
of
in
is
.
'
.
as
of
's
in a
relationship opens temple with reverb Alsemero and Beatrice mystical everlasting erations love and Alsemero inclinations travels have now paused The lovers are transformed by their love initially this transformation evoked themanner typical romantic love conventions where passion leads new stability self concep tion Romeo and Juliet new identities are firm and unchanging
to
'.
', '
sir .
:
is
of ,
,
', ' all
' ', '
–
,
'd
better advis
eyes are sentinels unto
our judgements
,
Our
's
To
Be
.
a
all
:
to a
is
on
.
,
their love But with Alsemero and Beatrice discordant notes struck there constant play verbal and conceptual change and seeing This makes eyes terms related these will judgement perception relationships subject for sense that flawed change replies Alsemero first declarations love Beatrice early
static category
73 )
68 -
. (I .1. ,
's
to
Shakespeare tragedy precisely because there too love There are not one butmany ways
160
of
(
Ornstein
)
‘
a
mocking parallel , p . .
unified
love
'
-
not
a
is
star crossed
or
of
Women Beware Women
is
,
can
,
,
us
;
And should give certain judgement what they see But they are rash sometimes and tell wonders Of common things which when our judgements find They then check our eyes and call them blind
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE
102
loving,
DRAMA
's
actually does
,
do
is
to
.
of ;
is
.
,
to
.
all of
and them are fluid Bianca mobility has brought her from parents her Leantio but the movement will not cease with marriage Othello racked with the contradictions attendant upon female mobility similarly Leantio demands from Bianca that she both defy the stability her initial positioning and guarantee her subsequent stillness only imagined transgress further Bianca But whereas Desdemona
in a
:
.
to
.
on
is
,
to
so
body now
female
,
on
and the difference has with the effect that violence has the female mind Desdemona sense inviolate and violence also remains external Lavinia But Bianca graphically internalises the crime committed upon her
the
,
of
41 )
,
,
?
I
. ..
on
at .. a . ; 's ( sin ' s II ! . . ' ii . .. d I I - 'm 'm , to !I
I
all
blasting Now bless me from saw that now eye Fearful for any woman look leprous why should Yet since my honour Preserve that fair that caus the leprosy Come poison once made bold now acquainted thank thy treachery and No couple greater 420
,
sin
its
,
at
is
,
an
.
The
of
or
,
by
all
(
of
or
;
it
, of ,
an
,
(s
a
not the focal point
of is
a
and
is
.
rape
's
with
)
female dichotomy
the climax the play intersects dialogue between Guardiano and Livia episode with the Ward upposedly the guardian chess game between the Mother
Bianca
is
notion
of
, . .ii
IV
Changeling
46
'
the giddy turning experienced This changeable stuff not containable within the dominantly defined
'
:ity
, or
no
is
no
.
-
it
its
, of
to
to
It
is
's
,
or
The
,
as
in s
.
of
'
a
,
as
as
,
,
In
a
,
:
is
sin
for
.
of
as
be
;
is
.
as a
sin
,
is
to
,
In
patriarchal thought the slide woman from goddess whore premised simultaneously upon her potential for sexual activity and upon her passivity receptacle for Even when passive the woman irrevocably polluted by illegitimate sexual contact therfore can regarded both outside the female self and the same time most definitive constituent Renaissance tragedy however female propensity socially induced rather than restructured firstly secondly longer moral attribute and no static but constituting dynamic interaction between women subjectivity and the social con plays such Changeling ditions their existence Therefore imposed upon the subject Women Beware Women female immorality longer but also incorporated into the individual self perception longer able unam either alien intrinsic women therefore bigously patriarchal usage The contradic carry the connotations tions imposed upon women are internalised but then they catalyse psychic stabil alienation which radically disrupts notions social
,
).
.
in
as
(
,
)
's
of the
virtue
is
and Livia the agent her seduction After the rape game chess continues until dinner served usual Thus instead being sensationalised sexual violence placed firmly the context
Bianca
WOMEN
' S DIVISION
OF EXPERIENCE
103
of the play s concern with enforced marriage , state power , family relationships , and the contact between women . Patriarchy and class power constitute the warp and the weft of violence against women in these plays . If Middleton focuses on the grey area between seduction and rape , on the nebulous zone where Bianca is both victim and participant , both shocked and adaptive, it is because Bianca herself occupies several intersecting positions - she is simultane ously the young runaway bride who wants to believe in romantic love , the glamour - struck girl obsessed by the splendour of the 'noble state ' ( I.ii . 103 ), the bored wife beginning to chafe at the bondage ofmarriage , the daughter of parents great in wealth ' who desires to be the virtuous wife rich in her husband s love but who is already tired of squalor .
'
'
'
Leantio wooed her as a romantic lover but the Duke s language is explicitly commercial , playing on her own desires for wealth : ' Come, play the wise wench and provide for ever ' ( II. ii.383 ) . The rape becomes part seduction because it plays on her dissatisfaction ; yet it remains a rape because of her continuing participation in the illusions of romance and fidelity . Therefore Bianca moves away in sexual as well as class terms and yet perceives both transgressions as wrong . Finally of course , she moves from one bondage to another , as indeed does Isabella , and the question is raised whether anything else is possible for women in such societies.
The rape comes to mark Bianca 's alienation from the ideology of faithfulness and honour by which she has been expected to live ; this alienation is not translated into any supreme and penultimate moment of ‘ recognition but rather into a deepening discontinuity of perception and behaviour . Like Bianca , Beatrice - Joanna is ‘ forced into submission . And like Bianca, the process of coercion is never outside her . If Bianca's seduction depends on an awareness of what is denied her in terms of wealth , glamour and freedom , Beatrice 's transgression depends on an illusory perception of what is possible , by the combination of arrogance and naïvety that her class position confers on her . The effect of events upon character is reiterated . Beatrice changes twice – first she begins to love Alsemero , then DeFlores . She had declared both undying love for
'
'
-47 8
)
'd
;
,
no
at
,
.
to
by
lov
a
's
negate the previous state
scarce
is
).
.i .
(I
'
there
is
being Alsem thing but both and loath simultaneously attracted and repelled 122 Beatrice DeFlores and both alienated from and attached Alsemero However Each change does
ero notes that
not simply
my honour
,
'd of
'
then
. (V .i .
'
forc ' d to love thee now , Cause thou provid st so carefully
I' m
of DeFlores ; but for
Alsemero and her eternal hatred
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
104
point does she stand neatly outside patriarchal ideology ; she needs and
exploits Diaphanta , she desperately lies to Alsemero , she is truly wretched at being called whore . Sigrid Weigel, in an interesting essay called Double focus ,has argued that the latent schizophrenia of woman consists in the fact that those elements of the model of femininity which earn her moral respect (for example motherliness , understanding , socia bility ) are also the basis for her social subordination (p . 80 ) . This is certainly true of women in the plays who necessarily experience them selves through male eyes, but even so their 'giddy turning ' puzzles the they are longer the stable female subjects desired men in the play by dominant thought
'
.
no
for
'
The unstable divide drama female transgression no longer simply spectre protesting themale imagination Lisa Jardine correct against the attempt critics exonerate the female heroes these plays from the sexual slur The progression towards dichotomous longer able identity accompanies women active sexuality which expressed within patriarchal norms Rosalind Like
of
can
or
)
It
You
no
)
About Nothing
reconciliable
step the
to
are
(
,
or
)
of
of (
Portia Merchant Venice Beatrice Much Ado out female clothing roles but their desires
As
(
.
or
The
to
be
's
is
'.
a
to
of
'
in
is
a
is
by
.
In
Jacobean
conjured up
the
,
's
ones that restore the natural
to
'
.
in
.. .
or
trying
276
often coincides with the will although the process confers
in
fact their
The
choose perfectly acceptable lovers
;
the women
)
, .p
Thom
-
(
Finally
,
at
's
to
or
.
in
Andreson
sex
they function die
facilitating marriages
roles Shakespeare women are their best then when believe deliver men from their own best selves
to
in
heroines thrive
. ..
,
released from their usual habits and sexes from usual relations Shakespeare magnificient comic justify these customs
.. .
in
Women order
. . .
to are
:
masculine will
is
is
of (
(
ra
of
it
,
so
.
in
,
.
up
the
of
a
is
of
to
it
,
is
,
of
,
are
line
of
of
In
.
)
)
,
,
the
on
;
on
as
a
in
its
as
or , of
an
of
,
of
of
the patriarch Merchant Venice illusion free choice They remain chaste until the marriage rites are formalised and their defiance does not challenge the boundaries either race class Even possible that the play gender identity opens the issue women new way the whole however these are the texts rather than texts marriage Belsey suggests where the liberal notion The Duchess suggests where glowingly evokedsey evoked the case Desdemona there radical conflict glowingly well within the limits love which between her own perception chastity and patriarchal transfer woman from father husband and political connotations which clothe with the implications sexual selection
' S DIVISION
on
Malfi female sexuality hovers the borders limits widow remarriage licentious but technically per clearly unchaste but she The White Devil Vittoria desire plays female sex Cleopatra her lover Middleton is
,
is
in
's
of
, as
's
;
the
uality makes
is
as
,
:
,
.'
to In
is
faithful
105
of
In
acceptable
missible
OF EXPERIENCE
The Duchess
of
impurity
.
WOMEN
In
to
.
so
is
a
of
in
As
.
:'
of
is
is
to
the do
in
thin
the ,
by
,
, is
in
. be be
can
-
a
.I
.
final break from confines romanticism Bianca and Ford sexual nd Beatrice Joanna oscillate between different men Beatrice already evident transgression can only incest which only expressed Women Beware Women Therefore the general distinction between etherefore Elizabethan and Jacobean drama that the latter the assertive woman latter does sexually transgress and not only imagined Woodbridge comments significant The shift relation The Duchess Malfi Any defender women could show widow remaining
are
in
of
,
a
).
.
as
'
of (p
of
.
a
to
tragic But turn widow who does not remain chaste into was revolutionary 260 But precisely because this the ideological implications female disobedience the drama still chaste
hero
is
's of
as a
of a
of
(
',
,
–
of
to
').
of
.
of
of
's ;
is
it
,
as
;
of
's
in
,
under debate the criticism The Duchess Malfi reveals Lisa Jardine argues that play male assessment fraught Webster the Duchess with explicitly sexual innuendoes that this controls the audience judgement her that the Duchess secret marriage would be regarded by them much by her brothers typically female act cunning duplicity and sexual waywardness and that her punishment serves exorcise the spectre female rebellion Still Harping The Duchess reading telescopes the ideological effect Malfi Such the play into an
is
.
:' If
up
,
of 's
a
).
'( ).
of
of
(
of
a
of
.
'
to
deliberate contrast the horrors the brothers wrath This differ that the sexual slur which the brothers confer upon the
of
ence warns
us
its to
.p
of
;
if
,
in
to
of
the attitudes the male adversaries the Duchess There obvious emotional weightage accorded the Duchess but this only compounds assessing her which Shepherd effectively sums the problems we indict her lechery we side with the vicious brothers we want chaste heroine weshare the credulous ignorance Antonio 117 simple equation Catherine Belsey avoids male positions within Tragedy the play with the ideology the text The Subject She points the positive portrayal the Duchess relationship with Antonio and
as
,
By
of
is
so
,
of
(
,
sad
.
-
in
a
' '.
of
,
is a
to
of
in s
'
',
is
, by
do .
to
as
Duchess cannot be taken themoral tone the play itself Jardine seems But precisely such contrast between the Duchess and Belsey her brothers located liberal humanist oppositions marking the public political private between and and domestic glowingly place woman within the latter the affective ideal which history defined The Duchess Malfi collapses into the collabora tion between liberalism and sexism which defines the western family from the seventeenth century the present The play concludes perfect fable emergent liberalism Belsey Tragedy The Subject
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
106
pp .
197 -200 ). I would like
as
of
it
an
,
The
–
,
's
,
,
's
or
.
a
of
–
the
to suggest firstly , that the Duchess 's duplicity is handled very differently than in a medieval sterotype of female hypocrisy ; and secondly , that the play does not subscribe to but questions division exposes the ideological and political between private and public thrust such division Whereas other defences the period such Anger pamphlet Middleton More Dissemblers Besides Women argue that men not women are duplicitous The Duchess and White Devil Women Beware Women and Antony and Cleopatra offer examination female duplicity which begins by acknowledging denying instead Painter Palace Pleasure 1567 which contained original story translation from Matteo Bandello the Duchess she fine and subtile dame who lusts for Antonio order make hir way pleasure which she lusted more than marriage and her marriage itself Maske and coverture hide her follies and shameless lusts 184 Webster does not deny either the Duchess duplicity her active sexuality but female pleasure no longer dirty word the –
,
to
,
of )
',
‘
in
'
or in
'
a
,
is
).
.
(p
'
is a
to
,
to
'
',
is a
's
(
's
In
a
.
it
of
of
of
,
The Changeling
alternative
text liberal connotations are questionable the very grounds that point Belsey uses them true that the Duchess remains firmly within the domestic arena Vittoria Bianca Beatrice Joanna usurp Desdemona Annabella and Isabella none them overtly seeks male authority they remain within the spaces that have been patri archally defined personal and assigned women have already early modern society indicated themassive effort confine women ideologically and physically into domestic areas we also have seen that not coincidental that the issue absolutism arose the same time increased restrictions women see Shepherd 119 The Duchess literally enclosed the male dominated castle Denied individual identity and even name she merely the Duchess Not only are most Jacobean heroines banished the domestic sphere Cleopatra
. . So It
,
-
,
to
,
at
(
is
'.
.
)
, . p .
only
concessions patriarchally
create
-
110
12 )
ii . to
(
custom
.
,
or
Any new world
, III .
this
in
have
?
Why might not marry not gone about
I
I
often
for
but they
:
to
),
an
exception granted them
aim
to
'
is
a
,
-
in
(
on
is as it is
of
;
,
in
to
.
I
to
as
,
,
;
of
,
do
is
to
to
Its
on
.
new
,
,
or
of
of
a
,
of
a
of
.
The
in
, all
,
;
by
by
as
,
Despite their pitifully domestic urges these women are thwarted not family but Duchess Malfi The White Devil public authority the institutions feudal and mercantile patri political disarray even archy their transgression evokes chaos demarcating the private world from the cosmic proportions Instead
merely within the
' S DIVISION
WOMEN
OF EXPERIENCE
107
, the impossibility of the first isolating itself is underlined . Feminists have not invented the connection between the personal and the political ; patriarchal thought recognises it and attempts to disguise it . Thus a dowry murder in India is officially referred to as a ' dowry death , which lifts it from the category of an ordinary murder and seeks implicitly to exclude it from the realm of common criminality and justice . It becomes a ' family problem ', but of course the effort to hush it up is not merely familial , but requires the complicity of police, public public
the
the
opinion and legal structures . Themost passive and confined of female lives works as a crucial link in the political and public hierarchies . Although the Duchess is a good wife and mother she violates some of the notions of ideal femininity , as indeed she must , for such notions are total only within a stereotype . Precisely because she is so compliant , she cannot be demonised as a totally deviant woman . Yet she is destroyed even as a witch would be. It is this combination of the normal a
in
,
.
to
is
,
so
of
,
implica radical the domestic and the political that makes deeply disturbing p articularly story tions the situation where subject the most everyday normal woman the most violent fate and
of
,
as
of or to
lay
to
,
'
.
as s
R
(
J.
is
,
,
to
's
,
‘
it
is
its
to
in
a
;
by
of
its
to on
of
'd
by
.
a
as
to
).
, ';
. so 11
‘
a
( . , III
'
as
of
as
a
is
to
of ,
of
'
),
, , p . -
is
,
as
of
‘
,
in
,
,
to
,
as
.
to
to
a
of
.
of
a
is
of
highlight the violentunderpin play like The Duchess The effect nings the domestic Active female sexuality notmerely breach flagrant breach decorum but also the public and political order patriarchy knows and seeks feminists know and seek reveal and hide Precisely because most these women do not conceive political the violent and public reaction articulate their demands aspirations their serves not subscribe but bare the division between domestic and political personal and public emotional and rational Again the sister tragedy The White Devil the term Brown The Duchess Malfi xxxi Vittoria publicly confronts the judiciary well the Church but only because her adultery like the Duchess remarriage private issue Vittoria recognises and not treated exposes the attempt calling divide the personal and the public rape by claiming that the State and Church have ravish her trial justice 271 273 Patriarchal legality conceives female sexuality employing criminal she seizes own analogy and inverts sexuality legal procedure thus she the language describe the employ the connection between sexuality and power first favour
is ,
as
be
.
of
,
I
,
of
the
a
of
. At
,
is
of
,
to
of
in
.
as
,
In a
society where the nuclear family and ideals are evolving still India the effect Jacobean tragedy can read interrogation instead reading closure the same time such believe not contrary the sexual politics the Renaissance where political control patriarchy vocabulary the language also the woman
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
108
a
-
an
In
.
,
or
of
by
of
arebe
,
for
to
of
be
to
of
for
private and public ; the Vittoria articulates the connections between Duchess does not . But the politics of these texts cannot be collapsed into the consciousness of the individual heroine : to search consciously political protagonist carry the burden anti patri replicate archal text would the terms idealist criticism search ing the perfect and unified female revolutionary feminists may them underlining the terms guilty selves heroic liberal drama
,
,
it
an
is
by
-
's
a
;
on
.
is to
a
of
which denied Jacobean tragedy The Duchess Malfi not elabor ate patriarchal device contain female rebellion the contrary misogynist delight duplicitous sexually takes woman who
by
of
,
to
are
in
to
.
,
-
,
defending her along the lines active defiant and then proceeds not that misogynists are familiar with and know how counter but asking questions which are hard patriarchy answer the language
be
It
,
.
or
its in
to
a
.
in
a
,
of
.
of
Dr
by
to
of of
of
patriarchally imposed upon The fissures the female changeling expose the politics her and yet serve her subordination can rupturing the linkage suggested that heroism and morality these plays achieve for female identity what Faustus Macbeth had for the acknowledge notion man But such rupture becomes harder the case woman hence the dominant critical silence about implications these plays
Restriction and resistance of
I
,
of
,
't
,
,
all
.
of
or
. is
a
in
;
is
a
to
-
or ,
Mol , ,
:
of
of
is
roles areare
.
in
is
is
an
uncontrollable female sexuality because she remains chaste related those the genre generally speaking comedy foregrounds physical movement while Renaissance conceptual implications tragedy increasingly concerns itself with resulting duplicity and schizophrenia the women The tragic heroine located within the estate castle home Juliet cannot even consider running away with Romeo Mantua but must await him the tomb her forefathers and her attempts external
.
:
of
.
or
at
,
(
or
,
of
)
of
to
,
or
in
is
in
,
its
,
to
these differences can
be
,
Partly
of
problem
is
,
to
is
,
or
is
,
,
discur .
andI
,
3
to In
meaning from physical and spatial discussed the slide mobility ideological sexual and Renaissance texts But the corres pondence between them necessarily straightforward for example not ideolohem the most physically mobileneemale female roles those Rosalind Viola dependent upon disguise and Portia but here the mobility have upon ideological fixity shown involves female behaviour Moll Cutpurse more mobile more obviously defiant than the physically enclosed finally locked cupboard Duchess Beatrice Joanna who reformatory Vittoria who confined but she not necessarily patriarchy city more resistant Moll roams the resists the confine marriage but also keeper the law and above doesn raise the chapter
WOMEN ’ S DIVISION OF EXPERIENCE
109
internal movement result in her violent end ; her comic counterpart travels around , either into fictitious worlds like Arden or actual spaces of streets and shops of London , but is finally reinstated within the social order .
If Moll
questions the spaces allotted to women by straying out of , appropriating masculine dress that allows for more physically them spatial freedom and refusing the confine of home and marriage , the Duchess interrogates social and sexualboundaries from within tradition
is
is a
to
's
the
, at
of
as a
;
so
-
, ,
of
all
ally alloted female spaces and thus threatens their very separation from the masculine , the public , and the political arenas . Women 's speech spans both physical and conceptual movement, but not speech disruptive example Taming for The Shrew involves not Kate silen cing but her schooling that her longest speech tribute her husband shrew she actually spoke less but disobedience conferred
(
,
's
of ,
in
to
.
91 )
149
-
.
,
Tragedy
pp
The Subject
of
),
to
(
is
.
the illusion excess upon her words But other times female speech epitomises rebellion Cleopatra Shakespeare the most verbose obey women hence the injunction women silence see Belsey to
of
;
as
.
'
well
as
as
physically
,
lacking both public and private space
.
is
'
are
a
of
all
,
's
, It
.
to
,
Therefore
is
,
,
's
in
to
.
or
-
as
of
of
a
.
life
,
to
.
a
to
,
in
in
of
as
's
as
the
,
on
,
its
by
in a
to
is
is
of
It
their usual sphere becomes evident that the one hand slightest evidence female resistance and the other political repercussions female movement magnified position We are now consider the correlation between physical conceptual mobility approach and and coercion more fully order duplicity aspects further recurrent female the texts Men have private public existence whereas women are taught well func private lives only They lack public tion within men their own they are denied participation producers and controllers wealth authority But correspondingly they are denied dimension com parable men private lives since aspects their lives controlled significant that although private domin and that sense public publicly structured antly refers sexuality the sexual woman there
.
away from
on
',
its
to
of
,
is
'in
a
,
,
at
.
to
so
in
a
to
.
is
In
of
,
of
a
its
In
society where stability was invoked maintain monarchism and attendant hierarchies the interrogation both physical and ideolo gical boundaries subversive the seventeenth century both sorts movement threatened status quo which had accommodate the potential for literal movement urban culture the ideology privacy had accomplish what the castle wall had hitherto done Since posit the division between private the texts we have been looking public and inner and outer emotional and political constructed and ideological function unstable such divide unable serve keeping women their place and instead catalyses their movement
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
110
ideologically , woman has had to retreat further into her inner being in order to find spaces that are not publicly controlled . Wemay identify the act ofwriting by women as an attempt to replace privacy with literary
'
'
,
As
are
space . Such attempts may exist alongside the effort to find actual spaces
to is
;
of
be
').
At
an
,
as
to
's
',
(
-
of
in
no
,
to
.
prioritised precisely when the former are not available but such they are contradictory enterprises doomed failure because there are free inner spaces the absence outer ones creative writing possible only when some realms privacy are physically granted upper class women Creativity see Thorne Women the same protect strategies time secrecy and withdrawal can be seen
.
in
to
I,
of
as
-
a
it
:
in a
no
to
:
a
a
In
a
as
up
.
to
to
us
placed Duchess and her sisters should Let return briefly the example Elizabeth who repeatedly attempted appropriate masculine identity order consolidate authority this she was not unique for latter day female authority like Indira Gandhi also felt compelled claim that she had been brought compliment boy and felt different from man she thought
'
'(
as
to
be
,
,
as
).
, .p
,
as
'
are
to
when referred the only man the cabinet and said that certain qualities associated with men such decision making see Kishwar comparison and Vanita 254 No doubt the can extended Margaret Thatcher who rule include other women such what Heisch has called honorary men and extend patriarchal rather than is
it
,
on
to
it
.
, ,
significant female power Of course such assertions are strategic but that Elizabeth simultaneously evoked her femininity sheltering behind procrastinate marriage which her Parliament was pressuring in
.. .'
to
).
34
at
of
;
as
.
p
',
a
,
I:
(
',
,
a
to
'
:
of
her towards The weight and greatness this matter might cawse being wantinge me woman both witt and memory some feare my sex speake and bashfulness besides thing appropriat parliamentary rhetoric Heisch Queen Elizabeth Therefore honorary male and weak female she oscillated between her status while this may indicate one level the internalisation female inferior
's
'
to
to
of of
'
a
in
be
.
to it
,
at
ity
appropriate the public was brilliant strategy both women and repudiate the private realm allocated them Similar strategic employment both masculine virtue and femin inity will Cleopatra noted the case oscillation between another
spaces denied
'
a
en
'
e
no
‘
17 )
vii .
'(
of
of
no
to
us
do
it .
,
, .
in
'
'.
a
of
to is
to
'
'
).
73
.
'
.
IV
(
III .
my kingdom and more but woman xiv These movements allow consider the subversive aspects option but female hypocrisy Isabella Women Beware Women has marriage only enter into forced with the foolish Ward Her choice that the attitude with which she will Now when she begins love Guardiano she finds her marriage can accommodate her secret president
'S
WOMEN
DIVISION OF EXPERIENCE
111
affair . Since the former involves emotional hypocrisy anyway
, she
finds
not require , or even consider thewhole of her being , therefore it initiates the split between appearance and reality . Whereas men can be legitimately two - faced ( the public and
it easier
to dissemble . The marriage does
the private man ) , in the case of women , the colonisation of the dark continent of interiority must be protected by duplicity . For the men in The Duchess of Malfi , the Duchess is typed as duplicitous even before they know of her marriage . In the very first scene she is actions will come to light ; the Cardinal ' s fears anticipate , and perhaps contribute to the formulation of, her plans :
told
that
' darkest
her
You may flatter yourself And take your own choice : privately
Under the
be married
of the night. (1.1.316 - 18)
eaves
By
on
is
,
.
his
to
's
-
,
,
of
is a
or
.
is
.
be
is
to
,
of
his
Beatrice - Joanna is assumed to be duplicitous by Alsemero even as he appropriat goddess and the goal thinks of her as existence ing his virginity test substituting Diaphanta for herself Beatrice attempting protect herself but also exposing the premises which any marriage would founded The Duchess Vittoria Beatrice Joanna merely adopt the dichotomy that patriarchal thought has conferred upon them anyway The difference that whereas women anticipated duplicity patriarchal attempt sexual activity demonise and
.
to
,
a
a
of
/
,
,
so
.
to
in
:
specific female experience
of an
but
,
to
men
be
be
To
in
relation
a
.
is
/
,
/
of
be
in
to
,
are
of
,
is
exorcise them actual transgression subversive this control The increasing secrecy rebellion also indicates the extent which women are divided subjects whose public and private lives are forced apart and who under male public gaze The fact that they are forced experience themselves only relation men works like knife any sense and experience the that they can never unified subjects virgin whore dichotomies intellect body reproductive vessel decorative object Male objectification not only placement women
,
as a
a
.. .
in
.
.at act
. ..
as
's
a
of
a
at in .
of
.
of
of
a
to
born woman has been born within allotted and confined space into the keeping men The social presence women has developed living under result their ingenuity such tutelage within such limited space But this has been the cost woman self being split two her being appreciated own sense herself by another Men andwomen appear
-
.
the combination
of
ences herself precisely
.
:
the surveyed female
)
, .
p
(
.
47 is
male
in
women herself object Berger
criteria for self appraisal are male Beatrice Joanna thus
as
's
Women
of
The surveyor
Thus she turns herself into
an
themselves
.
to
of
.
at
Men look women Women watch themselves being looked This determines not only the relations between men and women but also the relation women
experi
goddess and whore
that
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA are
112
for all
all
at
as
-
all
,
's
', ).
, .p
to
to
.
of by
of
as
)
.
'
(p
21
a
',
to
'.
of
'
's
,
is
to (
'
a
in
of
is
,
it
be
in
of
'
if
,
‘
Duplicity
of
.
to
,
law
is
all
is
;
all
powerful goddess she had been told women she once the whom men desire and whose will and the whore whom men hate and who begs father and husband not come near her fear she will taint them Secondly male and female differences are seen the product symbolic structures encoded the language the pre existing culture argued that into which one born can women have suffered trying speech impediment some degree communicate female experience with phallocentric tongue Ardener 206 WhatKristeva according calls the hysteric voice Juliet Mitchell women mas culine language talking feminine experience Thus concludes Ecker speak from within the who quotes the others Women are seen patriarchal discourse rather than from phallocentric source exterior symbolic forms
is
It
a
's
is
, for
us
,
's
,
as
or
,
is
to a
of
?
a
of
,
is
'.
If
is
to
,
in
'
as
in
of
go
to
,
:
', ,
of
'(
'). '
-i
.
it
as
,
in
.
's
of
strategy both born and flawed the dichotomies women own experience raises the question false conscious ness which has also been asked connection with women cross dressing Here has been argued that women dressing men only confirm male mposed criteria freedom and that their rebellion Subjectivity sexuality and therefore not the real thing see Dollimore right back into the debates around transgression The question takes ideology Lenin who needed theorise the basis the growing revolutionary consciousness beyond Marx Russia needed ideology just false consciousness ideology definition neces oppressive then where sarily rooted material reality and this reality revolutionary consciousness Lenin extended the are the sources concept ideology consciousness which various and includes different oppositional versions such the bourgeois the socialist a
is
's
, or
,
's
of
” , a
in
an
'
by
'
:
of
a
.p
):
.
of
'(
it
to
at
an “
on
a
of ,
of
on
In
.
an
on
of
,
of
,
-d
to
us
)
)
to
's
is
).
be
to
it
in
,
(
(
(
is
general What Done Althusser further distinction between ideology whose function ensure social cohesion and specific ideologies deriving from various class positions extremely useful ressing here for allows see that cross women dichotomies the drama are neither pure revolutionary consciousness nor merely false but rather are representative the powerful clash ideas played subjectivity out the arena her notes feminist theory Joan Kelly concluded that oppositional consciousness arises out the discrepancy between the real and the ideal experienced those who stand the boundary the dominant culture like Hegel slave unhappy consciousness woman experiences form alienation participant that makes her once the culture that oppresses her unhappiness informs the duplicitous and stranger xxv such changeling the drama
WOMEN ’ S DIVISION OF EXPERIENCE
113
Receiving the disorderly woman Dominant readings of Renaissance
its
of
In
).
to
to
of
of
.
on
are
to
in
,
by
an
of
(
,
to
its
tragedy have moved towards a authority and hence closure, a sealing off of disturbances potential Tragedy radical see Dollimore Radical the colonial context effacing this has implied the various contradictions experienced the readers both relation their own culture and the colonial analogous text The binary oppositions imposed women and
, is
let
to
5
to
).
-
no a
to
-
in
; .
pp
',
,
of
-
as a
or as
as
,
by
.
of
,
or
,
,
, ,
, .'
'(
for
as
/
-
of a
of ).
, .p
(
/
, I ,
To
.
far
,
/
,
by
It
.
I
in
a
as
of
,
of
to
of
;
in
reinforce those colonial discourse thus the case Indian women the erasure extends both powerfully interlinking sets contradic tions each vantage point for grasping which may otherwise serve the interrogation various boundaries that have traced the texts and vice versa has been suggested that Indian women experience social space along the binary oppositions imposed patriarchal thought private public danger safety pure polluted Sharma 227 Instead static dichotomy however suggest that the experience Indian women begin with Indian religions and culture contain more volatile powerfulmatriarchal myths myths female power Such myths repeatedly m ay only we are warned confirm male superiority either working demonising female strength safety valve out anti patriarchal steam However Natalie Davis suggests the image the disorderly woman evenwhen contained and demonised opens outbehavioral options women 154 Female strength and female disorder interchangeable images glorify Indian are not the sometimes cited proto feminist traditions fact function underline male concep in
. ..
is
.
on
's
her
,
to to
.
of
to
.
of
in
is
's
is
'.?
in
so
in
is
-
of
,
for
,
at
all
'
:
of
tion female energy The feminist movement has relevance India none because ourwhole background different Take typically strong women She instance Savitri she the line challenged even death and persevered doing because she was exercising her natural feminine quality Savitri power derived from and the service her husband She had married Satyavan despite the knowledge that he was fated die within one year When the god death Yama came claim him came accompanying her husband simha Savitri insisted since his wife place was
's
.
67 )
so
of
in
to
's
all
.
.
to
him
accept Yama assurances that with her S he refpanying She refused husband death her wifely obligations had expired Finally Satyavan acknowledgement was returned Savitri her devotion that the always with him
a
.
;
, . p
'(
of
a
of
prowess and capable perpetuating our race Kakar Here we powerful legitimisation have the ideologies that inform sati and
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE
114
tion
's
a reproducer of the patriarchal story . Even in the evocation of the to assert an indigeneous tradi of female power ( cited above ), there is not only a rejection of
woman family
DRAMA
strength
is
as a
wife and as
as
' of
'
a
of
-
of a
by
, or
be
by , ,
as
be
can
of
to
.
,
,
an
of
of
via
wifely power but, the affirmation natural attribute powerful implicit negation women whole counter tradition precisely those norms upheld and disturbing femininity subversive by Savitri This tradition has slowly begun uncovered although large areas feminism
assimilated
into
,
'
(
,
'
.
'
,
of
so
a
,
is
.
,
's
;
by
or
,
by
a
be
.
-
of as
;
to of
,
In
,
is
-
of as
(p
in
is
it
,
in
be is
of
).
as
of
‘a
,
it
by
,
's of
it
in
55
of
,
,
of
').
in
of
,
';
,
and
;
it
demonised clouded over Marriage and cultures see Babb Chattopadhyay Lokayata Ideology and the malevolence Ponniah status women Hindu society Liddle and Joshi suggest that this tradition including worship the mother goddess constitutes matri preserves the value archal culture the sense that women life represents the acknow givers and sources activating energy and power ledgement women women and men the culture Although this concept somewhat vague and doubtful whether any sense Indian culture today can called matriarchal the term powerful and the presence this counter tradition makes available potentially radical ambivalence and dichotomy which easily con not may popular suggest tained dominant culture culture the early powerful figure goddess the malevolent unmarried woven into images everyday life female disobedience and vice versa both are powerful behavioral sought be ritually exorcised but survive options These may contemporary images bolstered wide array for example those provided the growing women movement seen
dominant histories myths
,
,
is
of ,
.
is
,
to
for
of
an
,
,
a
In
of '
' . in
of
,
conversely feminist movements education may strategically seize upon the latent dichotomy popular culture example the folk festival Bandamma Panduga Andhra may interrogation one find disturbance desired female designed behaviour through theatrical representation The festival propitiate the goddess Bandamma who single powerful and there in
in
is
is
is
on
,
,
of
,
to
.
.
as in
to
fore evil Her active sexuality linked fears female authority general and widows disobedient wives and promiscous women particular During the first four days worshipped the festival she powerful malignant day represented aspect her and and the final
of
of
to
.
, ,
is
;
are
the
in
the
,
,
of
of
:
,
.
,
propitiated tamed and domesticated Two different kinds theatrical performances are therefore held the first are skits which revolve around the theme the world turned upside down and reversals social particularly sexual hierarchy the second formal drama emphasising female loyalty male protectiveness and social stability As Tapper notes disorderly closely linked reversals skits actual fears
WOMEN ' S DIVISION OF EXPERIENCE
115
women :
one
from
of
.
,
,
of
to
)
.( .p
quote briefly
such skit
Do
will
marital breakdown
:
I
other aspects
about female character dominance Among the heirs the role female husbands adultery and
24
of
,
for
in
of
for
These skits are also interesting guides to the suspicions which are a part of the ideological rationale male issues raised them are the problem the lack male respect their economic activity the need wives
all
a
)
off
.
be
,
on to
as
(
‘
'
righted
the reversals and these are finally
by )
-24 5
Tapper
!(
)
, pp .
I
.
to
so
) .( .
Aside Except Penta Rao
of
by
.
at
I
The audience laughs the drama
?
on
Ah
'
am ll
, on I I,
?
on
never desired any other man
born
on
,
it
I
, if
as a
.
to
!
't
:
,
:
I
go
.)
to
to
of
.
off
,
on
( As
)
a
to
(
.
a
.. .
,
a
)
?
to
(
:
(
,
brags
is
gossiping with another woman you have husband who Long pause Well perhaps our husbands are similar after has crooked mouth and mine has crooked arse Enters the help her take heavy basket house and begins ordering her husband her my head Do slowly help me take this basket head Come careful step he helps her she uses the opportunity his bending over his my devotion loyal wife putmy foot your head you head Due straight will heaven my head Husband Hey Are you putting your foot every wife Hold Wife Yes doesn take my leg down said she steps loyal you From the day was him even more emphatically Wife
equal mine Your husband
of
,
of
,
of
.
an
.
,
's
for of
of
,
by
,
as
of
.
If
of
;
as
is
with the instances disorder analysed Davis their contain oppression not complete both the daily experience linkage power single goddess women and the with the the makes such images desired rather than totally negative Indira Gandhi encour aged representations herself Kali the goddess destruction she image During was playing upon the ambivalence allowed such the independence struggle women resistance was glorified and chan neled into patriarchally accepted images active women For example But
ment
or
to
189
).
.p
',
Ravana
',
Vanita
'(
world
to
to a
to
a
it;
'a
is
on
,
;
at
of
is
as
, ,
the legendary Rani Jhansi celebrated her resistance the British Raj during the 1857 uprising popularly represented mardani man nish the other end the spectrum the Gandhian movement enlisted giver mass female participation but the premise that woman whose giving extends beyond the family but does not exclude mother and sister not few individuals but the country and the
of
My point simply firstly that the ambivalence such amplified be Wemust deny the supposed homogeneity
of
of
for
,
is
in
,
of
,
–
is
.
as
of
,
.
is
histories must culture and position the Indian female readers occupying diverse and contradic tory heritages Secondly course the radical potential such heterogeneity conjunction with sub not inherent but catalysed sequent developments example growing articulation female
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE
116
DRAMA
discontent and the women 's movement. So one may suggest that the images of female disorder in Renaissance drama and in , say, Indian , contemporary reality culture and can be made to become mutually illuminating , can be made to interact in specific classroom situations . We have spoken of the various contradictions which operate in the
/
is
a
is
's
as
disguised
('
to
actors playing women resist transcend
to
argument Catherine Belsey that male men produced subject that able usual gender divisions Disrupting sexual differ the latter
?
the handicaps
of
all
are
case of the Jacobean heroine . The final one is of course between the male author and the female creation . Whose voice do we hear ? The woman protagonist or the male author ? Do the heroines experience greater interiorisation of male behaviour than is usual because they are they able the products of the masculine pen ? Or resist male domin precisely ation more than real life women because they do not suffer
-
is
,
-
to
is
a
of
as
are
').
,
to to
suggest that because male writers speak Can we extend this trying appropriate male prerogatives there women who greater disruption even the purely uni gendered standpoint such subject occupy the area between the real life that the female able ence
to ?
as
,
woman and the conventional heroine between the stereotypical woman and the monstrous one WOUS one why male writers should foreground The question still remains a
of
,
's
An
/
of of
as
to
be
of
as
;
to
is to
.
of
.
I
of
the issue female transgression have suggested that the idea patriarchal conspiracy reduces the complexities the ideologies that inform the plays and and also ignores their political thrust author gender relations part attitude be seen his her other politics not simply coexisting with them use the sex the author uncritically as
the
On
.
to
.
of
,
far
is in
far
–
a
an
of
as
or
/
to
a
as
an
patriarchalism great indicator his her feminism would accept the class background mistake individual sufficient although wemay grant that for determining their politics feminist perspective principle more readily available women other hand the plays are more contradictory and complicated than just simple defences women
of
a
are
of
on
to
As
a
,
its
of
single and stable meaning
on
insist
;
serve only
on a
may
to
a
,
to
.
's
of
I
for
.
in
shall suggest the next chapter women also become exploration the theatre own complicated relationship quo the status Finally constant harking back the question authorial intention
relations vehicle to
a
of
a
be
'.
it
in
'
its
)
(
in
Instead gender becomes also the metaphor though not merely crudely representative sense relationships between for series authority and others Such metaphors are not limited for the use power and can suggested that they those crucial for drama power which has increasingly been seen focus the complexity
the contrary
'S
WOMEN
DIVISION
OF EXPERIENCE
117
its its
,
to
on
in
to
.
of
of
it
;
in
of
,
be
.
via
its
by
,
to
of
to explore the different effects of the play is not only to uncover meanings within specific situations but also amplify aspects inception which have been historically clouded dominantdeploy interrogation possible duplicitous ment The radical the woman then may only one meaning which attaches Renaissance drama contemporary English from the perspective the situation obtaining studies India nevertheless serves focus both Renaissance sexual politics and some the subsequent histories these texts
he
of
to
is
.
of in
).
'(
of .p
to
of
,
,
-
;
is
of
. .
's
'
Ornstein finds that DeFlores was her fate because realised the potentialities her nature Like Middleton other heroines Beatrice must be betrayed order know family and duty herself for only he can free her from the chains convention and He her Petrarchan love his single minded reckless consuming sexual hunger the closest approximation she will find the literary dream absolute passion 187
, .
1
Notes
, of
of
(
'
,
a
's
of
Middleton
Women Beware Women see my
the
to a
;
is in
by
,
is to
,
to
:
; ,
if
or
of a
'.
,
'O
.
to
;
to
'
to
Lal , s
to .
,
;
,
Punjabi See Kakar The InnerWorld Mernissi Beyond Veil One such folk song woman narrates her experiences after marriage her friends whenever she goes plate next she finds her husband Girdhari hers when she goes bathe sleep his bed and she goes his underclothes when she goes the toilet his wash bowl appears next her own The song becomes bawdier and punctuated the friends chanting wonderful Girdhari Lal The tone flavour are untranslatable but since Girdhari
of
,
or
of
.
to
of
'
,
,
or
,
, of
of
in
to
is
in ).
, I
of
.
as
to
)
or
as
i(. e
's
he
.
In
of
to
wrong
is
technically permisible religion and law the eyes think Wadsworth assume that remarriage was tolerated because the widow substance was desirable economic proposition fact himself notes that the King widows long remarry those women who inherited property held by him were allowed
a is
remarriage
.
'
(p
to
,
's
rather irritating proximity the song hilariously supposed sexual prowess the bride even downright abusive Agrippa Stephen Guazzo and William argues that the evidence suggests that when Webster decided dramatise the story of the Duchess Malfi he would not have had assume that his audience would immediately and automatically condemn suggest that widow the Duchess for remarrying 398 While there evidence achievement consists
marriage undercuts the romance even the groom Some other songs are more unkind Citing the pronouncements Vives Cornelius remarriage Frank Wadsworth Heale favour .
3
?
'
of '. T is . is S a .
an
,
).
recent adaptation chapter six
eat ,
2
'
analysis For Disorderly Women
.
an
', of ( a p .
of
.
!)
‘
in
'
in
of
,
'
,
is
Butdoes Beatrice ever know herself and she ever freed Here the terms heroic drama are reproduced and romanticised and there no analysis the interlinkage class and gender this consuming sexual hunger Eliot claimed that Middleton tragedy better than any understood woman the Elizabethans excluding understanding patronising almost intuitive course Shakespeare For Eliot such genius because there are permanent human feelings and act possible by the man universal femininity 166
.
a
rather than
confirmed
and unequivocal
indictment from
all of
tension
a
.
,
a
remarriage
it
is
of
by
to
, : it
a
is
of
it .
they did not claim this property paid the necessary fee for Wadsworth concludes that the attitude towards widow remarriage was economic instead moral However crude separation of the two not possible hence while may be suggested that the richer the widow the more the disapproval also true that the disapproval would religion and misogynist prejudice and filter down bolster itself the moral tones wards all widows On the other hand this suggests debate over the question
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
118
,
to
's
's
on
's
.
woman loneliness and dissertation women
';
,
';
in
of
's
.
-
to in
:
,
a
:
's
“
:
of
of
.
on
creativity and architectural space brings together similar issues with useful documenta tion medieval and Renaissance housing For analysis the patriarchal basis various apparently feminist myths see Joan Bam why men rule berger The myth matriarchy primitive society Mandy Merck The city achievements the patriotic Amazonomachy and ancient Athens William Blake Tyrell Amazons study Athenianmyth making Marina Warner MonumentsandMaidens
'
.
, so
am
to a
of
is
in
in
.
)
of
.
(
-
of
of
in
's
a
, , as
in
.
-p
is
's a
in
I
as a
,
indicating the duality urban readers the texts but here interested what has been dominantly claimed closed and static tradition Such disturbance urban areas may be provided by the militancy the growing women movement or by agit rop theatre Interestingly women result the mass scale involvement political but not necessarily feminist during the independence struggle women many Western European contexts activity India than more acceptable to
8
,
,
,
an
-
of
.
is a of
;
of ,
of in
's
.
,
of
of
iconography the meaning the female form Times India Chattopadhyay veteran freedom fighter and author Indian Women Battle Freedom she typifies the post colonial dilemma Beyondthe Veil where third world women indigenous which Mernissi talks heritage and mode struggle becomes imperative and yet leads into the pitfalls indi cated by Fanon of asserting some of the most retrogressive elements of tradition specific particular region This festival the precise disturbance does not apply also useful with respect Kamladevi Chattopadhyay
for of
6
of
an
.
of
analysis Genre and gender for novel TheBrokenNest Anne Thorne
's ’s‘
in
5
See Rashmi Bhatnagar literary space Tagore
is 7
's
to
an
.
in
for
sections of society . I am deeply indebted to Judith Blair ' s brilliant essay ‘ Private parts in public places ' my analysis duplicity This article and others Ardener collection Women andSpace provided spatial analysis generally and directed my attention introduction the social and sexual placement women
of
4
thoughts ':
‘ Travelling
theatre and the space of the other Negative capability reconsidered The assumption of dominant Anglo - American criticism , that tragedy arrive at ‘ some comprehensive vision of the relation of human suffering to human joy (Ribner , p . 1) and must lead catharsis moral certainity was central both bringing the privileged text texte institutionalising this by framing hieravileged closure and hierarchical canon sraming drama great art The exalted stature Shakespearean affirmation to
,
in
a
,
of
ofShake order and
its
a
in
.
'
'
of
to
via
'
of a
must
‘
as
).
, .p
a
its
an
of
‘r
at
do
)
-t
).
xiv
its
as “
'
of
to
as
an
:
of
of of
early tragedy
-
,
.
,
pp
'
in a
on
' '
(
of
'
of
est
(
,
(
to
)
(i
a
.e
moral conservative movement towards final and unquestionable truth are interdependent claims which are invoked confirm one another see also Heinemann 203 On the other hand Middletonian drama for example was dismissed not the high tragedy protagonists kind because not arrive any ecog elling nition truth Muir xiii Truth was attribute the Godlike and detached artist and yet this criterion was selectively applied negative slanted principle precisely what was celebrated capability ironically Shakespeare was dismissed the case detached unheroic view life not attuned the heroic passions
,
of
re -
,
of
'
, a
a
' ,
to
.'
'
in
the case Middleton Bertolt Brecht has increasingly been used read the plays the period because he found complex shifting largely impersonal never soluble conflict disconnectedness both structure and perspective in
'
'
for
apex
,
for Brecht observed Shakespeare contem
's
twenty
of
at
Shakespearean
least
analysis was important also
for focusing
new and self
con of
an
to
in
,
of
an
by
as
form
of
and
,
;
.
on
textual meaning and The blurring distinctions between comedy and tragedy had often been disparagingly noted critics relation the plays Middleton Women Beware Women for example has been called unsuc structure
aspect
-
's
Brecht
scious way perspective
in a
.
similar characteristics poraries
in
,
its
the Renaissance canon with
)
, , . .p
on
of
,
for
a
as
(
to
that approximated his own Brecht Theatre 161 what had been regarded omniscient authorial detachment This has radical impli democratising cations not only the reading the plays but
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
120
create tragedy
‘
a
to
).
in
;
.
-
of
,
-
its
of of
'
in
of
'(
, .p
‘
its
to
',
of
of
out the materials and conventions central theme more appropriate broadside balladeer than the tragic poet Ornstein 140 Brecht read such im purities the context the various ways which Renaissance drama resisted artistic isolation into the world make believe He noted that language incorporated the speech the beer hall audiences that daylight performances and open stages prevented hypnotic illusion cessful attempt satiric comedy
.
-
by
practised not only Shakespeare the period see Heinemann 209 ).
, .p
of
‘
a
',
(
also
,
self
a
a
naive surreas surrealism
other naive dramatists by other
of
but
to
,
Brecht
byled
of
as
-
a
;
and of
to
that the dramatisation material familiar the audience encouraged critical approach that the collective nature the theatre companies and their life style encouraged montage and epic construction which opposes the idea drama self stage sufficient microcosm All this says
's
him
to
of
-
of
is
in
.
(
of
-7 ),
is
of
'
of
in
,
‘
;
art
”
'
's
'
in
,
-
,
in
,
”
"
is
'
Shakespeare Robert Weimann has demonstrated that the basis Robem capability itself socio historical located partly the free by dom the detachment and the imagination made available popular partly the tradition the theater and the fact that while capitalism older feudal values could already be questioned those were not yet their necessary alternative the myriad mindedness Shakespeare contextualised by Weimann terms the position ing both artist and the playhouse pp 176 and interwoven with negative
of
',
(
;
its
of
its
,
of
‘
'
's
on to
of
by
.
,
the structural looseness the plays More recently Jonathan Dollimore implications drawing has elaborated the the Brechtian connection upon Brecht approach identify critical and dramatic the materialist discontinuity emphasis realism Renaissance drama form and character and radical questioning the philosophical and political status quo Radical Tragedy see also Heinemann How Brecht
to
an
.
of
's
. ..
Brecht
'(
of
has to
:'
One has life develop
be to
in
,
-
.
on
-
a
true realism
the stage
of a
of
).
, .p
An
vaccuum
see the laws that decide how the processes
Theatre
-
,
,
things
27
able
to
do
suggests
not connote free wheeling more than just make reality visible
sense does
on
Brecht claimed the open endedness could happen one way they could also Open endedness totally different manner this
if it
: a
in
–
have happened
that
as
-t
,
a
of for
resisting closure situation
to
, of
to
at
is
-
is
').
read Shakespeare My own purpose here gender more fully insert the dimension suggest that into such proto Brechtian multiplicity and montage and partly epic closely the structure least derived from and related gender roles and patriarchal authority Con the drama interrogation versely the non eleological form itself becomes important vehicle
.
of
invocation the sanctity linear and teleological structure was crucial for the colonial deployment the Western canon On the one
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
121
hand , it ensured that questions of form and structure flooded ( and still do ) the examination papers , inviting the reader yet again to squeeze the text into a strait- jacket and to erase the possible fractures of experience in reading it . On the other , it imposed Western aesthetics ( for example , the Aristotelian demarcation of tragedy from comedy ) upon traditions , drama (both classical and folk ) , which had the intermingling of moods and genres . Westernised theatre groups , and imported British troupes (often playingmelodrama Shakespeare versions see chapter ensured the hegemony performance generations such ideas actual and actors were taught forget the proto Brechtian epic traditions the Indian theatre as that of Indian
such
of
.
of
-
to
,
of
)
1
;
in
tic
of
acknowledged
to
, , ,
of
,
;
it
,
,
in
's
's
,
to
the West and those who have
,
,
to
movement cannot be explained simply by analogies Western linearity such those Miller Beckett for refers it
)
or
of
as
(
rejections specifically experience
of
a
such
,
.
,
It
,
of ,
its
gaze like Rushdie Márquez and recently Ghosh step out from the model linear time and space and transgress may be said however that literary the dominant Western model
,
become current objects
of
writers unknown
both
to
is
in
's.
to
on
to
,
modern
,
a
.
it
of
it
by
to
Today there have been some efforts heritage and revive such infusing with contemporary relevance This has included adaptations Western drama and when Habib Tanvir for example has performed Brecht plays the style folk theatre from Chattisgarh using the latter actors andmusic among other things has illustrated assumptions the extent which much Indian drama had worked and techniques analogous Brecht There not the space here consider the ways which third world literatures both traditional and enrich
;
for
-
a
of
to
is
of
'
'
as
.
to
is
of it by
a
to
or
do
to ).
,
see
of
it
,
(
to
of
the disjunctures and complexities non Western Datta for example simply However will not demarcate the two either the comply with the structural ideological refusal Western text equally useful for ques unity demanded dominant criticisms tioning the preferred textual model Hence seize upon what Brecht saw the disconnectedness Renaissance drama one way con
,
English
.
Indian departments
of
of
as it
,
,
to
or
of
,
as a
by
,
At
as
.
by
it
on
to
-
is
,
,
.
its
to
on
a
as
its
test institutionalised usage the barricade around series privileged positions Finally since the patriarchal gaze women and the colonial one others one dimensional because aimsboth deny their potential for mobility wemay obscure their depth and usefully consider how montage structural and thematic perspective challenge portrayals can the dominant women and other colonised peoples identifying these perspectives and the same time techniques not exclusive the hitherto privileged author text and by bringing excluded ones into related focus we may question the sanctity the Western syllabus has been inherited and preserved
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE
122
DRAMA
Montage Middleton 's frequent collaborations with other writers possibly contri buted to the loose and episodic structure of his plays . For example , the comic scenes in The Changeling , supposedly the work of Rowley , are interspersed with Middleton 's tragic scenes . Many readings have been at pains to establish the harmony between the two. But the two plots also serve to puncture and comment upon each other . In that sense, they do not merely blend ' into one another , but create a collage which serves to demystify certain issues . Both the main plot and the sub -plot reinforce the different ways in which people change . In both the heroine is tempted to be unfaithful :
whereas Beatrice actually succumbs and changes , Isabella remains faith ful. But this does not serve to condemn Beatrice ; rather the almost surrealistic treatment of madness in the sub - plot serves to alienate us in the Brechtian sense from the ‘madness ' of Beatrice 's story . Bradbrook notes that the masque ofmadmen reinforces the idea of love as madness , as something that confounds discretion and darkens reason . On the contrary , themadhouse splices themain story to create amontage which prevents us from reacting hypnotically to a romantic and mystical con ception of love, which even within themain plot is not a fixed category ,
but expands , erodes and changes as people do : it is both socially created and affects events, but is never absolute . The point here is that montage expresses what I have previously con sidered against
as the unresolved tensions
of Beatrice ’ s ‘ giddy
the contingency of character
tivity which the plays emphasise
turning '. Measured
and social construction of subjec
, the 'spectacular
catastrophe(s )’ of Jaco
bean tragedy noted by critics (Gibbons, p . xviii ) do not constitute the ‘ revelation ' which is considered the proper end of drama, for they only
the
life
confirm what the almost cool depiction of violence in the earlier acts has relentlessly underlined . Hence to Muir 's complaint that Beatrice does not attain knowledge we may reply that this is precisely the point: neither the protagonists nor the plays arrive at that famous finalmoment of closure . Examining this in relation to The White Devil , Dollimore cites a passage from Brecht which is worth re - quoting at this point:
,
a
,
in
a
)
, .
p
(
.
to
,
of
,
to
is
is
.. .
.. .
It
be
a
.. .
in
The tragedy of Mother Courage and of her consisted fact that here terrible contradiction existed which destroyed human being contradiction long terrible struggles which could resolved but only by society itself and not the business the playwright endow Mother Courage with final insight his concern make the spectator see Radical Tragedy 246
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
I have
123
the rape scene in Women Beware Women where Bianca internalises the violence committed upon her and , at the same time, is alienated from the beliefs by which guilt is measured . The rape is inserted into a long scene , framed by the chess game and broken up by clusters of smaller scenes of courtly life . The chess game has been example used elsewhere in the drama as a political metaphor , as especially important Middleton own Game Chess what the employs case Women Beware Women that de sensationalise courtly the rape Violence the female body has become sort game which those outside the royal circle are pawns What lifts the earlier commented
in
in
a
of
-
to
it
he
is
;
.
in
.
on
is
of
's
A
at
for
on
power
as on
scene from being just cynical comment unexpectedness Bianca reaction even
to
,
of
,
,
.
,
,
,
of
of
or
's
to
.
of
-
,
in
,
as
lar
as
of
-
in
,
in
‘
–
's
.
-
is
law
in -
be
;
– is
)
,
- .
is
to
's .
of
-
in a
of
.
As
's
V .4
(
'
is
:
's
of
in
a
,
of
a
the violence and she adapts her status victim she retains sense her own agency Bianca one the three women involved the rape scene Livia machinations and the Mother helplessness place women series different relationships power patriarchal with the three interact with each other we glimpse the relativity and contigency each relationship the Mother seeks confine her daughter but herself ensnared the chess game Livia will shortly out manoeuvred Again none the three attain any final insights Bianca dying belief Like our own sex we have no enemy pitifully inadequate explaining her fate 215 episodic The non linear non climactic structure and montage usually disclose the construction identity and social relations For exam ple downstage position serves we saw Othello Iago hoist popu misogyny onto the stage itself where they notions racism become particular and contested perspectives instead confirmed
,
at
so
.
,
', .
-
is
.
a
of a
'
as
,
a
of
,
.
's
In
truths Webster The White Devil characters repeatedly overhear watch and secretly observe each other that most points we watch the through eyes just action series not our own Such successive fram ings have been often regarded stock devices stereotypical versions play within play But their effect far from stereotypical Consider
,
’
'
is
.
,
what name for you )
?
Embraces her
.
close
My
Sinking
-8
202
)
. (I . ii . :
ruin
I
!
oh
,
’n
my heart upon me fears are fall son the pander now find our house )
My
.
aside
to
Most happy union (
. . .
merciful
See now they
Zanche
Flamineo
so
That are
Cornelia
creature
call the cruel
(
. We
fair
Excellent
Brachiano
:
by
's
,
.
,
is
by
's
,
for example Vittoria first private interchange with Brachiano which watched Zanche Flamineo and Cornelia Whereas Romeo and Juliet balcony scene fills the entire arena this affair interrupted and interpreted for the audience different comments
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
124
's
,
his
noto
's
-5 ). of
is
is
,
act
it
it .
of
's
in
's
.
,
,
pp
a
as
be
'
is
he
,
to
(
,
his is
iii ).
Zanche invests the liaison with her own desire for romance , which com Flamineo is ridiculed by others because she is black (see V . hardly concerned with the lovers happiness and ment ironic for poverty consequence yet seen own viciousness can Tragedy C ornelia marginalisation 322 see Dollimore Radical and remark serves swerve the gaze away from Vittoria transgression Montage here insists that the relationship her brother part something spontaneity privatised ideal and instant attraction
Lawyer
My
of
;
is
,
of
's
for in
.
public
.
very
.
'
;
tis
ass
are 19 ) a
-
1 .
(
III .
.
lord Duke and she have been very private dull threatned they have been 17
You
Flamineo
the play
:
theme
.
the main
of
us
'
'
of
.
,
planned and manipulated and always public The watching con privacy and individual agency the resul stantly punctures the illusion public trial and punishment tant broken focus ties with Vittoria prepares interplay private and public which and thus the
on
by
Spatial politics
,
's
of
‘
its
on
of
;
,
;
in
,
of
,
its
on
of
:
of
,
a
is
of
of
,
.
to
to
is
us
of
montage more closely focusing examine the effects supposed tragic harmony that achieve the kind seen elude The Changeling Three centuries critical opinion from Samuel overcoming Johnson onwards has been preoccupied with the heterogeneous nature Shakespeare both the form and the content disjointed struc Antony and Cleopatra the focus has variously been tragic and comic flux ture mingling character divisions between private and public male and female high and low life what Danby Let
text that
, in
its
of
.
to
,
a
to
.
:
a
of
as
as
(
'
of
,
of
. ‘
,
of
of
of
its
,
a
–
in
,
);
p
.
, .p . or . 26 . )
of
a
J.
of E.
to
,
of
to
(
2
, '
'
An
of
–
,
.
'
has called the dialectic the text However correlation these various binaries the thematic oppositions the broken structure treatment fluid gender and racial identity has yet be attempted epic effect has been noted but the classical sense the word see Mark Rose we might more usefully employ the term analyse these various schisms The continual hurry Brechtian sense the action the variety incidents and the quick succession one personage another the frequent changes scene Johnson contradicting the classical quoted emerge Brown then teleological progression towards catharsis elevation character achieving posit radical inter Brechtian alienation from character imperial rogation the and sexual drama The geographical turbulence the first three acts involves re femininity and definition female space patriarchal Rome contests
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
125
of a
in
of
.
of ,
an
ar
of
of
at
as
to
.
non -E
,
of
,
e
-
is
.
Cleopatra for her geographical and sexual territory Into the imperial domination Dominant notions contest woven the theme about female identity gender relations and imperial power are unsettled through the identity disorderly non uropean woman These ideas appear Europescene are abandoned be reinstated the quick shifts favour scene apparent resolution more orthodox climax the end the play Egyptian
the
of . :
as
,
of as
of
a
in
is
,
of
.
in
the dilemma Whereas the first three acts the play there are twenty changes three scene and shifts location within each well play proceeds there change the quality and quantity movement all
.
,
to
,
to
,
IV
's
V
in
of
alone there are fifteen changes locale but within Egypt contains only two scenes and both are confined the area Cleopatra monument Alongside this different characters strive rise Act
Act
.
of
of
of
its
an
;
but
eroded
the play
.
critics are not subscribed
by
noted
to
by
a
,
of is
’
'
being How above their earlier turbulence and assert inner unity precarious the manner ever this harmony achievement conveys oppositions the very opposite resolution and the various sets
to
,
'
as
–
)
.
'
an
,
.
, ,
in
, .
-4 us .)
is
to
of
he
, .
,
to
is
to
it
so
to
in a
it
in
.
'
;
,
of
'
it
to
'
(I
,
:'
is
,
In
.
I, , to
of
to
. .iii
is
of of
, /
in is a
,
,
,
relatively abstract emotions ideology and sexuality Theatrical space not just inert arena but interacts with the texts treatment social and psychological space Not only does the locale constantly shift but each setting we are Egypt Rome reminded another evoked and vice versa While leaving for Rome Antony tells Cleopatra thou residing here goes yet with me And hence fleeting here remain with thee 103 This common enough lovers platitude but serves remind that addition the purely geographical shifts terrain there are conceptual settings the lovers private world constantly also those contrasted the political space Antony identifies the former with Egypt and preferring privatise love Rome trying locate relationship Cleopatra his with domestic arena But also attempts expand this space that excludes the other threatening world –
something
,
.
of
on
of
'(
, .p
–
.
of
as
,
,
of
imperial expansion political power and sexual domina tion are dramatically compressed into spatial and geographical shifts panning tracking and metaphors The almost cinematic movements Danby and playing with the camera 197 are designed reveal the complexity the terrain which men and women move well power their inner spaces They penetrate into different aspects The issues
: they seek ever
17 )
16
earth
.( I. 1 .
new
, as
also trying
heaven
do
lovers
are
what Donne
’d .
belov
must thou needs find out new
to
be
bourn how
far to
set
Then
's
This
is
.
Antony
a
. I'
Cleopatra
ll
,
masculine politics and crowds out other concerns
more
126
,
RENAISSANCE DRAMA
for
,
GENDER RACE
are
in
44 )
or
political
emotional con
..
: /.
of
.
he
shall call
;
, of
Egypt made her
-
Lydia
)
. , ( III .vi .8 ,
Absolute queen
will
gifts
11
Cyprus
Syria
the
;
).
45 -7
(I
'
.v .
/
Unto her gave the establishment
Of Lower
all
too
: '
a
be
is a
it
,
as
,
as
courts Cleopatra with territorial and political Her opulent throne with kingdoms East her mistress Caesar complains precisely this
'
,
at
if
. ( , II . .ii . 39 , -
in
on
is
always invested with
piece
He
's as
;
as
:
to
its
Egypt Caesar
place from which subversion Caesar indicates Egypt merely practised and such can never lovers retreat
;
be
);
its
).
a
to
't
to
be
.
Objective space notations can
imperial Rome
you What was No more than my residing here Rome Might Egypt Yet you there you my state your being Egypt Did practice Might be my question
Caesar
Antony
challenge
,
.
? in
My being
as
it )
by
of
a
of
is a
is
( (
European nature only intensifies Antony
73 ).
.p :'
'
by
'(
an
l';
no
(
is
,
all
their relationship and for each other She everywhere States and Princes their room becomes patriarchy Cleopatra defining Roman demonises her world longer serious general entering private Antony female Egypt robs Antony and his soldiers their manhood and barbaric Antony gypsies now slave But both Antony and Caesar private space and that aware that Egypt not merely female non all
expansive metaphors
',
is
,
(
is
'
by
far
,
,
of
as
Passionate the relationship between Antony and Cleopatra the transcending the power relations which language desire from wholly informed structure this society them Dollimore Radical as
Egypt
,
make this marriage for my peace
He
lies
41 )
. foras ( II . . his iii
my pleasure
39 -
I
l' th '
East
:
‘
'
illicit relationship
and
;
I
will
And though
,
,
sexually passionate to
through
a
by
;
in
of
.
These relations are both sexual and racial is
).
, p .
203
In
the begin control what he regards the opposition between politics and pleasure therefore he assumes that he can simul taneously possess the Roman matron Octavia through the legal bonding permitted imperial patriarchy and the oriental seductress Cleopatra Tragedy
ning Antony thinks he
a
.
:
a
As
In
.
,
of
in
no
he is
's
's,
to
bid
alternately views Egypt retreat from Roman politics and place power consolidate his short he oscillates between Cleopatra territory and Caesar both literally and otherwise the longer play proceeds command such divide his position
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
127
23
7
'
he
me
of ).
.III ', I . he am 90 , - his / 3) . ,
.
x 3 -4
, ,
III .
in both Rome and Egypt becomes unstable and manifests itself as a dislocation of personality : ' I / Have lost my way for ever ', 'I have fled myself , 'I have lost command ' ( Authority melts from
,
, ), on
/
?
no
,
'
:
'
I , am
but like Faustus the Duchess Malfi and Parolles Antony yet lost essential self Have you ears Antony complains that Caesar keeps harping Even
cries
invokes
;
-3
,
'
' s '
'
to
of
:
at
‘
's
.
,
in
,
I
' , . (
III
‘
as
'
as a
'
It
is
is
of
(
xiii emphasis added what Not what he knew was xiii 142 he aware the change himself Without power without space without Rome and without Cleopatra Antony disintegrates important that Cleopatra transformation into the whore and witch occurs precisely this point the language what Antony per betrayal reduces Cleopatra ceives infinite variety both patri
of
of
of a
's
as
to
,
is
'
'
'
is
,
of
a
is
,
do
so
to
,
in
,
in
.
-
a
as
fear
by
,
woman
of
a
,
threatened by the
her
,
as
of
.
of
of
:
Egypt her space constructed the ruler expansionist designs the Roman empire and contradictions heterosexual love Her insecurity
as is
,
to
is
,
ously
of
it
's
's
. If
a
is
on
.
's
,
's
,
his
of
his
.
's
,
of
's
a
of
all
of
at on
-
of
.
for
for
or
,
.
.
,
,
:
' d '
As
.
of
an
be is
,
in
,
.
is
in
it
I ' s
,
as
-
' '
as
,
at
of as
”
“
at
).
of
'(
.p
(
,
a
”
"
of
.
archal and racist stereotypes Helen Carr has pointed out that although the substitution witch for whore the primary image the signifies greater degree deviant woman horror the possibility consciously female sexuality the same time represses the idea sexual woman the witch fantasies are alien and evil intruders her aspect mind 51 Cleopatra have argued both her sexuality her blackness and such can only erased later when she herself adopts token Roman ness Whereas falling from Othello favour morally begrim Desdemona became and black and false her true self Cleopatra the foul Egyptian only realises her true position Antony perceives that he only nominally the complete outsider actually between Cleopatra and Caesar the site the conflict which power between him and Cleopatra escalates The the latent struggle metaphors this three way struggle become those the land and the sea Whether the fight should take place the Roman element the Cleopatra medium the water military land once matter Antony emotional and political affiliations strategy and measure increasing The erosion the absolute space love stems from perception own marginality and Cleopatra refusal share her space With worlds being lost Antony vacillations cease and the structural shifts Such movement also dependent the play treatment Cleopatra political being threatens patriarchy Cleopatra also catalyses the contradictions within her which are inherent the posi sexually active non European tion she occupies female ruler Although she unique among the independent women Renaissance drama for she appears command her own spaces these are precari the
invasion
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
128
- not just as a ruler , but also as a woman who is threatened even (or especially ) by her lover - is evident in her physical stasis , her reluctance
'
.
to
:
.
a
As '
as a
.
vis
it
is
,
.
In
a
,
or vis -à -
of
to move from her territory . However slippery , inconstant and variable Cleopatra may be , however she may threaten the boundaries between male and female , political and private worlds , she remains geographic ally stationary . She resents the intrusions of Roman messengers who remind her not only of Antony 's wives , first Fulvia and then Octavia , but also of the imperial threat . Cleopatra fluctuates between establishing her emotional and her polit ical spaces : a vacillation without end for she cannot simultaneously occupy both . She finds it much harder to locate her own territory in relation to Antony than Caesar She can either function within honorary man and chaste the private life man enter politics any woman like Elizabeth case double bind foul Egyptian always Antony society she will stand outside Roman can never fully trust her and will marry safe and obedient Roman women like Octavia ensure his stability within that society Her gender renders her polit
,
her political status problematises her femininity doubly both power and sexuality perfectly comprehensible the extent that she acts ruler she concealing praises Caesar he even her for her treasure from him nay blush not Cleopatra approve Your wisdom the deed 148 But whereas he will not haggle over things that merchants
,
ically unacceptable
.
,
;
is
'
in
/
of
of
her
;
of
'
changes from montage and mingling appears that Cleopatra classical tragedy
the to
:‘
as
). to
what noble
.. .
's
,
brave
/
's
no an
to
;
is
73 -5
. xv .
IV
(
'
;
'
do
what
after the
).
-
86 7
xv .
'(
as
goddess Egypt tries high Roman fashion
IV to .
‘
is
/
/
By
all
of
is
,
the
It
,
en a
'
e
to s
'
.
a
comic and tragic that tamed the wanton stripped gypsy becomes Antony queen wife essential femininity that attaches women irrespective class more but woman and commanded such poor passion the maid that milks And does the meanest chares The variable woman now marble constant the witch gives way the penitent of
style now
respect
the play
the various tensions
resolve
to
The last act appears
grant her autonomy even
in
'
refuses
to
he
),
. ii .
'
. (V
sold death
83
.
(
9 )
I
,
;
:
,
. ii .
V
‘
,
a
to To
as
,
and her racial otherness troubles
of
a
in
's
.
of
in
to
.
fill
's
, or
,
no
its
of to
to
to
is
,
,
.
of
apparent impli Several aspects this resolution serve contradict capitulate cations Firstly Cleopatra able Roman matrimony only after Antony has died and when one aspect her conflict has dissolved sharing power with Antony rather than being resolved The prospect longer exists and she begins approximate the lovers Donne poems Antony own earlier expressions absolute emotion After way that Antony alive could his death Antony can her world
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER never be allowed
to do
129
:
Crested the world
arm
'd
83 ) his
. (V . 41 .
79 -
His face was as the heav'ns, and therein stuck A sun and moon , which kept their course and lighted The little O , the earth . . . His legs bestrid the ocean ; rear
an
's
a
without the for
.
)
V
. ii .
285
'(
'
now comfortably called husband that actual matrimony implies
.
a
of
,
its
of
be
can
freedom
to
risk
,
of .
als
Antony
,
of
in
to
.
as
The poetry has been seen sublime Cleopatra words display effort cloak personal and political loss the language transcendental eternal romance Given the conditions utterance the poetry reve politics the politics sublimation rather than transcendence
,
's
up
:
a
.
,
of
Cleopatra also lets her own fierce identification with Egypt slip the first time Literally course she still does not accept Caesar Rome which remains threat
can
)
. ii .
! (V
gentle grave unto me
55 8
a
?
Be
in
to
,
Shall they hoist me And show me the shouting varletry Egypt Of censuring Rome Rather ditch
is
it
);
.ii .2
(V
'
to
.
is
.
of
a
to
of
‘
it
,
s
.
be '
's
,
'.
, if
'
's
as
adopt the space and But Rome was also Antony his wife she Roman fashion Secondly these moves reflect Cleopatra contradictions they are also strategic and constitute the unruly woman last performances Hav ing lost power paltry now becomes Caesar now things other than power Her suicide clouds her political time speak autonomy Her own body defeat with mystic glamour and show of
.
of
.
be
to
'
'
of
,
'
).
. of ii .
(V
'
this vile
world
?
o
I
'
stay
).
311
12
- ).
Without power What should
–
'
It is
. . As ii. 11 .
( ( V V
279
/ ‘ ' th In '
sir
as
as
,
to
.
to
.
.
of
a
,
at
'
in
'
the last space wrested from Roman control The asp will bring her liberty the absence real territory The maternal image the snake her breast tamesher own earlier identification with the serpent replacing the deadly Eastern inscrutibility with comprehensible ver patriarchal sion the Madonna Of course both are constructions women The first demonises the alien woman while the second seeks domesticise her power Till the end Cleopatra attempts maintain some vestiges even she acknowledges Caesar the sole world 119 only when every effort has failed that she has immortal longings
so
,
Cleopatra achieves these false resolutions the play also abandons adequately expressed the discontinuity the cinematic montage that
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
130
of character , the
dialectic between inner and outer , political and per and female spaces . The shifts of scene which conveyed both the vacillations of Antony and the unruly theatricality of Cleopatra give way to the elevation of the 'Roman ' suicides ; to the conventional climax ' and the stock devices of formal drama, as patriarchal roles and divisions are apparently reinstated . If Cleopatra 's fluid identity and play -acting demanded one kind of theatrical form , her new role as Antony ' smarble constant wife employs themore classical technique . The Roman theatre takes over from the volatile Egyptian one . The closed space of the monu sonal, male
all
ment , the measured actions and tones , the slow , drawn -out scenes and the elevated language tone down the fiery and unpredictable per of
,
's
imperialism
,
.
of
masculinity and the earlier Cleopatra The narrative regains control but Cleopatra final performance which certainly exposes her own vulnerability not only cheats Caesar but formances
Another purpose
of
.
denies any final and authoritative textual closure
playing
of
an
be
;
of
,
the
of
on
of
.
,
In
on
in
of
an
Robert Weimann has suggested several reasons for perceiving approximation increasing the Brechtian epic Renaissance drama focus discontinuous identity and female changeability may disorderly woman another the play just discussed elements are identified with those the popular stage and therefore the foregrounding such women also interrogates the controls and
authoritarian
an
's
,
the
.
in
If
limitations theatrical space there are two styles and forms the popular drama own position within play they also explore
of
.
state
'
,
's
.
Montrose
. in
,
of
a
on
the
see
;
of
;
of
or
:
in
to
as
a
suggests
A
important essay playing The purpose relationship between authority and Renaissance theatre which analogous we can trace that between authority and women The public theatre and the professional player resisted the drive towards fixity duplicity several ways their profession was based kind temporary donning identity players were upwardly mobile real life their costumes were often the discarded clothes the nobility and Louis
in
-2 );
, .p
,
, –
of
, p . by
63 ).
to
'
,
by
are
(
'
–
I;
of
of
,
of
of
,
a
(
plays defied the dress code Jardine Still Harping 141 and themselves reveal pervasive concern with fictional situations which change within the self the family human characters are confronted body politic the the cosmos Montrose The protean nature placed and concerns the theatre Montrose against the background the desperate attempt the authorities contain ideologically economically and spatially the enormous and varied mobility society various sections have suggested that this scenario
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
of
for
131
the ideological and political backdrop the foregrounding d uplicity m obility changeability female the drama The drive limit and contain theatre space was concurrent with and similar the effort limit and contain women both cases transience mobility alteration subverting disguise and changeability seen dominant need for stability Contemporary tracts explicitly connect actors with other unruly social groups conversely theatre becomes acknowledged disruptive force Jean Howard has shown women prominently figure the antitheatrical narrative social disruption they constructed these texts the duplicitous inherently
.
in
,
,
In
,
of
,
in
as
in
are
'
)
(
.. .
As
.
a
as
;
,
.
a
as
are
.
to
,
,
to
to
,
is also
)
12
. 1 ,
pp
.
', .)
.p
',
('
he
.
,
of
'
of
'
of
in
:
of
in
,
and Peter Stallybrass
of
'( '
)
168
(p
Renaissance antitheatricality 168 Both Howard sexuality quote The history Philip Stubbes from whose writings this comparison becomes very clear his suspicion the painted sepulchres the stage employs the language common the theme the white devil Conversely theatrical sex
,
,
is
,
.
on
In
reward but disdaine and disgrace
of
to
and theatre
).
-
Haec stray from their allotted spaces
'(
are
Both women
Vir
,
if
;
no
,
: '. if ..
if
is
be
.
,
-
of as
of
-
as
of
.
on
as
to
')
on
do
so
him
(“
,
proteanism accuses women Proteus that Monster could never chaunge many fourmes and shapes self into these women and goes level the same charge against actors Attacks changeable fashion and clothing draw together the threats female cross dressing well theatrical disguise interestingly transgressive being masculine whereas popular theatre women are accused being effeminate accused both cases the fears are that social and sexual boundaries will erased The woman who puts male clothing y ou you warned will walke without difference shall live without you will contene order you must endure the shame reverence you will have no rulers but your wills you must have disorder and seen
of
of
?
ye
its
II .
'I
am
II
of
,
for
,
's
: .
in
various ways The physical confines the home and the playhouse example challenged are Elizabeth fears the subversive potential Shakespeare Richard notmerely because timing before the Essex rebellion not merely because Richard Know not that but open streets she complains was performed and houses Greenblatt The Power Forms see also Dollimore Shakespeare cultural materialism Social and political boundaries they dress are defied by the drama and women the garments attempting usurp authority their superiors and women seen players inciting political the are accused trouble rebellion Ideolo
'
in
,
;
3 -4
.
pp
of
of
.
or
,
to in
as as
of
if
are
.8p ).
',
,
,
,
'(
,
,
'
of
,
also because the play
'
'
.
, of
involves not just the general disguise that
all
.
of
,
gically women threaten the demarcation the private sphere and popular theatre resists the confinement dramatic performance We may pursue the connections further The theatre the period
drama calls for but speci
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
132
her name sour name play controversy finally culminates
the ironies
of
on
and
by
fically an interchange of gender roles , both literally by boy -actors and thematically by the further exchange of male - female roles . At the same time, female cross - dressing functions as a version of theatricality that extends disguise from the playhouse to social space . Again , parallel to the theatre 's growing concern with women , the public controversy on gender - roles becomes increasingly theatricalised : the authors of the pamphlets speak from within adopted roles such as that of themasculine woman , Haec -Vir, or the effeminate man , Hic Mulier. The pamphlets are also a self - consciously dramatic public dialogue between the authors whose pseudonyms confer a particular identity upon them : thus Esther replies in 1617 to Joseph Swetnam 's Arraignment of Lewde , Idle , Sowernam letting Unconstant Froward Women published two years earlier also
).
-
(
on
is
.
is
(
),
in
a
in
)
a
to
a
of
The
)
.. .(
is
of
an
all -
-
by
-
(
his sweet name The straightforward play Swetnam the brought Woman Hater Arraigned Women 1620 which Swetnam probably trial before female jury Shepherd points out that this writing publicly performed play the nearest women the time got which also the first case female mob sympathetically treated
,
)
.
55
to
to
'
'
as a
of
a
'
a
's
,
,
.'
by
.
its
).
40 -4
.pp ,
I,
(
,
,
at
of
of
a
of
, .p
,
all
,
'
as
).
8
to
as
'(
,
,
do on
.
-
‘
, .p
's
an
as
be
's
a
'(
on
the Jacobean stage Women Sharp Revenge During James reign there was drive towards formalising theatre attempt precisely which can seen contain and define the audience theatre relationship James himself had likened the king stage whose smallest actions and gestures one set the people gazingly behold Dollimore Shakespeare cultural materialism part The effort make theatre well architecture James statecraft implicitly acknowledged not only the power theatre but power Wotton testified that the Banqueting House the theatricality Inigo Jones James chief architect place Whitehall planned royal masques performed where were and where ambassadors and place where Art became piece guests were received was State Goldberg James Jones created elaborate masques and imported European Pal perspective scenes ladianism and the Italian proscenium stage with to
,
of
; . "
of
of
as as a an
is
,
of
be
)
in
.
to
's
in
its
(
:
is
.
of
to
,
on
The latter relied heavily separate arches which were designed power audience from performer and reinforce the impression and grandeur through formality and distance No spatial structure free social implications including those gender architecture and theatre design not ideologically inert The arch was increasingly being used emblem state power Inigo potential symbol Jones was exploiting order and grandeur public construction There were arches for both the theatre and James entrances into London which were carefully designed
33
).
, .p
described
the
'
as
Ben
'(
),
in
Harri
Stephen
as
as
the
of
:
,
of
.
of
in
of
a
as
)
33 -4
.( I.1 .
is
!
’d
,
in
.
on
it
.
it
as
as
in
Tiber melt and the wide arch empire fall Here my space
as
of in
,
of
this context the opposition Caesar and Cleopatra partially deriving from the contrasting styles seen
be
In can
usa
a
If
,
).
8
.
of
to to
of
is
it
Let Rome rang
Of the
for
'
75 -
, hoc .pp
ad
to
s
(
I'
can
state
of of
typical and magnificience were typical such usage They such stages that were constructed contrasted the Elizabeth izabeth separation earlier entrances Bergeron the arch effected between the royal actor and his audiences also served the purpose distancing the events the stage Formal theatre enacted the picture frame stage sought exalt the power state much the public theatre was seen threaten Later the arch was repeatedly imperial might Hence used colonial architecture emblematic significant that Antony repudiates Rome Cleopatra favour symbol he uses the arch the Roman empire
be
expression
Triumph
-4
Archs
: ),which
133
Goldberg high Roman style 13 24 1603 which Ben Jonson
the
(
's
son
of of
'
triumph
( s )
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
the play
James and
of
,
by
up
's
of
to
yet
.
is
byof
).
,
;
57
'(
, .p
his
,
If
'
,
as
.
of
-
'
.
of
,
of
.
of
The arch here becomes one the various spatial signifiers the conflict between the Egyptian theatre and the Roman one more way establishing the dimensions Cleopatra theatricality suggesting that Egypt and Rome are invested with implications deriving from theatrical practice James anti woman bias was also picked the new architecture and theatre Inigo Jones conceived own architecture and theatre design solid proportional masculine and unaffected Thorne emphasis added masculinity connotes order and power then the variety and disorder again the popular theatre connected the unruly femininity disturbance offered Elizabeth
no
The volatile stage preface The White Devil confesses that this true dramatic open and black stage which lacked that was written full and understanding auditory and whose audience resembling ignorant asses observing the most sententious tragedy the is
of
:' .. '
.
,
).
it
,
art
to is
to
no
's
;
of
.
(p
'
to
to
to
,
of
,
in
,
old
,
‘
for
).
.
a
or
of
it
(p
wasted 491 Jonson note the readers writing similar excuse true poem Nor needful almost possible these our times and such auditors observe the state and splendour dramatic poems with preserva any popular delight While formally 247 emphasis added tion deferring the superior status classical and deprecating the very justify their own departures from both these audiences they invoke
'
critical laws would Sejanus His Fall makes
be
. ..
all
,
on
' '
an
', '
' 'a
it
';
poem
for
's
to
Webster
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
134
the liberating influence of the same
notes indicate
terrified
,
Elizabeth
suggested
and
of
open stage that had interactive audience . Montrose has
an
that
In
a
to
is
of
a
in
)
63
.p
',
of
.
('
of
is to
; it
to
go
to
to
,
.
an
)
,
its
of
(
its
,
of
off
the
the actual process of theatrical performance ,marked from normal flow performers imaginative social activity offers audience and course experience which temporarily removes them from their normal places this play voluntarily undergo sense the playhouse take part marginal experience cross the interstices the Elizabethan social and cognitive order playing The purpose
on
to
an
's
,
as
,
,
.
of
a
,
it
If
any theatre depends the subversive potential some degree conversely such removal also requires intersection with social reality The dynamics audience participation Brecht dramaturgy
,
is
is
,
'
isolated
of
:
stage where the spectator
is
'.
,
'
'
is
.
-
in
,
all as
,
.
of
by
be
of a
of
.
in
, or
of
's
of
a
of
.
in
a
of ,
demonstrated generates certain power itself For example the involvement the entire population town may elicited tradi tional theatre performances India Anuradha Kapur describes the staged annual Ramlila dramatisation the epic Ramayana the Ramnagar Here the city becomes the stage and town the audience who await the return the hero god Rama from exile become actors Rama return endowed with enormous emotional powerby the mass participation which renders the stage volatile and there then the hope great happenings The opposite suggests Kapur the effect
a
of
;
.
(p
.
57
,
of
is
to
on
its
to
.. .
.
is
features
of
jumping scarcely any possibility the stage there naturalistic theatre under the tyranny certain architectural space anything other than versimilar unable make
spectator Short transgression
,
-
,
:
.. .
,
the auditorium and especially the picture frame stage creates series calculable relationships the enclosed space the static set and the imprisoned
)
emphasis added
The power
by
- .
its
a
is
of
its
into
to
its
of
ability employ strate theatre therefore derives from privileged removal from and extension gically both social space Such play responsible duality also for the dialectic own position wrights and players may transgress the social order but are also constituted
.
-w
.
11 )
-
9
.
',
all
,
of
a
of
(
',
it
;
.
it
question and confirm normative Thus drama may simultaneously may both challenge and reinforce the prescriptions for order behaviour see Montrose Renaissance literary studies pp The three ay inter sections theatrical social and female spaces during the Renaissance allow simultaneous examination three
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
135
'
“ Travelling thoughts
for
to him
.
of .
in
of
,
a
to
In
as
.
as
far
.p
).
'(
of
's
'
to
' ,
As
. .
on
of
a
is
;
it
by to
,
an
in
-
a
,
I
in a
to
,
of
,
far
'
,
is
to
,
to
up
the
of the Western canon , especially as it operates in colonial situation was discussed the first chapter Reverence the bard has led devaluation other dramatists the period Marlowe leads Shakespeare and Webster and Jonson down from but almost no one else admitted the charmed circle relation the Romantic poets Marilyn Butler proposes that poets we have installed canonical look more interesting individually and more understandable groups when we restore some their lost peers 1349 will therefore turn somewhat later and almost totally neglected suggest that some writer Richard Brome order the issues just discussed are brilliantly focused his play The Antipodes could well be key text alternative curriculum But Brome play useful beyond providing gloss Shakespeare Walter Cohen points out Shakespeare one serious limitation current political approaches The rigidity
.
of
's
is
of
a
,
be
-
can
-
,
of
.
a
to
of
;
a
by
in
, of
20 )
.
(p
to
-r
re
do
,
in
to
,
to
is
on
Pragmatic their almost exclusive emphasis that dramatist eading what we are concerns even those which have with my made read the classroom inevitably lead such bias one purposes interlacing key issues raised Shakespeare plays with prioritisation Of those others has been precisely disallow such perspective post course from the colonial education the validity replacing one master text with another questioned problem which requires full discussion but outside the scope my argument
,
-
to
-
The
).
6
(
at
this point see chapter More self consciously than the texts previously considered here Antipodes looks forward Brechtian theatre politics not only preferring
of
as
,
a
’(
of .
on
in
.
as
of
of
by
it
,
,
.
by
of
).
p
',
's
,
‘
by
its
of
in
in a
‘
is
,
to
.
It
as
of
,
,
to
fragmentation and multiplicity the definitive statement employing various alienation devices combining the didactic and the comic but identity and the function also explicitly positing the formation truly theatre related issues advance time contribution criticism and aesthetics albeit somewhat disguised form Davis Richard Brome neglected contribution 527 Even more signific antly the play considers the interrelation social and psychic space locating the production male and female fantasies the different spaces occupied men and women Although focusing neither the disorderly woman nor any actual black person brings together the showing geographical expansion and the issues race and gender profoundly gendered attendant production travel mythology
)
,
, ' s
at
(
to
to
,
of
Criticism the play least prior Martin Butler Theatre and Crisis has been like the label generally attached Brome conservative and
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
136
of the method as well as the subject of the play . The plot is fairly simple , and revolves around the cure of Peregrine Joyless , a young man so obsessed with travelling thoughts (1.31.27),with the wonderful lands , strange peoples , and other strangest doings ' (I . ü . 10) portrayed in travel books, that he has lost contact has largely ignored the radical thrust
'
'
all
'
,
of
'(
an
‘
..; .
is
,
in
.
by of a
in
of ) : . a
or
'
's
,
a
is
,
with his actual existence and most crucially with his wife Martha who marriage virgin after three years still Peregrine name also used Volpone Jonson derived from the Latin peregrinus meaning foreign and means also outlandish alien pilgrim foreign country Chambers 20th Century resident traveller
I of
,
in
as
,
.
.
The
of .
's
1555 there appeared Richard Eden accounts the first two voyages Africa which combine actual description with Travayle and
of in
History
of
to The
1577 Richard Willes Navigations contributed
's
.
fantastic stories
Hakluyt
,
to
English
In
In
of
;
of
,
of
, of
,
to
.
,
in
Dictionary His sickness this play dramatises the hold the enormous during range travel literature the early years colonial expansion upon the public imagination Such literature have remarked relation Othello combined myth and facts entertainment and enquiry and was filtered through cultural political and religious prejudice The ideological effects strange lands and peoples were not the images necessarily expansive but often strengthened existing chauvinism The implications Antipodes racist this have been considered demonstrates the psychological effects such literature
1589
,
/,
,
, ,
his
17 )
-
16
pp
.
,
in see
in
to a
his
(
an
. If
of
of
'
, ,
/
‘
,
of
's
,
, , /
.
-
's
the growing fund travel account fantasies Peregrine visions monsters Pigmies and giants apes and elephants Griffins and crocodiles men upon women And upon women men the strangest doings are however more specifically drawn from The Travels John Mandeville and especially from the notion antipodal land therein Brome reality especially For Peregrine fantasy results alienation from from Martha mind soars beyond the colonialhorizons hers with preoccupation with her bodily fertility draws and shrinks what Principal
.
of
of
on
is
of
on
of
.
I
;
–
is
'
,
to a
of
amounts classic case womb hysteria Both husband and wife are neurotic but the disorder their minds derived from typically defined gender roles his based themale colonial fantasy travel power and excitement hers domesticity and chil the female one dren Earlier have considered how the spatial and ideological ghetto isation women indicates their subordination and conditions their
's
,
,
,
-
's
,
In
.
all
co
.
is
at
no
's
of .
of
colonial expansionism Once again imperialism and sexism reinforce the prescribed spaces the female mind Also typically whereas fantasy dependent upon Peregrine operation his has Martha ironically Martha room for her Christian allegory name
,
the play we witness her inabilty even
to
137
it .
;
symbolises the active fantasise about
in
life
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
,
of
of
'
to
by
to
a
is
').
's
).
,
a
as
's
.
of
,
IV
of
that she trans integrated into his is
believe
she
is
so to
;
of
to
'
a
to
of
. At
embrace Martha because he has been led formed into Princess the Antipodes a
's
,
his 's
of
,
';
to
as a
'
of
.
are
.
of
it
to
of
in
to
to
(
,
in
of
,
by
us
'
(
on
to
'
,
of
is
on
refer usefully modern studies the spatial the sexes which have documented how boys play ob sessed with movement and exterior landscapes whereas girls tend concentrate still objects and interior spaces Erikson Inner and tendency biological differences space explain this outer There referring girls awareness alone the inner spaces their bodies seeing how gender differentials spatial perception are instead socially induced see Ardener Women and Space passim Brome play allows locate female hysteria relation the gradual expulsion woman from outer arenas until only her womb remains for her act her fantasies upon Even more importantly addresses the usually glamourised male sense hysteria Peregrine adventure form disorders the predecessors Gulliver alienation and Kurtz mad ness Significantly his relationship with wife emerges measure his cure real knowledge woman will indicate his readiness adjust Peregrine consents English society the end Avt to
One may here
behaviour
fantasy
'
' ,
,
is
in
'
).
52 3
(I
'
.v .
'
a
' '
(R
on
,
-p
a
of
an
of
).
is
. him J. ,
's
in
's
to
65
p
.
's
a
);
to
, , . p
(
called
apart from
123
of
psychiatric therapy dramatization Corax Ford The Lover Melancholy Doctor Hughball Peregrine father Joyless brings whom the first practicing psychiatrist appear the English stage Kaufmann Hughball lives with Letoy Phantastic Lord whose house amphitheater substance exercise and pleasure The two form sort director roducer partnership whereby theatre has been
The Antipodes
Shaw
in
a
the
is
to
–
',
of
’s ‘
in
is
to
his
.
of
psychotherapy They stage becomes the medium show which Peregrine fantasy made live out made believe that he people Antipodes where actually Mandeville world
,
,
a
or
turned upside down which was recurrent
a
, . p
(
things Shaw long tradition the world Utopian literature satiric
of
the expected order
generally drawing upon
become prove
of
'
to
-
reversal
of
a
'
,
also
act the antipodes had
in
).
Brome
is
rbial expression 127
107
time the phrase for
Brome
's
By
.( I. vi .
Extremely contrary
13 of )
,
;
in
,
,
:
to
,
In
outward feature language and religion Resemble those whom they are supposite They under Spain appear like Spaniards Under French Frenchmen under England English To the exterior show but their manners Their carriage and condition life
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
138
(see Morton ,
The English Utopia ). There are Shakespearean echoes too in finding the theme of one's ' true ' self after a temporary sojourn into the madness of the inverted world . The Antipodes in fact draws together vari ous common Saturnalian strands - madness , dislocation , eventual cure, flouting of hierarchy and social criticism . Reversal can be used for a variety of political ends and can serve either as a safety -valve to maintain the status quo or as a radical critique of society , as in More ' s Utopia . In Brome's text , as Martin Butler argues , inversion operates as a brilliant structural and analytical tool for a specifically political critique of Charles ' s government (pp . 215 , 220 ) and also for a more general indict
.
all
ment of hierarchical societies First Hughball describes the Antipodes
- of
its
'',
to s'
in
s
,
art '
).
,
27
-
',
. vi . .
in
or
as
, in
,
).
is
71
-
)
31 -2
repeated ques
;
's
beggar Diana
reality only serve
a
. .
IV v
(
of
a
see courtier who comments that such things are the opposite
,
169
. vi . /
(I
'
each sex
?
so
contrary
is
At another point we
:
/
proper
to
all
In
wehold
be
by
,
At
'
or
,
,
of
sexual inversion
Can men and women that
as
,
is
in
In
on
a
,
a
of
.
to
of
.
shocked
to
such
gentlemen
to
those where old men school merchants ask cuckold them But the second are more disturbing firstly existing social because they offer deeper and more political critique and gender relations and secondly because they reveal that large part what goes the Antipodes actually exists surreptitiously Lon don other words reversal here not pure fantastical inversion but part actual suppressed subversion for example when servants rule Beyond seas while their masters women hunt and deale abroad Peregrine husbands cuckold them home most –
beliefs
go
.
,
of
.
,
'
(I
, if
'
on
an
a
is
.
of
,
to
.
,
as
of of
of
's
up
art
is
,
in
to
As
).
is
,
us '
.
's
it
,
'
(
, /
.I , / , vi .
As
'
'
rule
as
by
principle and reversal The Magistrates the women over rule the parents here and masters men and Command there they obey the child and servant 119 The doctor tells Diana Joyless young wife that nature not art that enables Antipodian women they are rule over men Diana comment Then above nature under not only holds art responsible for male domination her own world but opens the play consideration another sort therapy correctively theatre and which can work The ability private fantasy art intervene both and social existence mould Joyless fears the possible effects identity repeatedly emphasised play The theatre upon Diana and adamant that she shall not see you can hope for any cure Doctor insists that she must 201 Art has effect nature ideas can shape reality Butler has pointed out there are two categories reversal the Antipodean world The first are simply amusing and confirm our social
which the people
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER it
while
'
Charles
is
lacking
in
Is
.
of ?
-
others depict what
not that So
far
to
217
)
(
Martin Butler
, .p
see
some illusions here point England
removed from the truth and churchmen are usurers the upside down quality
of
are a
tion whether they really are so variety beggars courtiers
139
that
.
society
.
.
or
' 's
of
L
.
J.
see
,
( to
is
,
far
the
-
a
in
as
quoted
.
J.
by
).
L
contradictions
524
, .p
An
incongruous congruity
'(
'
an
everywhere Davis
of
is
.
in
-
is
as
; / of a
to
of
).
, p .
'
of
,
,
lie
be
by
'
,
of
.
-
to
so
as
:
is
is
of
's
, -
-
-
or
-
it
of
There are several aspects Brome handling reversal which lifts above the common play within the play device One that unlike escapes from reality neither the Antipodes nor the usual reversals maligned Of course the didactic pur real world are simply idealised Letoy and Hughball cure their patients pose obvious just Brome the doctor playwright hopes cure his audience through what has been called comic catharsis Brome probably drew upon Burton Anatomy Melancholy which explained that perturbations the mind may strange news witty device artificial rectified some feigned invention and particularly recommended the utility mirth regard Davis 524 Brome refuses allow the spectator reader Utopian fantasy social criticism reality the Antipodean critique not dependent upon idealisation but made part more complex wry and pluralist approach such we encounter more self con scious and polemical way Brecht Swinburne was not from always and truth when he commented that the play reveals that life
existing criticism the reversals that has been ignored England themanner which the relation between and the Antipodes imperial power subjected and hence and others examination Peregrine construct The scholarly discourses pursued land monsters more but the Antipodes fact from the fantasy land European and Christian civilisation the grotesque that alien uncomfortably like England the theatrical enactment visualises Moreover both similarities and differences are determined by the participants actors the the imperial drama constructed and not actual world created by the imagination the white traveller Peregrine the Doctor anyone else who cares participate myth making apprehending the process Thus the play comes close whereby cultural racial and geographical differences are transposed
of . ,
it
far
in
is
as a
to
is
,
its
. :
as
a
is
it
:
,
of
in
to
of
,
.
to
,
, or
,
an
in
, or
,
its
it
to
is
all
of
of
‘
, ',
by
of
is
in
of
aspect
in
is
benefit
is
in
; :
in
is
,
the Antipodal world for Peregrine
's
staging
of .
of
.
in
of
,
into that curious blend fact and fiction fantasy and fears that one finds not just the travel literature the period but most Orientalist writings The free interplay the actors and spectators The Antipodes also important Actually there not one but three plays the first the the second
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE
140
DRAMA
- of ;
is
.
,
,
to
.
of
is
of
is
old
Letoy pretends to court Diana, the young wife of Peregrine 's intensely jealous father Joyless and by witnessing her refusal , the man cured finally there the masque the last scene celebrating the triumph harmony over discord None the plays presented naturalistically forget we are never allowed that they are staged that spectators and participants mingle and interchange positions Consider the first show
is a
is
,
of
,
At
of
, .
to
,
is
,
.
a
,
.
,
is
is
on
primarily put which cure Peregrine Besides being the principal spectator he also the most crucial actor for the effect the drama depends upon his participation Letoy the same time the presence Joyless Diana Martha and Barbara constant reminder that this play An alienation effect but achieved not only through the spec in
he
.
:
of
in
to
in
is
of
.
be
of
is
so
.
on
in
;
of
,
of
to
,
or
.
to
byAt
on .
to
is
of are
its
of
in
is to do , The
.
's
of
is
,
in
,
tators but also through the Doctor who both director and actor Peregrine mind Letoy the Antipodean theatre and also the stage similarly punctures the illusion by stepping and out the drama the actors are his men and he plays director them The audience are his guests and he plays host them the same time initiates the beginning second play while the first still flirt with Diana The two plays interwoven preventing any total absorption totalising effect either them The audience made aware the significance participation epic theatre they are the manner step invited and comment the action fragmen There no tight story either that the total effect one
lot
a
if .
to
,
is
of
a
. it
,
its
at
, .
,
of
a
in
is
to
to
or
is
.
to
a
on
.
,
is
,
is
's
,
,
,
to
is
–
its
,
,
is a
for for
,
,
as
its its
is
. . in
In
.
its
an
by
,
as
,
of
socially defined for them and the desires and fantasies entire mobility they are organised stasis other words
culture
or
as
is
are
to
of
,
on
a
of
.
its
of
's
,
,
is
: It
).
56
p
, .
's
'(
'
no of to
. in
-
an
to
Antipodes
to
could said return like Brecht own plays are simplest elements instead trying the theatre foster f inally claiming reality quite illusion Ridless for art fact less than Brecht himself ideological practices and theatre particularly have definite and material effect reality and are agents change One might argue that this not special Brome that the comedy notion criticism dates back ancient Greek drama But Brome goes further than that that art corrective practice only the dian diagnosis the participation accepts audience accepts the patient essen minority entertainment and again tial The Theatre then lifted fom tial anticipating Brecht derives power from audience involvement Finally the play takes dig own practice for the world has brought Peregrine back not much better than his illusory one retrogressive way Fantasy also has the power distort perception Peregrine case But most importantly neither kind imagination arbitrary but based what available denied human beings The Antipodes then suggests that the basis for male and female spatial fantasies expansive and contractive respectively the gender roles that tation
seen
THEATRE AND THE SPACE OF THE OTHER
141
its
examining the formation of subjectivity , including most through powerfully imposed ideologies elusive and private aspects and more self conscious alternative fantasies that deliberately engage
Brome
with and subvert
them
,
.
-
–
'
is
'
-
in
he is
;
);
( p .
is
', 'a
or
six
,
, as
'
). It
(p .
'
a
of
'
;
,
is
.
,
.T S .
TheMoral Vision Some thirty years earlier Eliothad found thatMiddleton has view neither sentimental nor cynical neither resigned nor disil lusioned nor romantic he has no message 162 Una Ellis Fermor detected him belittling pitiless abstemi those human figures which his contemporaries exalt ousness 152 had been generally concluded Eliot did that Middleton merely Ornstein
no point
of
1
Notes
'
( , .p
of a
'
172
of ,
,
,
in
to
do
.
on
'
I;
,
;
of
of
',
';
-
,
by
,
of
.
of
; ).
, .p
;
;
. all
,
;
,
R
J.
; '(
and
,
of
.
of
in
In
on
The
;
;
,
;
of
,
'
:
(
, .p 3 ).
and theatricality during the Renaissance which has been richly focused for example Greenblatt RenaissanceSelf Fashioning Goldberg James Montrose The purpose playing Tennenhouse Strategies Display State and Power spatial structures has The ideological loading with the contexts which they
in
3
found Jacobean drama Ornstein Knights comments any doubt Macbethwe are never our moral bearings Antonyand Cleopatra the other hand embodies different and apparently irreconciliable quoted Cleopatra evaluations the central experience Brown Antony Belsey Subject TragedyJardine Adelman Still Harping Holloway Mack Markels emphasise different aspects Mark Rose Rozett Simmons and Stella Smith the heterogeneity foregrounded by the play Architecture and stage design are only one aspect the interrelation between power
4
2 L . to C . be
to
tie in
's
to
a
', '
So
of
).
'
a
great recorder merely name which associates with seven great plays 162 whereas Shakespeare detachment was seen stem from positive morality neatly that others was made with the hectic portraits vice and depravity
.
,
for
a
it
-
(
of
as
as
so
that they could never build another such monument
,
,
in
:
his of
at
's
.
in
a
,
.
',
of
An
'
,
as
,
in
of
.
,
.
It
its
,
despotism the well the glamour pleasure carries Orientalist connotations shape like that east may be conjectured that the arch codes for power because of the dome required careful planning and meticulous execution Richard Brome described the title page the 1658version his comedy TheWeeding Ingenious Servant and Imitator the CoventGarden master that famously 1637 renowned poet Ben Jonson wrote mainly comedy TheAntipodeswas composed the Salisbury Court and was first acted Queen Henreitta for new company playhouse 1638 Martin Butler has argued that Caroline drama did not break with of
5
of
( it
,
( it
:
of
of
a
,
of
completion
of
thumbs cut off
on
it );
to
);
of
it
,
for
,
are created with associations that gather around them with their settings and usages symbol perfection under the Mughals the Taj Mahal example was The dome multiple associations confered upon love was built by Shah Jahan his wife might Mumtaz Mahal took twenty years much wealth and vast army labour construct and ruthless power themaster craftsmen who executed had their
in
to
'
,
.
Comedy
of
's
in
,
of
to
The
three completely distinct
.
as
) -
to
to
,
Jacobean and Caroline dramas are often treated
theatre Shakespeare John Drakakis has suggested me Pinch Hughball considered another predecessor as
6
types
of
Elizabethan
be As
.
(
of
(p . )1
of
' of
debating the political the concerns earlier drama and did persistently engage rigidly demarcate literature issues the day Institutionalised criticism tends classify these according different periods and the prevailing monarch hence
Errorsmight
Seizing the book The contaminated text whose varied stage and critical history has explicitly foregrounded the question of appropriations of dominant culture . This history reveals a struggle over textual truth and value , but also alerts us to the problems of seizing the book ’; hence the following discussion is not a conclusion speculation at but more the nature some these dif
'
of
a
on
of
in
all ,
'
on
,
is
It
.
,
it
is
'.
–
'
to
‘
'
is
,
its
by
a
,
it
a
;
).
p
',
' ('
33
by
a
be
,
to
is
it
in
is
‘
' of
as
be
,
to to
:'
is
,
on
.
ficulties Shakespeare quotes Eagleton writing McLuskie writing ideo logy The aesthetic too valuable surrendered without struggle the bourgeois aestheticians and too contaminated that ideology appropriated Feminist deconstruction this contamination which makes appropriation rather than just another interpretation the text necessary demarcation between the two terms one sense false for they spill into one another and yet marks the distinction between criticism that explicitly acknowledges partisanship claiming that own and another that defends itself objective and not devoted special purposes which how the Oxford Illustrated Dictionary defines appropriation to
as
is
The
).
.
p
',
.' ',
is
,
'(
.
's
in
of
of
exposé Western criticism and productions the play have those Othello their earlier and more explicit acknow the play involvement with the colonial theme One
differed from ledgement
of
an
an
by
be
'If
:
to
such
to
to
–
of
of
So
special purposes expose often the first step our devotion appropriations those others treat institutionalised readings appropriated Shakespeare too can these conservative oppositional standpoints there scope for intervention also for politics Sinfield Reproductions Tempest 132 lends itself easily
of
–
to
's
-
of
no
–
to
.
in
as
')
's
or
'
a
of
as
savage and deformed slave does not threaten common personae sense notions about black people slaves the same way does emphasised nobility and heroism Othello While much critical effort prove both Othello was expended non negroid lineage and his moral whiteness despite abundant references his blackness there parallel concern about the precise shade colouring has been
SEIZING THE BOOK
143
colour and
Not until
race
is
more ambigu was he represented
Tempest
1934
.
's
ous about Caliban
The
's ' thing of darkness '; even though
Prospero
of
,
as a
-
,
, a
's
of
).
-9
.
,
(
,
political colour
clearly black
.
as
-
's
Caliban
pp
he
. '
on
-
,
an
of
so
in
,
of
-
as
1859
, , ,
the
Species
,
as
animalistic and after the publication Darwin Origin ape hideously deformed and grotesque sort half monkey half coco nut representing the missing link half seal Simultaneously half man fishlike and was projected varying descriptions see Griffiths colonised native 163 Such explicitly social Darwinist racist and imperialist productions indicated sented him
to
, of ,
in
(
'
'
,
)
as
to
as
's
is
It
true that the play connection with the New World acknow ledged early 1808 was until fairly recently Western criticism background material and not allowed relegated become part
-
's
Such
's
all is
as
The
('
an
,
,
;
at
to
.
in
a
).
.p
195
'(
ideological and historical con texts see Barker and Hulme closure negatively acknowledged and actively utilised material which was formally marginalised Hence Kermode intro duction the play for example sources are painstakingly logged but kept bay we are told that the play primarily concerned with opposition between Nature and Art serious pastoral poetry always the play
its
to
by
'
what Barker and dispelled what
are
:
'
from
are
close the text contextual contamination
efforts
Hulme have called follows
off
such
to
innocence
in
is
).
of
.
'
(p
'
of is ” )
nothing Tempest fundamental and that there structure ideas which could not have existed had America remained undis Any illusions we might have about the political covered xxv
is
it
to
as
the learned Prospero
a
,
or
. (p .
xlii
)
of
Caliban
no
and deformed
,
. .
of
'.
,
. by . .
‘
.. .
to
be to be
is
in
as If
arguing that men Aristotle was right who much inferior others advantageous for the body the soul are slaves nature and always under government them then the black and mutilated cannibal must the natural slave the European gentleman and fortiori the salvage
a
of
,
it
of
–
is
.
or
of
or
as
in
is
's
,
in
all
an
of
is
its
is
,
in
It
widely used accident that Kermode text India that obvious bias inserted into notions the play romance almost mystic piece enchantment Although appropria only every reading staging tions occur the time the text authenticity when they become subversive that questions historical that context
.
. ..
?
it
of
a
'd
a
,
,
to
a
.
's
In
a
of is
:' an
to
it
a
to as
to
an
,
‘
'–
thematic correctness surface sharply example generations For white Othellos are permitted while single black Antony provokes outrage letter the Guardian Brigid Larmour refers the paper disparaging review her casting Antony How authenticity being infringed Would black man Antony and boy Cleopatra be authentic have Italian toga Does strain authenticity have blonde Cleopatra like Helen Mirren
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
144
or
tall one like Vanessa Redgrave ? (30 May 1987 ) . From an editorial in and Players entitled 'Multi - racial humbug ' it is obvious that authenticity way theatrical is a of holding on to a lost empire : a
Plays
taking pride in one of the most complex , consistent and individual cultures in Europe , apologetic Brits are welcoming the ( in many cases artificial ) grafting of new elements of varying suitability or relevance on to the indigenous growth . Politics , we suspect , have more to do with this than art ; quotas rather Far from
than
quality
.
Referring to Hugh Quarshie , a black actor who speaks of Enobarbus being played by a Caribbean actor as `a real coup ', the editor continues : " Too true , Hugh . It will also be coup when played by a Chinese midget ,
rollerskates , and just as relevant. Of course, there could be a production ( any day now , to judge by the RSC s slavish addiction to updating for dumb dumbs ) in which this would be valid ' (July 1986 , p . 2 ). It is not entirely accidental that I found this review , which ends by referring to alternative theatre practices as 'the new colonialism ', in the
nude
on
'
of the
library
British
minent professor of
Council English
at
Delhi, nor
literature
at
that a few
days later a
Delhi introduced
pro
a talk
on
Shakespeare by declaring that she was ‘a diehard conservative ' whose love for Shakespeare had distanced her from ‘new - fangled theories and writers' in whom her students seemed unfortunately very interested . To return to The Tempest ; while social-Darwinist depictions of Caliban ape as -man were greeted with exclamations of wonder at Shakespeare s prophetic anticipation of Darwin 's scientific analysis , the Financial Times complained after Jonathan Miller ' s anti - imperialist production that ' colonialism , the dominion of one race (as opposed to one nation ) over another , is something that Shakespeare had never heard of (Griffiths ,
'
p
.
178 )
.
Caliban
stands
more
clearly and self -consciously in opposition
way
of
Tempest
as a
The
to dominant culture than does Othello . For this reason , it was an easier text to appropriate for anti - imperial purposes ; since the early fifties African and Caribbean intellectuals ' chose to utilise (it ) . . . as a strategy for ( in George Lamming 's words ) getting “ out from under this ancient mausoleum of (Western ) historic achievement ”. They seized upon
amplifying their calls for decolonization within the
’
its
-
,
as
.
,
a
on
to
it
at
;
's
as a
of
/
on
's
to
in
),
-9
of
. .
(
IV 1
an
'
'
of
as
Whereas Western readings had acknowledged Caliban the core reading the play only order concur with Prospero him inherently inferior being whose nature Nurture can never stick 188 this other history seized upon Caliban articulate own bondage and rebellion the same time also initiated debate the psyche during the years the colonised subject Significantly following Britain forced retreat from Empire such anti imperialist
SEIZING THE BOOK
145
a
,
of
-
to
).
', by
's
of
a
is
,
with
Prospero
Kurtz Prospero
.
coer
into
's ,
by
so
is
wemight identify
clearly revealed
a
.
,
of
by
is
,
‘
',
which
is
,
in
to
'
in
in
to
to
,
in
's
'o ' of s
A
on
of
imperialist idealism cive brutality which
,
a , of a . p
as
,
,
? A
by
it
'
(
,
all
on
of
;
of
of
.
of
as
of
,
,
The
appropriations became frequent , there were very few productions of the play on the British stage (Griffiths , p . 176 ). clearly reveals Tempest therefore The history of contest over textual truth and value and exposes dominant Shakespearian criticism part that struggle rather than the guardian some irrefutable core meaning That both racist and anti colonialist appropriations and interpretations the play exist does not argue for the simultaneous validity contradictory meanings pluralism seeks deflect the fact that different readings struggle with each other the site text and knowledge that can count however provisionally text achieved through this discursive conflict Barker and Hulme 194 possible for The Tempest But whatmakes be read these different ways recent article Thomas Cartelli entitled Prospero Africa suggests that the reasons why particular readings arise relation specific text are not entirely extraneous the text itself Centring his Ngugi Wa Thiong argument Grain Wheat Cartelli argues that Prospero with Conrad the Kenyan writer association Kurtz combining them his central character Thompson not misreading historically justified the play but the inevitable collapse rhetoric
a
of
.
as
by
of
noble intentions combined with his coercive actions was the strategy employed later colonialists well historically Recent criticism the play has been concerned with
's
's
).
its
to
‘
it as is it a
'
it
is
far
of
100
to
of
in
ive readings
so
,
certain privileged status
'.
of
in
responsible party success and rewritings hasmade seminal contributions the development the colonial ideology through which read a
Prospero
a
as
‘
's
in
.
'(
p
'
an
–
a
of
of as
in
be
a
'
of
);
68
.
'(
p
, a
for
's
;
the text
serves
as
ambivalence
cludes that The Tempest
in
Paul Brown incisive analysis con limit text which the characteristic operations colonial discourse may discerned instrument exploitation register beleaguerment and site radical ambiva play and lence Barker and Hulme have shown that Prospero The Tempest are not necessarily the same thing 199 Cartelli article establishing The Tem suggests that this ambivalence has been central privileged text history pest the colonialist discourse He determined
,
at
,
.
its
,
is
of
is
.
If
of
of
of
,
,
,
a
of
It
to
of
).
-1
.
(p
The text thus becomes least partly the source the ideological contamination which Eagleton speaks seems me however that Cartelli emphasises only half the impli cations this position and recent criticism The Tempest there play connection between the ambivalence the and usefulness for the construction later paternalistic colonialism there also not
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
146
of
its
to
it
,
, ,
at
.. .
of
its
as cas
Thout
).
'(
.p
of
as
at
'
:
its
's
to
's
in
?
-
one between the same ambivalence and anti colonialist appropriations Cartelli article suggests that alternative readings are only possible relation the The Tempest original contexts but that later history the play has unfolded latent imperialist elements the position which production may not The Tempest occupied moment have been decidedly colonialist Thompson and Ngugi consider be point reception 106 But here surely we are talking about only -
.
of
Po
by
I
as
or
For Ngugi
:
of
,
on
an
.
its
of
,
,
.
reception There have one dominant and institutionalised hered point recounting been others have indicated the already well known features African and Carribean appropriations Because he ignores posit too drastic opposition between the these Cartelli goes original and subsequent contexts the play an
of
'
in
'
of
,
,
on
to
its
,
on
,
as a
by
)
107
it
made
of
to a
.( .p of
's
on
.
of
no
on
'
an
,
at
its
of
, a
historically critically correct reading The Tempest that isolates originating moment production would serve merely anti alleged intervention quarian interest documenting colonialist discourse discernibly positive impact that made the subsequent development historicity would colonial practices His own variety the other hand focus historically determined literary artifact now open less the text status interpretations than variety subordination what history has the play
a
of
be
-
'
a
of
,
in all .
?
,
'.
,
all
of
'
its
of
at
be
of
-
its
is
,
't
a
is isn
'
at it :
of
'
a
',
of
If
we consider the issues raised anti colonialist appropriations alongside those that emerge when we assess the originating moment historically correct reading the play then text need not pitted against locating what history has made radical readings are not about investing text with what there Can we suggest instead that the struggle over meaning intensified the case text which itself polyphonic and that the contradictions within the text and the struggle between different appropriations are inter related appropriating the play should This would mean that the difficulties alongside the limits looked radical ambivalence Moreover oppositional readings even one cannot read the political interests at
by
so
.
in
in
I
do
.
,
of ,
be
its
for
in
to
at
as
those that emerge the same time identical These two propositions together looking need examined and shall the ways gender which the representation The Tempest marks the limits appropriation the Third World context today
A
as a
.
at
The
production
us
against reading the encounter India alerts with the white text uniform one recent excluding Tempest the Delhi stage worked hard
on
history
World readers of
Third
in
's
The play
of
'
“
The imperishable empire
SEIZING THE BOOK
147
's
urb
to a
to
,
to
in
,
-
as
.
larg
is
of
in
be
'
by
so
by
of .
It
to
attempted the imperial theme make the spectators identify with Prospero instead elaborating the magical effects desired Caliban Prospero hypnotised that the Calibans the audience would part into complicity with the colonial closure which the play colonial closureshave contradictory enterprise Such productions have been largely ignored been relatively small urban semi amateur incompetent theatre playing elite but they serve uncover ways which different colonised peoples bring varying histories bear upon their contact with Western
/
'
'
I
,
as
In
.
to to
.
,
,
to
of
.
of
of
by
up
in
,
,
,
's
,
,
to
as
,
of
, ,
of
1
,
in
by
it
,
. If
literature identification with Caliban came strongly for African and Caribbean audiences was because their own blackness and racial dif argued ference were overtly emphasised colonial rule India chapter disguise the specifically the Aryan myth was invoked Empire and can be seen persuade the readers racist aspects holding strong spectators The Tempest already colour prejudices that permeate caste and communal politics within India and unfortunately perceiving themselves somehow less black than Africans that fact they are closer noble white Prospero than monstrous black Caliban Moreover Shakespeare last plays and particularly The Tempest had Shakespeare been the focus Orientalist comparisons Kalidasa the most famous ancient Sanskrit playwrights This analogy was picked
)
value order suffering and
)
great
,
art
implication
all
.
of
( or
in
,
by
and
(
and Kalidasa
,
,
criticism
art
of of a
of
Shakespeare which invoked both the spiritual India and dominant assumptions about the fixed Indian literary achievement the distant past present relevance excluded the question irrelevance and lifted both dramas from their respective historical contexts Both Shakespeare
Indian stereotype universality
:
passivity
.
(
, ,
.. .
all
an
of
, by
art
of
of
)
xiii
-
xii
An .pp
at
all
In
is
.
,
of
,
,
is
or
The theme more less the same destruction domestic happiness separation suffering and finally reconciliation and reunion these plays regeneration achieved through patient suffering and repentance there poetic experience the highest level barriers that divide peoples disappear revealing the essential unity poetic experience itself Acharya and unity
,
A
.
of
its
an
.. .
of
(
),
30
.
p
('
',
of
in
,
of
.
is
of
's
of
,
to
, H 'a .H .
to
of
on
'
.
,
W
,
an
,
earlier book written jointly Indian Anniah Gowda and Englishman Henry Wells claims be monument hearts comparisons between and hands across the seas the basis comprehen Shakespeare last plays and some classical plays India my critique tempting beyond scope here sive these books but ways they Notable however are the which combine Orientalist conception Egypt India with the possible exception the sup patriarchal identification myth rememother female with instinct and male with reason both Shakuntala and Miranda represent
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
148
instinctive harmony with nature ; their lovers the King Dushyanta and Ferdinand , merely add understanding to intuition ', pp . 122 - 3 ) , and an essentialist idealism ( these plays deal with the basic and outstanding realities in the human condition ', p . 65 ). It might be argued that such writings are extreme examples , but their assumptions are certainly normative in the Indian classroom . The com plex histories behind books such as Wells and Gowda' s also work accept The Tempest when Indian audience 1987 told drama forgiveness patience and magic research students DelhiUniver at
as a
to
'
,
'
of
as
to
sity are asked study the play part The Romance Tradition English literature with connections with Daphnus and Chloe prioritised
to in
at
is
,
or
,
of
in
an
are
an
One
,
to
of
:
'
, .vp ).
Narasimhaiah
rapist contemporary
for
as
's
of
the reasons for the play declining pertinence third world politics has been identified
to
The black
is
,
.
with
(
always
us '
be
,
of
,
of
’
‘
erase the imperial theme The point however that with varying degrees sophistication these histories and pedagogic traditions under line the colonial history the play they work ensure what one critic Shakespeare will had frankly admitted that the imperishable Empire
in a
or
.
an
of ,
of
,
his
in
Nixon
577
)
(
, .p
should have been men
.
their
lot
it
all
of
a
is
is
it
of
wresting from leadership any role the difficulty female defiance period when protest coming increasingly from that quarter Given that Caliban oppression and rebellion and given the without female counterpart largely autobiographical cast African and Caribbean appropriations the play expression follows that the writers who quarried from The Tempest
of ,
or
of a
.
a
'
an a
,
a
by
'
-
of
, if
a
is
It
true that the play poses problem for feminist and especially appropriation we mean nonwestern feminist appropriation amplification the anti colonial voices within the text But such dif strong female presence ficulty does not arise simply from the lack
's
,
on
-
of
I,
offence
,
an
the rape
‘
speaks
as
which later became what Griffiths
of
,
1892
Caliban
'
defence
in
An article written
standard
of
a
.
the play calls
,
a
or
,
is
).
is
.
62
p
'(
.
of
's of
is
of
's
of
.
in
,
black white the play but also from the play representation black male sexuality Caliban contests Prospero account his arrival the island but attempted rape not the accusation Miranda Identifying the political Prospero effects accusation Paul Brown comments that the issue actually rapist here not whether Caliban not since Caliban contrary accepts the charge suggest that this acceptance On the important for assessing both colonial and anti colonial readings
SEIZING THE BOOK
166
, ;
commit
.
was fated
(p
that
to
he
one
,
,
as
's
a
,
'.
,
is
violence
to
on
)
all
like
'
but
but
offence
added and goes see Caliban unfortunate oppressed peoples easily these lower misled This implies that sexual part the black man inferior nature view that amal
emphasis
of
an
unpardonable
149
racist common sense notions about black sexuality and and sexist assumptions about rape inevitable expression frustrated male desire These notions were complexly employed the influential Psychologie colonisation 1948 by Octave Mannoni who seriously reassessed the propound play order controversial view the psychology the colonised subject Mannoni advocated the notion the Caliban for
48
in
-
on
's
.
As
he
‘
to
to complains
being exploited
not
,
)
.
theby
is
II,
he
for
(
.
of
as
dependency analysed which the desire the part the native Caliban and the Madagascans whose uprising 1947 1942 provided the impetus against slavery but the work revolts not againsing Prospero A Analysing speech nalis because abandoned Caliban Act Mannoni came the contospero conclusion that Caliban does not complain
'
complex
of ' of
of
a
of
of
,
)
he
.
in
to
(
la
de
in
.
of
,
as
an
-
gamates
animalism
an
,
).
-5
pp
.
,
to
of
'
on 's
, or
as
's
of
a
,
-
guilt
.
sexual
as a
of
‘
.
on
on
.
to
of
(
in
,
as
'.
of
:
of
being betrayed other Caribbean and African intellectuals pointed out Mannoni posited Caliban eager partner Crucially Man his own colonisation Nixon 562 noni traces the roots racism sexual guilt The antagonism between presence Caliban and Prospero hinged Miranda the sole woman psyche the island Accordingly definition the coloniser whatMannoni called the Prospero complex was based the notion pseudo rational construct used racism rationalise feelings
's of
to
in a
)
's
and
on
for
:
's
of
.
's
in
,
,
,
by
).
-5
's
.pp
,
see
(
in
of
to
.
by
.
of
(
to
as
as
,
of
by
politics Both dependency and racism this account are connected way that preserves the patriarchal exclusion sexual desire but sexuality from economics well the racist assumption that Caliban subordinate status will naturally lead him desire and hence rape Miranda The supposed desire the native for European care has been nearly every imperialist regime That Mannoni advanced theories legitimise colonisation was demonstrated by the pub could be used Philip Mason Magic Some Thoughts Prospero lication Class Race 1962 Nixon 564 Mannoni was severely criticised his psychological reductionism among others Frantz Fanon who pointed out that economic motivations for plunder were omitted the former account
,
,
a
by
is
in
.
his
of
to
,
in
in
's
Fanon own explanation the sexual encounter between the black man and white woman Black Skins White Masks which has already been cited connection with Othello attributes both sexual insecurity antagonised and racist hatred the white father who the black daughter Fanon also describes the ways lover which black
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA the
150
(
I
to
's
. to
is
',
an
-
',
.
is
for racist common sense also posits that black men -
,
work
's
of
moves
white women
.
By
and also erases the desire
of
,
lust after white women
doing
Fanon
totally different perspective
)
a
(
;
limitation
from
,
's '
(
of
's in,
although
all
of
to
it
too
serious
a
is
of
.
p
71 ).
's
'
,
to
is
in
).
2
A
of
's
to
a
as a
of
man who has internalised value system white society may view pathway acceptance and have his liaison with white woman used this explanation describe Othello love for Desdemona see chapter Fanonian explanation black men desire for white specific situations and with some qualifications women useful only Firstly extend the consciousness black men would be readily that black men have necessarily assume internalised the things see Lawrence Just plain common sense white man view Secondly only object Fanon account the white woman the black man desire her own subjectivity markedly absent This
a
by
a
is
by
.
its
insurrectionary up
'
it
EldridurseCleaver called Imamu Baraka wrote Come
a
articulated
,
Eldridge
woman as
,
peculiar lust for white
rrape apeculiarii has been
course
:
by
Of
an
do
. : 71 $ ). all
p
, .
,
(
'
conceived
a
of
making sexual advances towards white
act
the damage they can women black men have hood Lawrence weapon black militants
,
a
by ,
's
,
of
's
for
's
,
,
In
.
of
of
.
on
In
to
desire
to
,
the black man
from
's
so
his bestiality and concludes that black men will seek enforce liaison upon white myth women Hence the myth the black rapist Othello such hovers the margins Brabantio accusations but undercut Desdemona own powerfully articulated desire Othello Prospero accusation rape and Tempest The corroboration Caliban upholds such myth which derives from the idea that aware racism
of
'
is
).
apologize for and facilitate the continued exploitation
of .
the black rapist
the bad black woman
white
designed
both
-
of '
says that the myth
the myth
of
the turn
of
to
is
Gerda Lerner rightly
women
of
of
,
.
(p
do
,
in
are
:
,
in
‘
, of
,
.
of
's
all
.
of
's
.
of
be If
to ) .
's
of
by
at
it
,
:'
.
' . , ' ,
's
of as
, -
as
it
,
of of
'
(
, .p
.
against white society black dada nihilismus Rape the white girls Rape their fathers Cut the mother throats cited Angela Davis 197 varieties feminism are guilty racist practices needs hardly detailed here that sexist versions anti racism abound well The result these has strengthened the fiction often presented facts black animalism Susan Brown rape Against Our Will has argued that black miller influential study express men historical oppression has placed many the legitimate supremacy beyond resulting ions male their reach their open sexual violence Quoting Jean McKellar Rape The Bait and the Trap which reported rapes claims that ninety per cent the United States black men Angela Davis points out that even official FBI figures place forty per cent 179 The pointhere not that black men not rape but that their dominant fictional representation has legitimised both patriarchal and racist myths female and black sexuality
black men
SEIZING THE BOOK
151
and women ' ( quoted Angela Davis , p . 174 ). And of white women , one may add - the construction of the black rapist also includes that of the passive white woman , whose potential desire for black men is thus effaced . In The Tempest , therefore , we must read Caliban ' s rapacity as set against Sycorax 's licentious black femininity and the passive purity of
Miranda, whose own desire , like Portia ’s , corroborates the will of the father ; although Miranda can be seen to ‘ slip away ' from Prospero (see Paul Brown , p . 67 ; Fiedler , p . 206 ) , this slippage does not erode fatherly authority in the same way as Desdemona ' s passion for Othello . Moreover , this juxtaposition of Miranda , Sycorax and Caliban focuses both on the economic aspects that were erased by Mannoni , and on the gender politics thathave been ignored in some other appropriations .
Sycorax edited
's arrival on
out these opening
Caliban
's
-2 )
,
the first recorded anti imperialist response that them the whole case the
-
elicited
,
in
1904 which found
in
to
the play
. (I .ii .
tak ’ st
This island 's mine , by Sycorax my mother Which thou from me 331 These lines had
of
lines
the island :
aboriginal against aggressive
us '
of Prospero
version
of
Mannoni , significantly ,
to
powerful contrast Miranda Both Pros her power the former draws upon the lan racism construct her foul witch to
'
of
'
a
to
as
;
as
as
(I ), of .ii .
to
pero and Caliban testify misogyny guage well
.
she operates
as a
-
the island
's
is
.
of
-
as a
-
of
,
, of
by)
(
).
.
,
(
-2
pp
civilisation was dramatised before subsequent Caribbean They were also focused 561 and African appropriations but although some these indicated the many pre colonial societies gender was hardly matrilinear nature significant dimension ever seized upon by anti colonial intellectuals oppression racial Sycorax more than the justification for Caliban territorial rights
Nixon
).
-
,
).
.
11
I. -
' ' (
.i .
as
.
,
in
to
'
(V
in
/
,
so
‘
,
of
to
's '
-
.
's
40 )
-
,
-3
'
-
‘
–
|
is
ey d
-
(I
. ii .
express his hatred 258 the latter invokes her strength his Prospero descriptions Sycorax emphasise master 321 339 both her non European origins she from Argier and her fertility brought hag This blue was hither with child 265 269 She strong That could control the moon make flows and ebbs also And deal her command without her power 269 71 Hence she complete contrast stands the white virginal and obedient Miranda is
(
,
.
–
)
by
of
they split the patriarchal stereotype Between them woman the virgin and whore goddess Miranda white devil mistaken for one Ferdinand and witch
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
152
of
own you
!
,
,
for
light
toads beetles bats
,
on his
still invokes
it
and for Caliban
Of Sycorax
the charms
,
exorcised
/ ,
:‘
All
fully
been
rebellion
As
not
's
an
;
its
his
But Sycorax is also Prospero 's ' other '; his repeated comparisons between their different magics and their respective reigns of the island are used by him to claim a superior morality , a greater strength and a greater humanity , and hence legitimise takeover the island and power has anxiety that Sycorax inhabitants but they also betray
.
of
.
). ..
.p
'( to
a
is
's
,
of
in
'
,
of
The
in
an
is
).
-
(I . ii .
40
George Lamming pointed out The Pleasures Exile while Miranda like many African slave child never having known Tempest has the advantage her mother the actual Caliban having known the meaning and power ofhismother Sycorax 111 Prospero patriarchy takeover both racial plunder and transfer 339
,
The connections between witches and transgressive women between capital accumulation and between the witch trials with the process witch trials ideological economic native women deological and sexual subordination and chapters colonial rule have already sheen been discussed and The discuss restructuring the colonised economy not only involved the export
by
,
.
)
3
1
of
of
of
(
,
,
of
-
of
-
,
, “,
,
,
in
,
.(
in
of
.
to
to
taught fight for the British colonialists kill and surrender their liberty the interests men Mies quoted
)
19
to
Burma suggested that
:
'
be
The men must Women must Rughani
see
, (
.
,
In
).
14
-
.pp
in
the British Colonial Administration civilise the Burmese people
to “
order
, .p
by
2
. 1.
in
Officer
in
of
”
"
in
's
,
a
,
in
to
England raw material factories but also redefinition men and women work which economically dislocated women and cal cified patriarchal tendencies the native culture Lawrence Socio logy and black pathology 113 Burma for example British colonialists acknowledged that Burmese women had property and sex England Accordingly Fielding Hall Political ual rights unheard
,
's
,
to
of
us
's
-
.
demarcate them from white women Therefore Prospero colonialist consolidates power which specifically white and male and constructs Sycorax black wayward legitimise past and wicked witch order Caliban version prompts question Prospero interrogation story events then this telling Sycorax story The distinctions drawn should include the generations critics between his white magic and Sycorax black magic only corroborate Prospero narrative African appropriations
,
's '
'
.
'
. ,
's 's
of
's
If
.
it
to
of
's
'
of
by
re -
us
to in
,
as a
is
as
abuse and
to of
,
.
,
to
Colonised women were also subjected untold sexual harassment rape enforced marriage and degradation both under direct slavery and pregnancy contrasts with Miranda illegitimate otherwise Sycorax chastity and virginity reminding that the construction the pro miscuity legitimise their sexual non European women served
SEIZING
THE BOOK
153
'
'
's
is
,
.
on
schooling of
the
's
by
of
-
,
; of
of
of
Miranda
its
the brutality of Prospero s ‘ reason and historical black culture but they did notbring out the gender value these terms they read the story colonised and colonising men but not colonised and colonising women which also told Miranda lonely presence the island emphasised suppression
',
of
,
Sir
'
's
in
.
of in
' by
.
's
of
's
for
is
It
ironical but not entirely inappropriate that one oldest Delhi colleges women should have been called Miranda House after the daughter the university colonial founder Maurice Gwyer Miranda schooling The Tempest demonstrates the contradic tory position occupied white women the colonial adventure Paul
.
)
(p
its
's
is
knowledge
the
(
asserts
re
's
:
,
,
of
magic his schooling Miranda his civilis humanity parental concern and love Prospero (
Caliban
alternately
Patriarchalism
Prospero
wisdom
's
of
power
' ); : its . '
ing
of 's
father
'
of
in
exercise
51
.
of
. ' .
sexuality Brown has discussed how the discourse offers the crucial nexus for the various domains colonialist discourse and the ways which control his subjects sexuality crucial for Prospero
of
:
to
's
of
,
the
In
,
).
a
of
's ',
of '
he
(P
a
is
’
, a
of
no
he
);
all
,
(
its
);
‘
'
humanely
,
of
of
my Ariel and his care Miranda his liberation his pains over Caliban authority power taken the father Miranda cannot choose but obey Prospero can torture both Caliban rospero aside and Ariel and often three together the rebels simultaneously disclosure that will tell tales his knowledge their plans favour and warning colonial situation patri archalism makes specific and often apparently contradictory demands iteration
;
of
/
do
of
–
)
48 – 9
i.
.
to
'
(
III .
'I
,
of
.
’
an is
's
on
‘
its
own women Miranda the most solitary Renaissance woman protagonists and exclusively male stage moves not know One my sex no woman face remember where references are made only three other women She indicates the apparent exclusion
but the same time their actual and together with other images femininity the play propels the narrative even when posited absence Miranda pro Prospero vides the ideological legitimation each actions the beginning the play he tells her that his Art prompted by his concern for her have done nothing but care thee Next the same scene he claims that his enslavement Caliban was prompted
,
;
at
).
,
. 16
's
. .ii
(I
'
-8 ).
Later
she
is
of
345
. Or ii.
Miranda
(I
rape
life
attempted
of
by
's
latter
of
,
by the
,
in
of
of
'I
:
in
‘
of
of
an
' of as is
,
sinister inclusion
in
the colonial arena
at
from
,
women
' ,
I
to
).
..
-
‘
V 1
'(
be
11
,
is
);
/
. .
IV 1 3 -4
(
him
as a
third mine own that for which live my Milan therefore after she married he will retire me my grave where Every third thought shall 310 described
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
154
complaint against Antonio is that he 'new created / The creatures that were mine , I say or chang ' d ' em , / Or else new form ' d ' em (I. ii.81 - 3) . His own enterprise is precisely the same, and Miranda is Prospero
's
'.
am
to
,
,
).
22
-
17
(
to
'(
/
of I. ii .
:'
in
to
I
/
art ;
themost successful of his creations. For twelve years ‘have I, thy school master , made thee more profit / Than other princess ' can , that have more time / For vainer hours , and tutors not so careful ' (1. ii. 171 - 4 ). This education has had two main and diverse purposes . On the one hand it has schooled her to obedience ; Prospero proudly affirms that Miranda nought knowing Ofwhence is ' ignorant of what thou She obeys question why despite the silence and has been taught not incomplete More fact that Prospero has left his story tantalisingly know Did never meddle with my thoughts She has there accept his version fore been well prepared the past unlike Caliban
; is
',
be
-t
.
,
63
, .ii .
-
(
him
,
as a
', ', '
sit
on ?'
, ,
st
'
,
' ,
as
is
,
:'
,
.
be
'd
/
).
14
-
13
.i .
IV
(
,
to
'
,
is
,
be
,
.
(
'
be
be
,
to
,
,
hear
', 'I
pray thee mark me Thou attend not sleep awake come Miranda ordered quiet obey see speak silent hush and mute She his pro my gift perty exchanged between father and husband Then Worthily purchas and thine own acquisition take my daughter thou
?
me
Dost
‘ ‘
Dost thou attend
, 1.ii )
'
to
by
is
to
I.
-2 ).
ii .
ation and she repeatedly
to a
to
.
questions
it )
Gratitude her father mingles with self depreci perceives herself nuisance Prospero never takes this control for granted however and 151 anxious secure her attention and obedience His story elling punctuated repeated orders down Obey and attentive
who
to
to
‘
of
,
be
.
in
's
,
participate On the other hand Miranda schooling calls upon her actively the colonial venture Although she does not love look upon Caliban she must educated about the economics the
We
he
:
situation
,
in
15 )
. .ii
311
(1
That serve
us .
,
in
:
cannot miss him does make our fire Fetch our wood and serves offices
to
)
62
in .p
',
to
')
of
('
’) ;
('
1
('
to the
')
by
's
'
,
;
to
in
for
be
to
('
his
.
to
'); to
');
try
32
, .p
is
-
(I
'
‘
,
(
so
to
.
)
(“ to
's
to
often
beginning
. .ii
The Tempest have
Caliban
on
assault
on of
sought transfer Miranda verbal Prospero Abhorred slave 351 the grounds that Miranda too delicate and not philosophical harshly see Kermode enough speak Barton Leontes 137 On the contrary these lines underline Miranda implication the colonialist project She has been taught be revolted Caliban thy vile race abhorred slave believe natural inferiority goodness and inherent incapacity bettered which any print sorry pitied will not take feel inferior native thee and and uplift him took pains make thee speak and concur Editors
SEIZING THE BOOK
155
''
totally in his ‘deserv d confinement . Miranda thus conforms to the dual requirements of femininity within the master - culture: by taking on aspects of thewhite man ' s burden the white woman only confirmed her own subordination . naming was ‘Miranda House was a school Indian women and ignore conspiracy not careful colonial not want the contradic its
to
such institutions and the space for alternative stances within yet the namebetrays some the assumptions underlying female
;
of
,
of
tions them
do
.
I
a
for
'
a
its
.
to ?
to
be
to
in
education the colonies and indicates the effort create native female intelligentsia which ignore gendered and racial alien schooled ation from the prevailing status quo Two other women are mentioned
,
's
is
to
of 56 )
it
,
.
of
.
told
:
is
,
of
to
.
of
,
,
of
'
(1
. .ii
.
of
,
of
of
a
as
of
first
is
them reinforce racial and sexual these Miranda mother who dismissed piece virtue and remembered solely for her capacity ensure the pure descent the Duke Milan Later we hear Claribel daughter Naples who has been married Alonzo King the King Tunis The tempest wrecked the ship while was returning from the wedding celebrations While he laments the death his son Alonzo
in
and the references
The Tempest
power relations The
)
19
117
. ( II .1 .
African
-
an
But rather loose her
to
,
,
,
Sir you may thank yourself for this great loss That would not bless our Europe with your daughter
fair
,
of
.
as
of
a
,
Thus women and black men and particularly combination the two the cause misfortune We are also told that Claribel
are posited
at
'
to
of
-
,
.
to
a
is
,
to
is
).
-4
(
,
.
II .i
‘
',
to
'
ill -
of
'
'
,
herself the soul oscillated between loathness this union and obedience her father 123 Her marriage abnormal and the source luck but she true European daughter subservient patriarchal will The references distinguish the marriage also serve between different non Europeans between the King Tunis and
,
'
am
as a
/,
on
',
, to .p '
;
,
).
-
)
. a
the
142
?
in
be
,
's
the
in
'
‘
's
wash
amplifies the doomed dialectic which might detected tongue which exerted the greatest curse coloniser
ability
to
A
The rape
hundred thousand crowns 256 259 see also Newman
, V .11 .
The White Devil
doomed dialectic
Caliban
v
of (I.
'
a
dowry
'(
,
attempt with Ethiop white
27 8
“
-
to
's
.
In
,
of
,
Caliban underlining the way that class positions power and regional differences can alter the meaning racial difference this respect one may recall also that whereas Cleopatra status can allow her frankly acknowledge her dark colour Think me That with Phoebus lowly servant girl must amorous pinches black Zanche
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE for
156
DRAMA
1
350
).
-
(I
. . 's ii
is
( it )
.
of ) of
.. .
But even
to
).
Calibans
with
isle
by
as
's
be
,
10
-
This
'
.. .
‘
of
's in
,
( pp
‘
in
is
'
people himself
as the a
(
of
by
-
a
anti colonial appropriations and became symbol both European values for the internalisation the African and Caribbean intellectual and for his subversion hers was not considered them George Lamming The Pleasures gift language Exile points out that way particular not English but speech and concept the very prison which Caliban achievements will realised and restricted 109 Caliban presents the rape his attempt fascination
positing
by
-
).
108
's '
's
10
,
.
of
( , .pp
,
. ..
in
of
to
,
by
in
a
in
,
is
:"
is
.
,
is
he it
, .
or
he
his
so
is
's
of
.
,
of
as
of
worthy duplication Caliban revolt boomerangs con firm the shaping power dominant culture Lamming wonders why Caliban sure that children Miranda would be like him and Prospero But not like her does not consider the phallocentricism ironically undercut Caliban confidence nor how his subor constantly simplifies both Caliban dinate racial position Moreover and Miranda Caliban his way kind Universal Like the earth he always there generous his gifts inevitable yet superfluous and dumb Caliban can never reach perfection not even the perfection implicit Miranda privileged ignorance The political is
it
's
by
-
by
.
;
is
of
is
at
.
of
's
of
is
,
it
-
to
is
to
in
I
a
,
's
Prospero accusation and Caliban acceptance effect make the potential revolutionary rapist and suggest that have tried crucially interrelated with the other ways spaces are which Caliban limited by the boundaries colonial discourse Although the connec linguistic and sexual rebellion tion between Caliban hinted Lamming typical not fully developed this ommission the gender blindness many anti colonial appropriations and criticism ever exist outside the territories allowed him The Tem disorderly women Feminists have found the masculine will Renaissance drama unsatisfactory and have tried show that no other pure feminist consciousness possible from within the masculine arena in
to
I
is
,
‘
?
of
Can Caliban
pest
to
,
,
in
is ,
in
(
'
a
is
,
,
the centre
in
is
,
a
brings
of
Tempest
to
The
us
colonialism
Here
.
by
on
–
in
to
-
of
.
-
in
,
:
is
of
no is : 'it
to
be
.
xv )
, .p
in
:
it
,
of
"
of “
of
.
to
always them Homi Bhabha writes relation the part the the Other that colonial desire articulated that possession fantasmatic space that one subject can singly occupy permits which the dream the inversion role Introduction Black Skins White Masks This implicates both the coloniser and the imagine spaces outside such colonised while would idealist increasingly dissatis dialectic the colonial situation the interlocking fying the post colonial reality Even within the colonial struggle the evocation native culture has been important Aime Cesaire for exam ple tried indigenous space locate his Caliban he rooted African religion and culture and draws traditions uncontaminated available
place
crucial controversy
157
of
SEIZING THE BOOK surrounding
of
on
43 )
.
.p
'
(
,
'
at
of
in
'
'
,
ity
.
current theories colonial discourse Benita Parry has this area has concentrated the complex ambiguity and hybridity colonial discourse the expense obscuring what Fanon called the murderous and decisive struggle Parry between two protagonists This problem has been suggested that recent work
'.
(s )
'
of
The Tempest are
of
to
by
'
radical ambivalence
/
of
',
of
of
‘
.
(p
'
of ).
the
by
is
It
true that the limits
'
of
of
as
the
it,
he
As
an
In
.
'
,
of a
I
to
in
to
essay which identified relation The Tempest by Thomas Cartelli counterposes quarrel have referred earlier he those who with the Tempest that speaks the predatory language notion colonialism community for whom and another nonwestern interpretative The Tempest has long served the embodiment colonial presumption problematize sees first group the traditionally stereotyped critical estimate Prospero and Caliban the relationship while the second resists this by recuperating the starkness themaster slave configuration 101
are '
'
of
as
by
by
a
can
'. ,
;
‘
to
the confinement Caliban the space structured the the play does not allow him visualise what Parry calls question simple another condition beyond imperialism But we opposition between the two groups identified arguing Cartelli that the play functions the embodiment colonial presumption
marked coloniser
/
of
of ,
ative teaching
of
,
its
in
to
.
of
?
to
be
or by
'?
of
'
.
do
to
only when the tensions and ambivalence which Brown points erased What we mean by the starkness the master slave con Surely not that either figuration the two opponents their stances and psyches are simple monolithic The harshness the colonial ignoring the complexity conflict cannot stressed the adversaries emphasise this point This project has tried relation our own European encounter with the text including the agenda for altern –
.
The colonial conflict intersects with others those caste and ethnicity and the colonial subject not simple being Moreover three centuries colonial history have shaped com a
is
be
.
, ,
of
'
,
,
class gender
is
.
point
,
of
,
as
plex institutions such the Indian education system which cannot dismantled unless we take into account the interpenetration colonial indigenous and patriarchal power structures But this precisely the
by
:
'
to a
.
)
(p
'
,
it
or to
'
its in
on
.
,
43
-
of
.
by it
to to
of
is
)
To on
is
in
in
.ii .
(I a
.
'
a
of
'
on
's
at
which Parry criticism becomes crucial she attributes the con hybridity programme marked centration the exhorbitation discourse and related incuriosity about the enabling socio economic and political institutions and other forms social praxis simply left Whereas The Tempest Caliban his island we know that your language reality Prospero rarely simply sails away curse appropriate the European text 362 not own terms limit ourselves the spaces allowed Not only will centre around similarity dissimilarity disclosure the and usefulness and irrelevance
GENDER , RACE , RENAISSANCE DRAMA
158
of the Western text, but it must extend to the economic , sociopolitical and institutional realities in which our academic practice exists .
Notes indebted to work on TheTempestby Barker and Hulme , Paul Brown and Rob Nixon , which has made this chapter possible initiating The English department of Miranda House has been instrumental Delhi English studies the critical examination India see chapter note has also provided applicability forum for regular discussion critical theory and the university lecturers Delhi This Indian classroom and published feminist criticism
)
in
. in
in
by
1 );
it (
its 1 in ,
of in
a
(
.
of
all
I am
of
2
1
'
( II .1 . 78 ).
.
46 ).
, .
Tunis
,
(
p
,
between the two worlds
“
identification
the apparently
Kermode
:
the idea
of
,
Old World and introduces was Carthage
'
'
to
and race are picked the references other women trivial banter about Dido which has never properly been explained
as in
in
a
of
up a in
in
's
Femininity
sir
3
,
,
, of
perhaps bears out my contention that given the increasing feminisation English studies and women alienation from the dominant concerns the discipline Third overhauling English studies World feminist criticism will play central role India
Bibliography of work
cited
(* denotes editions of texts used for quotations )
,
,
of
.
,
at
'(
,
of
Kynde
Woman
).
,
A
,
(
the Nobilitie and Excellencye
of
).
,
,
of
Delhi April 1988 Henry Cornelius Treatise trans Henry Care London 1542
Agrippa
, . ,
(
(
on
an
).
in
).
',
,
,
:
,
,
,
and
Acharya , P. B ., Tragicomedies of Shakespeare, Kalidasa Bhavabhuti New Delhi Mehar chand Lacchmandas 1978 Essay Antony and Cleopatra New Haven Yale Adelman Janet The Common Liar University Press 1973 Advani Rukun The publisher the market place Some ideological aspects publishing for English studies paper presented Miranda House University
(
'
of
).
York and
(
.,
,
,
New
).
,
,
.
G
,
,
and London Collier Macmillan 1982 Philip and Kelly Gail eds Education and Colonialism London Longman 1978
Altbach
in
'
,
(
, .,
?
,
).
,
on
the
:
of
In
,
'
—
of
,
in
., '
ed G,
Altbach Philip search Saraswati the ambivalence the Indian academic Comparative Perspectives Altbach Academic Profession New York and Praeger Publishers 1977 London Servitude the mind Education dependency and neocolonialism Altbach Arnove and Kelly eds Comparative Education New York Macmillan
).
,
art : a
ed
).
76
- ',
of
.pp
.,
Croom
,
London
(
Social Maps from
). ed ., ) ., ' .
in
,
)
:
.,
ed
Women and Space Ground Rules
1981
and
(
for
.
, , ' s
Sharpe Revenge
Shirley
Helm
,
's
of
,
her
(
,
11
,
Women
Ardener
,
in
(
.
,
',
to
-
,
(B
,
.,
, , S ) . . K .
,
, G . S , .
,
Althusser Louis Lenin and Philosophy and Other Essays trans Ben Brewster London New Left Books 1971 Amur and Desai eds Colonial Consciousness Commonwealth Literature ombay Madras and New Delhi Somanja Publications 1984 Andreson Thom Martha Thinking about women and their prosperous reply Shakespeareand theNature Shakespeare Studies Juliet Dusinberre Women Columbia University South Carolina 1978 259 Anger Jane Jane Anger Protection Women 1589 Simon Shepherd The
,
,
(
:
of
:
-
in
9
.
Art
', , ed .,
',
in a
A
,
,
,
Europe 1560 1660 Essays Aston Trevor Crisis Past and Present London Routledge 1965 Marriage and malevolence the uses Babb Lawrence sexual opposition Hindu pantheon Ethnology 1970
(
in
.
English
,
World Language
Cambridge
(
,
Manfred
as a
).
'(p
at
:
-
in a
).
,
).
, .
W
,
Richard and Görlach University Press 1982
,
Bailey
,
of
in
,
,
Babcock Barbara The ReversibleWorld Symbolic Inversion and Society Cornell University Press 1978 Bagchi Jasodhara Shakespeare loin cloth English literature and the early Bengal aper presented nationalist consciousness Miranda House Uni versity Delhi April 1988
BIBLIOGRAPHY
160
OF WORK CITED
Baines , Barbara J. ed ., Three Pamphlets on the Jacobean Anti - feminist Controversy, Scholars Facsimiles and Reprints ( New York , Delmar , 1978 ) . Baldick , Chris , The Social Mission of English Criticism 1848 - 1932 (Oxford University
,
Press
1983 ) .
'
in
'
in
,
.,
:
,
,
(
2
Its
.,
:
'
,
in
).
,
.
-
.
,
(
,
,
in
pp
‘,
of
.pp , 65 ' 85 .
, ,
's
,
-
of
,
)
.
,
and
eds
al .
et
,
of
,
,
'
—
1985
).
,
of
,
'
).
,
,
( in
,
(
,
and
Shakespeare Bamber , Linda , Comic Women , Tragic Men : A Study of Gender Genre Stanford Stanford University Press 1982 Bamberger Joan The myth matriarchy why men rule primitive society Rosaldo Michelle and Lamphere Louise eds Women Culture and Society Stanford 1974 Europe Barker Francis Others Volume Colchester University Essex 1985 Barker Francis and Hulme Peter Nymphs and reapers heavily vanish the dis cursive con texts The Tempest Drakakis 1985 191 205 Barrett Michele Women Oppression Today London New Left Books 1980 Ideology and the cultural production gender Newton and Rosenfelt
in in
' .
),
:
's ' s ,
.pp
,
in
, . K .
G
Was Shakespeare
11
50 .
(
of
.
.,
:
, .I S .
‘
–
P
24
)
.
1 (
.
,
no
',
',
,
a
',
11
:
's
Barthel Diane Women educational experience under colonialism towards diachronic model Signs autumn 1985 Barton Anne The feminist stage Times Literary Supplement October 1975 Shakespeare last plays Leontes and the spider language and speaker Edwards Ewbank and Hunter eds Shakespeare Styles essays honour Kenneth Muir Cambridge Cambridge University Press 1980 131
of in
in
' ).
,
,
.
and Rosenfelt
,
'
in
.
-
.
,,
:
in
.,
(
:
90
.pp
,
:
Newton
.
al ., 64
-
et 45
, ,
1985
.pp
,
Drakakis 1985 166 Constructing the subject deconstructing the text
'
–
of
,
?
of
,
'
—
,
in
‘
' ,
,
Aparna
a
‘
–
chauvinist New York Review Books June 1981 Policy and conflict India the reality and the perception education Altbach and Kelly eds 1978 Belsey Catherine The Subject Tragedy London and New York Methuen 1985 Disrupting sexual difference meaning and gender the comedies Basu
,
;
,
,
.
-
36
,
(
46 of
.pp) 18 .
,
of ) ,
,
.
.-
.
).
(
1986
.
,
Fanon
-
),
',
12
:
of
,
,
/
,
to
'
Introduction
a
(
.pp
.,
'
'
—
.6 (
.
in
of
'
Barnes and Noble Sussex Harvester 1984 123 Signs taken for wonders questions ambivalence and authority under tree outside Delhi May 1917 Critical Inquiry autumn 1985
'
-
no
,
ed A 24
',
—
,
-
D
)
.
, . , M ', .,
(
of
Berger John Ways Seeing London BBC and Penguin 1972 New York Penguin 1977 Bergeron English Civic Pageantry 1558 1642 London Arnold 1971 Bhabha Homi The other question Screen Nov Dec 1983 Representation and the colonial text critical exploration some forms Reading New Jersey mimeticism Frank Gloversmith The Theory
.
87
's
in
-
,
of
.,
).
,
:
-
(
-
in
(
23
. ', no
,
.pp's
of
ed
of
).
(
, ). J. C .,
',
of
,
,
, B . D .
a
:
in
' a
:
's
Dark Room
',
'
—
of The
Narayan
. K .
R
,
Rashmi Genre and gender
',
reading Tagore The Broken Nest and Chatterjee 1986 172 study origins Uses and limits Foucault the theme Edward Said Orientalism Social Scientist 158 July 1986 Bhatt and Aggarwal Educational Documents India 1813 1968 New Delhi Arya book depot 1969 Transforming socialist feminism Bhavani Kum Kum and Coulson Margaret the challenge racism Feminist Review summer 1986 Bhatnagar
BIBLIOGRAPHY OF WORK CITED
, L .,
Dwaraki
and
'
;
India s Educated Women
)
',
'
Constraints
no
PMLA
May
Elizabethan Tragedy Cambridge University
Conventions
(
Themes
:
.,
Shakespeare
). and trans John
.
Aesthetic
ed .
, ,
1968
in
European
1977
).
,
:
,
.,
).
,
Company
An
,
(
Brown
Becoming Visible Women
Mifflin
Houghton
J. R .
.,
Development
,
,
, (
Boston
Macmillan
of an
(
Theatre
Willett London Eyre Methuen 1964 Bridenthal Renate and Koonz Claudia eds History
in
'
etc
London
,
Brecht
Antony and Cleopatra
Casebook
the
,
,
Brecht Bertolt
on a
,
Antony and Cleopatra
,
's
Shakespeare
A
Bradley
ed
1935
, , . C ., ) ' .
Press
of
, M .C .,
Bradbrook
and
).
1982
Options
.
,
in
.,
B
,
(
,
Delhi Hindustan Publishing Corporation 1980 Shakespeare Boose Lynda Father and the bride
Ardener ed .,
(
, R. L .
Blumberg
', in
in public places: the case of actresses
and
, 'Private parts
. 3 ,
1981 .
93 ,
Blair , Judith
161
,
(
,
of
's
:
's
, K . M .,
on
Pale Hecate Team Examination the Beliefs Witchcraft and Magic among Shakespeare Contemporaries andHis Immediate Sucessors London Routledge
Briggs
, ed .
).
1962
).
. ,
)
,
(
,
,
,
,
(
A
,
.,
ed
(
of
,
*
, , , J. E .,
Brome Richard The Antipodes Anne Haaker London Edward Arnold 1966 Brown The Critical Opinions Samuel Johnson London Russell 1926 Antony and Cleopatra Brown John Russell Casebook London Macmillan ed . , ,
) . The
1968
(
,
:
71 .
-
48
, , .pp
I
., :”
).
,
,
in
',
,
and
).
ed
10
).
,
.,
in G
(4 -
',
Revising the canon
1987
'
. R .
of
,
York
(
Marilyn
',
,
December
'
Renaissance and Modern Essays New
Butler
Barnes and Noble 1966 Times Literary Supplement
,
,
).
, ,
of
, “
of
(
of
-
Malfi London Methuen 1964 This thing darkness acknowledge mine The Tempest and the colonialism Dollimore and Sinfield eds 1985 Brownmiller Susan Against Our Will Men Women and Rape London Secker and Warburg 1975 Brustein Robert The monstrous regiment women Hibbard Duchess
Brown Paul discourse
,
).
, ,
(
,
(
-
,
,
,
,
,
Butler Martin Theatre Crisis 1632 1642 Cambridge University Press 1984 Camden Caroll The Elizabethan Woman Houston New York and London Elsevier
of
).
1952
- !
’
”
in
.
35
.pp
:"
,
/
'
., , '
1985
, ' ‘ .
, et
. , al
eds
,
'
., in
V
,
Carby Hazel White woman listen Black feminism and the boundaries sisterhood CCCS 1982 212 Carr Helen Woman Indian the American and his others Francis Barker
'
in
as
(
.
.
)
( -
99
.pp
, : the
.,
of
,
)
:
of
75 .
-
68
(
in
.pp
),
a
,
(
of
).
,
:
: ).
of
(
1
no .
I,
:
's
',
. . ., , , ed
, , ,
,
Trianka 1986
,
of
.,
,
(
',
in
,
in
(
),
).
,
.
, J.
M
,
O
in
Cartelli Thomas Prospero Africa The Tempest colonial text and pretext Howard and Connor eds 1987 115 Castiglione Baldassare The Book Courtier 1561 trans Thomas Hoby Lon don Dent 1928 CCCS Centre for Contemporary Cultural Studies The Empire Strikes Back Race and racism 70s Britain London etc Hutchinson 1982 Chakravarti Uma The development the Sita myth case study women myth and literature Samya Shakti July 1983 Charney Maurice Shakespeare Roman Plays the Function Imagery the Drama Cam bridge Mass Harvard University Press 1961 Chatterji Lola Literary Texts New Delhi Woman Image Text Feminist Readings
BIBLIOGRAPHY
162
OF WORK CITED
of
,
(
the
in
of
',
.
83
'
,
O
in
-
' .pp
),
of
(s
2
no .
. , 82 , .
-
pp
Haec
in 46
, . ‘
1987
,
eds
18
in
Walter
., ,
Cohen
London Frank
Seventeenth Century
Vir
Hic
Mulier Philology vol
,
Studies
Women
and the controversy over masculine women pring 1985 157 Shakespeare Political criticism Howard and Connor
Sandra
Clark
Life
,
', ).
,
,
Clark Alice The Working Cass 1968
).
,
(
of
the
Chattopadhyay , Deviprasad , Lokayata: A Study in Ancient Indian Materialism (New Delhi , People 's Publishing House, 1973 ) . Cherry , Caroline , The Most Unvalued 'st Purchase: Women in Plays ThomasMiddleton University Salzburg 1973
).
,
,
,
(
,
23
.
no
.,
,
ed
Coppola
(
,
,
Women
,
Shakespeare London Harrap 1980 Carlo Marxist Influences and South Asian Literature South Asia series occasional paper Asia studies centre Michigan State University winter
Cook Judith
of
(
).
1
.
(
and
aspect
of
:
dialectic
Antony
Cleopatra
196 213
and.
),
1949
-
, .pp
The Shakespearean
( F
16
Scrutiny
an
., ). '
1985
John
,
.,
in
1 -
25
.pp
,
.,
,
in
ed
, '
ed
in
,
'
/f ,
m
',
,
'
's , ,
,
, ,
Press
Danby
,
(
's
in
:
.
15
- .
.4
,
pp
, 7. , ,
,
', ,
of
.
,
, , , P, .K ., , ' , ,
of A .
's ),
.,
G
,
Wooing Wedding Shakespeare Plays New York Dash Irene Power Women Columbia University Press 1981 Datta Review Ghosh The Circle Reason Social Scientist October 1986 Davies Tony Education ideology and literature Red letters vol 1978
' ).
1943
(
).
,
to
's
's
' 40
in
Philology
,
(
,
Davis Angela Women Race and Class London Women Press 1982 Davis Joe Lee Richard Brome neglected contribution comic theory Studies
ed
,
(C
in
,
;
in
'
,
).
Dollimore
and
).
forth
(
'
).
:
the Jacobean connection new
-
2
and transgression
sexuality
Shakespeare
17
(B
,
.pp
, ., ,
'
‘
1985
Drama
of
the
).
,
his
,
Radical Tragedy Religion and Ideology righton Harvester 1983 Contemporaries and Shakespeare cultural materialism and the new historicism
Sinfield eds Subjectivity coming
in
,
of
.
.,
in
'
of
ed , , .,
,
*
Dollimore Jonathan —
:
on
,
in
,
top symbolic sexual inversion and political Davis Natalie Zemon Women early modern Europe disorder Babcock 1978 Dekker Thomas John Ford and William Rowley The Witch Edmonton Fred ambridge Cambridge son Bowers The Dramatic Works Thomas Dekker University Press 1958
–
in
:
.
(
,
)
of
',
of
93 -
pp
',
)
.
, . ed , , .
,
The
ed Jan
13
12 -
,
,
,
(
,
,
materialism
,
essays cultural Jonathan and Sinfield Alan eds Political Shakespeare Manchester University Press 1985 Elegies and Songs and Sonnets Donne John Helen Gardener London Oxford University Press 1965 Doraiswamy Rashmi Western interpretations Bakhtin Journal Arts and Ideas
Dollimore
of of
).
in
,
,
-
of
(u
'
1985
).
,
Sussex
,
.
of
‘
(
.
),
., .-
,
,
(
nos June 1987 122 Drakakis John Alternative Shakespeares London Methuen 1985 Drakopoulou Maria The Use the Concept the Sex role the Study npublished MA thesis University Female Criminality and Delinquency
.
✓
no .
).
1974
Coward Rosalind Sexual liberation and the family 1978 Cowhig Ruth English Renaissance drama and the role Blacks Shakes peare Othello Dabydeen 1985 Dabydeen David The Black Presence English Literature Manchester University
OF WORK CITED
163
:
,
) , .
the
1985
).
Press History
of
,
Debates
1980
's ,
,
(B
,
1975
Women Healers
for
ed
).
, ., ,
D
(
.,
, B , .
,
Ecker Gisela Feminist Aesthetics London Ehrenreich and English Witches Midwives andNurses New York Feminist Press 1973 (
Introduction
Harvester The Women
to
an
righton
a
ed
-
the Scientific Revolution 1450 1750
).
, ,
(
:
,
-
,
,
,
,
Witch hunting Magic and the New Philosophy
(
,
Brian
Easlea of
of
the
Dusinberre , Juliet , Shakespeare and Nature Women London Macmillan Eagleton Terry William Shakespeare Oxford Basil Blackwell 1986
).
BIBLIOGRAPHY
(
(
.
at
in
5
'
in
(
.
94
',
's
.
:
Lee
,
London
(
:
.,
Sex Differences Cultural and Developmental Dimensions
Oc
). trans Charles Lam Markmann London Press 1986 Summer 1986 special issue Socialist feminism out the
The
.
:
'
of
).
(
.
Feminist Review no
;
23
,
Pluto
,
,
Black Skins White Masks
(
, , ,
Frantz
and Sydney
the
.
in 68
'
,
.,
et al .
'
' ).
B
.,
in
, '
, . H ., E
and Sussman eds Pluto Press 1976
,
).
,
,
) (
(
V
(
,
)
.
,
the
of
-
,
)
(
English studies The English Studies Group Recent developments eds 1980 pp 235 Hall centre Erickson Peter Patriarchal structures The Winter Tale PMLA no tober 1982 Erikson Inner and outer space some reflections on womanhood
Fanon
).
,
) , .
,
,
(
ed
:
of
,
1964
).
,
an
(
'
,
,
,
,
,
, -
woode
).
,
in
‘,
T . S .
,
,
.
R
,
.,
Capitalist Patriarchy and the Case Zillah Socialist Feminism New York and London Monthly Review Press 1979 Eliot Thomas Middleton Selected Essays London Faber 1932 Interpretation London Methuen Ellis Fermor Una The Jacobean Drama 1936 Elyot Thomas The Defence Good Women Edwin Johnston Howard Oxford and Ohio The Anchor Press 1940 Empson William Some Versions Pastoral London Chatto and Windus 1968 English Historical Documents 1485 1558 Volume London Eyre and Spottis Eisenstein
,
(
for
).
).
,
,
,
,
(
:
"
).
. 17 ( 26
,
1947
.
,
,
Elizabethan and Jacobean Tragedies
)
, .
in
ed
Morris
.
February 1980
.
ed
-
).
,
.
(
,
,
(
of
).
York
(
. 2,
no
Kent Ernest Benn
,
,
essay
ELH
',
a
review
and
:
-
,
. Literature Jonson Shakespeare Donne
:
Politics
of ,
'
',
-
.
514
of 42
I
),
(
–
and
the pp
49 ,
,
Jonathan
1982
James
in
CCCS 1982 143 The politics Renaissance literature
,
Goldberg
82 .
Gilroy Police and thieves
.pp
).
1984
1977
, .
Elizabethan and Jacobean Tragedies
, .3,
',
:
of
).
Introduction
',
,
Brian
,
the
of
,
, ', '
,
Gibbons
,
:
's ,
/
,
,
,
,
,
(
,
Foucault Michel Power Knowledge Selected Interviews and Other Writings 1972 Colin Gordon Brighton Harvester 1980 Cape 1982 Experience London French Marilyn Shakespeare Division Oppressed trans Myra Bergman Ramos New Friere Paulo Pedagogy Herder and Herder 1972 analysis Signs vol Garrett Clarke Women andwitches patterns
77 ,
)
,
Brian
London Arnold
India
Leaflet
( 23 (
a
Passage
Against Rape
Forum
Whore
to
A
, E . M .,
Forster
Pity She
's
',
,
*
Ford John
Tis
',
” :
'In
.,
H
,
Forbes Geraldine search the pure heathen missionary women April 1986 nineteenth century India Economic and Political Weekly 21 no
in
)
.
1971
(
in
of
:
,
of
Cape
in
.,
A
, , ,
,
,
Stranger Shakespeare Hertfordshire Fiedler Leslie Paladin 1974 Figes Eva Patriarchal Attitudes Women Society London Faber 1970 Firestone Shulamith The Dialectic Sex the Case Feminist Revolution London
their Contemporaries
BIBLIOGRAPHY
164
OF WORK CITED
and
colonialism
of
,
(
Caliban
Secker and
',
” :
Human Fertility London
Yearbook
.
80
159
Pilgrim
Oklahama
,
,
(
;
of
the
mine
This island
1983
(
English Studies
Politics
's
,
Griffiths Trevor
English Renaissance Norman
Destiny
),
13 R ) .
, .
,
,
Greer Germaine Warburg 1984
.pp
) , .
,
1982
and
The Power of Forms in
-
.,
Sex
ed
Books
“
-
the
( Baltimore and London , John Hopkins University Press , 1983 ). Greenblatt , Stephen , RenaissanceSelf -Fashioning (University of Chicago Press , 1980 ) .
a
a
:
)
.
1980
Sargant
'
.,
of (
and feminism
,
Hutchinson
etc
in
.
-
,
,
',
.,
.,
et al .
al .
in
,
,
et
'
note Hall eds 1980 157 62 Hall Stuart eds Culture Media Language London Hartmann Heidi The unhappy marriage Marxism
in
Its
.
Early
Record
)
.
,
J.
.
30
'
in
Brecht read
The English Experience
Norwood Walter Johnson 1974 Shakespeare Dollimore and Sinfield ,
665
(
. (
),
1609
no
,
How
202
-
, .,
.
1985 pp
eds
Women
Facsimile
'
,
Margot
, ,
Heinemann
in
,
Apologie
Printed Books Published
for
1981
Heale William
An
., , ed
71 .
-
.
,
, .pp in
;
.ppin
of ed . )
) in
(
4
(
-
6
,
no .
,
', '
the
or
',
,
-
,
,
Europe early modern Hacker Barton Women and military institutions Signs reconnaisance summer 1981 643 Haec Vir Womanish Man 1620 Baines 1978 language and ideology Hall Stuart Recent developments theories critical
of 4
',
no .
(
).
1
of
–
1
',
, I .no
I:
',
parliamentary rhetoric and the exercise Heisch Alison Queen Elizabeth power Signs 1975 patriarchy Feminist Review Queen Elizabeth and the persistence
.
.,
ed
1978
London Panther
(
-
Revolutionary England
,
Pre
)
,
Baines
.
1969
English Revolution
)
.
in
in
,
)
87
of
.pp
.
-
in
his
in
,
Shakespeare and
of
).
,
,
(
,
(
the
in
.,
Feminism and Nationalism
in
: ).
,
on
Kumari
).
,
,
,
a
(
I
:
' , in '
,
–
James
of
of
Political Works
(B
Feminist Politics and Human Nature
.,
M
, I, ,
righton Harvester 1983 New York Russell and Russell 1965 Jardine Lisa The Duchess Malfi case study the literary representation women Sussanne Kappeler and Norman Bryson eds Teaching Text Lon don Routledge 1983 Daughters Women Still Harping SeventeenthCentury Drama Brighton Harvester
James
.
1983
London
,
the Third World
(
in
,
Jayawardana
,
)
v
Studies
).
(
,
, G . K .,
Dramatic Identities and Cultural Tradition Contemporaries Liverpool University Press 1978
Jaggar Alison
,
1985
.
.,
eds
of
'
:
et al .
in
Barker
gender
163 sexuality and mobility early colonial
.,
O
in
'
',
discourse Hunter
Much
.
,
,
:
.,
.,
F
,
'
(
., '
E
,
,
Hulme Peter Polytropic man tropes
text
in
). O
.
E
Jean Renaissance antitheatricality and the politics Ado About Nothing Howard and Connor eds 1987
Howard
,
London
(
Tragedies
's
Shakespeare Major
1961
the
,
in
:
Night Studies
Europe 1560
Jean and Connor Marion eds Shakespeare Reproduced history and ideology New York and London Methuen 1987
,
Howard
The Story
the
,
,
,
Routledge
of
(
:
E
The crisis the seventeenth century Crisis Routledge 1965 1660 Essays from Past and Present London
Holloway John
Har
(
Radical Ideas During
1975
in
, . J. , ',
,
Penguin
of ) . :
Turned Upside Down
The World
mondsworth Hobsbawm
the
)
,
–
(
-
or
,
Books
in in
(
).
1980
Hic Mulier the Mannish Woman 1620 Hill Christopher Society and Puritanism
Zed
BIBLIOGRAPHY
OF WORK CITED
Books, 1986 ). Jones, Ann Rosalind
165
-
.
86
,
l’
an
',
(
,
,
Kent Ernest
Sir
:
,
'
,
.
)
.
and racism
feminism
1980
.
, . ,
trois Marxism
:
à
', ed
,
2 (
36
',
The incompatible ménage
Gloria
Sargant
's
Feminism and the Humanists the case Thomas Elyot Good Women Renaissance Quarterly no summer 1983
',
of
of
).
,
,
Defence in
pp
(
Elizabethan and Jacobean Tragedies
Benn 1984 Jordan Constance Joseph
.
of a
in
:
:
Bolton
(
,
Sejanus His Fall
in
-
ed
Press 1971
versity *
, . 's W ) , ). . . ed . ). F .
,
,
,
, .
18 (
–
on
'
.,
in
:
the
'
of
, Writing body towards understanding ectriture Newton and Rosenfelt eds 1985 101 femininity the limits Julia Kristeva semiotic politics Feminist Review no winter 1984 English Renaissance Drama Oxford Jones Eldred Othello Countrymen the African Univerity Press 1965 Jonson Ben Epicoene Edward Partridge New Haven and London Yale Uni feminine
,
(
in
. :
(
to
, .
.2 ,
no
',
at
of
(
3,
', ).
(
)
,
19
. : 1
,
:
, R . J. , “
,
on
(
to
'
,
)
.
-
of
).
,
in
of
a
:
.,
, ,
, , ,
ed
(
, ,
)
,
, of ,
's
Coppelia Man Estate Masculine Identity Shakespeare Berkeley University California Press 1981 Psychoanalytic Study Kakar Sudhir The Inner World Childhood and Society India New Delhi Oxford University Press 1978 England from Anglo Saxon Times Kanner Barbara The Women the Present Lon don Mansell 1980 Kapur Anuradha Actors pilgrims kings and gods the Ramlila Ramnagar Contributions Indian Sociology new series no 1985 Signs Kaufman Gloria Juan Luis Vives the education women 1977 Kaufmann Richard Brome Caroline Playwright Columbia University Press Kahn
,
Chicago Press 1984 Penguin Middlesex
) , .
Shakespeare Wallah
,
The
),
(
,
with Clare Colvin
(
,
Chicago University
Theory
(
,
,
History
Women
,
,
Joan
Kendal Geoffrey
of
).
1961
Kelly
,
,
).
(
26
-
,
's
:
no .
In
.,
the
1986
).
, .,
ed
April
Answers Indian Women
Voices
).
,
,
,
(
,
,
',
21 , 's
',
Kishwar Madhu Arya Samaj and women Jalandhar Economic and Political Weekly Kishwar Madhu and Vanita Ruth eds Search from Manushi London Zed Books 1984
,
-
in
'
Shakespeare Alfred Harbage Prentice Hall 1964 Kanya Mahavidyalaya education of 17
:
introduction
Critical Essays New Jersey
(
of
,
'
,
Othello
Collection
a
,
Alvin
Tragedies
an
).
1986
Kernan
.
',
of
. ‘,
),
-
).
,
(
of
4 (
,
1983
.
no
3
, ) A . .S , ., '
(
, N . S . Manushi
',
munities
25
-
. ,
,
pp
of
.
.-
,
.
ed
, 42 -3 , ,
15
Roop Kanwar Manushi nos Madhu and Vanita Ruth The burning Sept Dec 1987 Knox John The First Blast the Trumpet Against theMonstrous Regiment Women 1558 Edward Arber Westminster Archibald Constable 1895 Dowry spreading among more com Krishnakumari and Geetha Kishwar
Annette and Ann Marie Wolpe eds Feminism andMaterialism Women and Modes Production London Boston and Henley Routledge 1976 Lamming George The Pleasures Exile London and New York Allison and Busby
,
).
,
,
(
of
,
:
.,
,
,
, . ,
1982
,
CCCS
,
in
racism
'
”
“
the roots
:
sense
-
",
common
.
-
142
” in
pathology
“
thirsty sociology and black
;
is
water the fool
95
,
.ppof
.
abundance CCCS 1982
,
plain
94
-
pp
.
Errol Just
'In
—
47
Lawrence
of
).
1984
(
of
,
Kuhn
OF WORK
BIBLIOGRAPHY
166
CITED
Lewis , Jane , ‘ The debate on sex and class ',New Left Review no . 149 (Jan .- Feb . 1985 ). Liddle, Joanna and Joshi , Rama , Daughters of Independence: Gender, Caste and Class in India (New Delhi, Kali / London , Zed Books , 1986) . ( The) Literature and Society Group , Literature / society : mapping the field in Hall et al. eds., 1980 , pp . 227 - 35 . Loomba , Ania , ‘Disorderly Women in Jacobean Tragedy : Towards a Materialist
'
'
Feminist Critique ' (DPhil thesis , University of Sussex , 1987 ) . so much a factory ,more a form of patriarchy : gender and class during industrialisation ' in Eva Gmarnikov et al . eds., Gender , Class and Work ( London , Heinemann , 1983 ) . Lucas , F . L . ed ., The White Devil (London , Chatto and Windus , 1958 ) . Mack , Maynard , 'Antony and Cleopatra : the stillness and the dance ' in Milton Crane hicago and London University Chicago ed ., Shakespeare's Seven Essays of
(C
:
,
Art
Lown , Judy, ‘Not
Shakespeare
The
's
of
the example
1981
.
Red Letters
,
',
Shrew
12
',
the
,
Feminist deconstruction
Kate
of
Taming
:
).
,
Press 1973
McLuskie
:
).
(
of
).
-
,
.
-
88
).
Powes
in
.
Shakespeare Development
's
in
,
26
(
17
no .
21 ,
1986
Pamela
.
of
in
.
,
the
The Complete Works
1973
)
,
of
Faustus
Cambridge University Press
,
).
.,
,
ed
in
'
?
,
(
,
of
on
(
of
. .',
:
,
Nature Women
,
,
the patriotic Amazonomachy and London Routledge
Tearing the Veil
(
in
ed
's
,
Merck Mandy The city achievements ancient Athens Susan Lipshitz
,
Ecology and the Scientific Revolution
1980
., : ).
and Row
,
' , '
(
The Death
Harper
San Francisco
of
.,
N
19
pp Merchant Carolyn
.
,
,
12 , - A, ,
et ) . al .
,
,
Progress Manifesto Communist Party Moscow Publishers 1971 English London and Boston Faber 1986 McCrum Robert The Story Menezes Has Shakespeare fallen evil tongues Narasimhaiah 1964
,
Marx Karl and Engels Frederick
trans
)
:
,
Christopher Marlowe
Cleopatra
early nineteenth
April
1968
(
*
,
(
Columbus Ohio State University Press Marlowe Christopher The Tragical History
sati
Colonization
Dr .
Antony
World
of
Psychology
and
:
Pillar
the
The
, ,
Julian
,
Markels
1964
,
York
of ).
New
(
land
Prospero and Caliban
the
',
, O .,
Mannoni
on
an
of
'
,
,
).
,
California Press 1983 Lata The production official discourse century Bengal Economic and Political Weekly
Mani
, ,
,
.pp
(
J. W .
ed ( .
),
in
,
(
'
D
,
Le A
of
G
, , T. B ., , ,
. M . .,
in
for
:
‘
–
The patriarchal bard feminist criticism and Shakespeare King Lear and Measure Measure Dollimore and Sinfield eds 1985 108 Young London Hart Davis 1952 Macaulay Proseand Poetry compiled History English Education Mahmood Syed India Aligarh 1895 Malory Thomas University Spisak Morte Arthur Caxton 1485
Al
(
,
London
Society
.,
ed
. H .
in A
The Works
).
,
.,
Bullen
.
. ed .,
in
1975
).
).
,
,
(
.
Frost Cambridge University Press 1978 Shepherd Nottingham University Press 1979
(
.,
ed
Simon
L
ed
David
. . ed
of
The
Muir
. ,
ed
,
in
(
in
in
The Changeling
The Selected Plays Family Love
Muslim
).
;
,
,
A of
*
* * * — — — — -
:
,
,
,
Beyond Veil Male Female Dynamics Saqi Books 1985 revised edition Middleton Thomas More Dissemblers BesidesWomen Thomas Middleton New York AMS Press 1964 * Cheapside Chaste Maid Muir 1975 * Women Beware Women Muir 1975 *
in
the
).
1978
Mernissi Fatima
167
OF WORK CITED
. A . H .
,
the
in
.
:
in
-
'(
. on a
:
.
74
51 -
Shakespearian
',
5 12 .
of
History
English Literary Renais
.
),
1 (
.
).
,
18
,
.ppof
(
)
7 "
.
',
', no
'
,
Renaissance literary studies and the Subject no winter 1986 pp ,
the patriarc
State University
).
', ,
of
(
,
,
, ,
International
)
,
,
:
on a
Michigan
Millett Kate Sexual Politics New York Avon Books 1971 Mitra Ashoka The status women Frontier June 1977 Montrose Louis Adrian The purpose playing reflections anthropology Helios 1980 16
ed
The
,
,
,
107
,
hal context ethical questions and public policy working paper December 1985
–
Gomme
).
,
, ‘
,
(
of
,
(
*
, , ,
).
,
Ernest Benn 1984 Roaring Girl Middleton Thomas and Dekker Thomas London Ernest Benn 1976 Mies Maria Patriarchy and Accumulation World Scale Women Division Labour London and New Jersey Zed Books 1986 Miller Barbara Diane Prenatal and postnatal sex selection India
sance
Kent
Elizabethan and Jacobean Tragedies
,
Roma Gill
(
.
Women Beware Women
in
ed
-
BIBLIOGRAPHY
).
,
.
,
73 . )
-
,
,
.pp
,
)
., ,
.,
al
(
( et
in
'
,
.
,
(
.
,
.,
ed
,
.
Taylor
of
Cereberus
11
.
pp
.
the 5 -
1964
,
., for
)
., ed
'
ed
Soppe
1985
English
literature abroad
in
teacher
'
of
as a
.,
Three Pamphlets
.
ed
Amur
.
422
ombay
Popular
Prakashan
,
India
,
Shakespeare Came
(B
ed
., ,
1984
.pp
and Desai eds Narasimhaiah
Mad Dogge
or a
,
in
)
Shepherd The Englishman
, S ., , ' , C . . D , .
(
Hell 1617 Nagarajan
Baines Narasimhaiah
1620
in
Hic Mulier
Muliyil Why Shakespeare for Munda Constantia The Worming
to
Apologie
of a us ? ( in
, G, ., : '
-
Mulde Sacke
of
or
the
).
1975
,
,
(
, , ,
,
',
,
,
, A . , L .,
Morton The English Utopia London Lawrence and Wishart 1969 Moorhouse Goeffrey India Britannica London Paladin 1984 More Thomas Utopia trans Ralph Robinson Menston Sedar Press 1970 Morley Dave Texts readers subjects Hall eds 1980 163 Muir Kenneth Thomas Middleton Three Plays London and Melbourne Dent
) .
1964
:
's
62
.pp
” –
).
,
/
a
).
,
., :"
,
et
in
(
of
'
"
al .
in
(
,
',
'",
,
.
)
,
of
,
,
:
,
Sex
.
-
,
(
in
'
:
.
77
,
pp
.
)
30
1987
, 38 ,
racism
March
Shakespeare Quarterly
',
(
,
”
and
and Milwaukee
,
.
)
,
(
.
Donker 1987 Jacobean Tragedy Madison
,
of
AD
.
Craighall
The Moral Vision
of
',
plain face
23
).
,
.
West Africa
166the - “ 88
pp ( .
)
Robert
,
,
66
-
47 -
).
',
(
2
,
no .
Shakespeare Against Apartheid
Ornstein
Othello
19
on (F
, pp ' .
,
) , ,
,
.,
ed
-
of
, ‘
-
Martin Othello and summer 1987
,
Orkin
-
.pp
‘,
(s
,
-4 ;
618
,
, '
in
,
,
13 ,
,
Okri Ben Meditations 562
.,
O
in
'
in
Howard and Connor eds 1987 143 Judith and Rosenfelt Deborah Feminist Criticism and Social Change Class and Race Literature and Culture New York and London Methuen 1985 Nixon Rob Caribbean and African appropriations The Tempest Critical Inquiry pring 1987 557 Christopher Norris Post structuralist Shakespeare text and ideology Drakakis 1985 Ogundipe Leslie Molara African women culture and another development ebruary 1984 Journal African Marxists Othello
Newton
-
V
of
a
so
,
,
Narayana Birendra Hindi Drama and Stage Delhi Bansal 1981 Neely Carol Thomas Women and men Othello What should such fool good Do with woman Lenz eds The Woman Part Feminist Shakespeare University Criticism Illinois Press 1980 femininity and the monstrous Newman Karen And wash the Ethiop white
BIBLIOGRAPHY
168
Ortner
of Wisconsin Press , 1965 ). , Sherry , B., ' Is female to male as nature
Painter
, William ,
University
2, 1975 , pp . 167 -82 .
', Feminist
ed ., The Duchess of Malfi
1964 ) .
Parker , Kenneth , ' The revelation of Caliban : " the black sroom ' in Dabydeen ed ., 1985 , pp . 186 - 206 . Parmar , Pratibha , 'Gender 1982 , pp .
, race
presence ” in the clas
and class : Asian women
in resistance
'
in CCCS
of
.
-
Problems current theories colonial discourse Oxford Nos 1987 Whoring after English gods Parthasarathy Guy Amirthanayagam
',
ed , .,
in
).
(
-
.
58
27
'
:
and Basingstoke
London
(
,
.
',
.
, , '
of
,
of
,
1983
).
,
.
,
in
,
1 2
'
- .,
,
Pisan Pan
literary
and Sunder Rajan Rajeswari Shahbano forthcoming Christine The Book the City Ladies trans Earl Jeffrey Richards London
Zakia
,
,
de
,
Macmillan Pathak
New Cultural Bearings
East West Encounter 1982
in
Writers
R 9,
Vol
.
, . ',
,
Benita
Review
pp
Parry
,
75
236
Studies vol .
is to culture ?
J. R . Brown
The Palace of Pleasure ( 1567 ) in
, Methuen ,
(London
OF WORK CITED
(
'
(
-
of
in ) .
,
of
on
Some observations
,
).
;
of
,
.J ., / '
in
of
,
21
,
,
,
; of
',
,
Ideology and the Status Ponniah Gowrie Women Hindu Society unpub lished MA thesis University Sussex 1976 forthcoming publication Pym John years Merchant Ivory films London British The Wandering Company Film Institute New York The Museum Modern Art 1983
Lang
,
)
.
,
. ).
., ,
to
ed
,
,
72
'
in
in
(
for
Mass Culture from Walter Benjamin
Umberto
1984
).
,
., ,
ed
(
in
of
(
).
3
',
,
:
,
Ideology and Art Theories
London
of
',
of
:
,
,
Eco
,
Ridless Robin Ridley
.
, V 14 . ,
B
,
V
, . , '(M V.
English Literary Renaissance
no
chastity the theme The Changeling autumn 1984 college students Rao Prakasa and Rao Nandini Sex role attitudes ichigan State University working paper India November 1984 Ribner Irving Jacobean Tragedy the Quest Moral Order London Methuen 1962 Coppola Farley Richmond The social role theatre India 1974
Randall Dale
ed
(
of a
,
).
,
.,
in
'
in
:
.
for
:
Shakespeare Hamlet and Measure
118
-
pp
. of
the reading
1985
,
- ed .,
Drakakis
95
in
Sexuality
',
in
,
Measure
the
,
(
J. .) ,
Jacqueline
Rose
,
(
of
in
)
.
,
(
the
the
(
).
14
:
's
in
)
', in
.,
ed
-
Le
, ., ',
,
-
,
ed
Antony and Cleopatra New Jersey Rose Mark Twentieth century Interpretations Prentice Hall 1977 Rose Mary Beth Women men clothing apparel and social stability The Roaring Girl English Literary Renaissance autumn 1984 Women Middle agesand Renaissance Syracuse University Press 1986
).
,
summer
(
, ,
no 2
,
, .)
,
,
Romeoand Juliet and Antony and Cleopatra ShakespeareQuarterly 1985
36
:
of
(
,
, ‘,
,
,
Rowbotham Sheila Women Resistance and Revolution Middlesex Penguin 1972 tragic endings the suicide scenes Rozett Martha Tuck The comic structures in
).
,
a
:
(
,
(
1982
).
Press
,
Hopkins University
, ) .
'(
,
, ‘,
,
,
Rughani Pratap Kipling India and Imperialism unpublished paper Russell Bertrand Marriage andMorals London George Allen and Unwin 1929 Ryan Michael Marxism and Deconstruction Critical Articulation Baltimore John
,
V
.
1 -4
pp
India
.
to
, J. C , ., “
,
, , .I.
M
Othello London Methuen 1958 Making Robinson Cedric Black Marxism Black Radical Tradition London Zed Books 1983 Teaching Shakespeare Shakespeare Came Rollo India Narasimhaiah
BIBLIOGRAPHY
OF WORK CITED
169
Rymer , Thomas , A Short View of Tragedy ( 1693) (Yorkshire , A Scolar press Facsimile , 1970) . Sadisivayya , 'Promotion of Indian solidarity through literature ' in Studies in Educa tion and Culture (Bangalore , Hosali Press , 1959 ) .
,
of
).
,
1981
',
in
a
of
.
-
.
of 43 .
:
Shakespearian
ed
Peter Alexan
.
,
, ).
,
-
.
,
,
The ,
ed .
,
, ' .I. ed .
(
Stuart England
41
,
),
(
‘
in
,
'
*
The
. 3 ,
', , 12 ,
,
,
Patriarchalism
) : .
,
of
,
Press
politics and mass attitudes Historical Journal no 1969 pp 413 Serpieri Alessandro Reading the signs towards semiotics drama Drakakis 1985 pp 119 Shakespeare William Complete Works William Shakespeare der London and Glasgow Collins 1951 Schochet Gordon
of
in
.
58
',
of
).
-
37
the
:
London Pluto
,
Class and Patriarchy
(
Debate
.pp
),
,
.,
on
,
ed
'
(
at
?
(
.-
a 11
-
10
.
'
,
,
,
,
).
(
(
–
'
–
A
105
'
1
, Edward , 'Raymond
no .
Schwab and the romance of ideas , Daedalus winter 1976 Routledge 1978 Orientalism London Sangari Kumkum Marquez and the politics the possible Journal Arts and Ideas nos Jan June 1985 England and What makes text literary The early nineteenth century India paper presented Miranda House University Delhi April 1988 Sargant Lydia Unhappy Marriage Women and Revolution Marxism and Feminism Said
).
,
.,
in
ed
).
,
)
.
in
:
of
).
,
,
,
,
(
:
Fourth
).
’,
Cleopatra
,
Helm
130 -3
Croom
.pp
,
London
(
1560 1660
-
-
Protestant England
).
—
Give
English
.
in
Antony
1982
Reproductions
Social
',
and
).
,
:a
in
theoretical examination
pattern and vision pp 483 501
.
,
in )
1969
Literature
,
',
Alan
(
1
.
36 (
Literary History
modern India March 1987
The comic
'
, J. L . ,
Simmons
no .
,
,
Communalism
Science Probings vol
4
,
).
,
,
(
,
's
.,
Sharp Revenge Five Pamphlets from the Renaissance London
1985
Simeon Dilip
Sinfield
(
and
, M .,
(
,
,
ed
–
The Women
Estate
in
'
(
M
, (
,
ed .
,
,
—
-
Frank Kermode London Methuen 1954 Ridley London Methuen 1958 Women Alfred de Souza Purdah and public space Sharma Ursula contemporary India and South Asia Delhi Manohar Publications 1975 Twayne 1980 Shaw Catherine Richard Brome London Shepherd Simon Amazons Warrior Women Varieties Feminism Seventeenth Century Drama Brighton Harvester 1983 Tempest
Othello
(p
.
.
-
,
).
(
'
).
of
,
(
:
in
Antony and 1985
. .
1966 rept
1984
).
Penguin
ed ; .,
.
28
-
15
.pp
Shepherd
,
in
)
(
1617
Middlesex
,
2
1977
)
(
May
Haman
Volume
(
India
2
.
no
,
,
1
of
’d
,
A
,
History
division and disintegration
) (
of
'
.,
, ,
T
,
Percival
,
Illinois
).
Imagery Stella union Cleopatra Clafflin College Review Sowernam Esther Esther Hath Hang
Smith
Spear
57
.pp
at
of
).
' ,
;
in
,
of
's
Reason Disciples SeventeenthCentury English Feminists Urbana University Press 1982
,
–
.
,
'
,
,
de
'
—
of
,
-
(
'
.,
in
.
,
,
.,
’
of
an
' '
,
in
interventions Dollimore and Sinfield eds 1985 Shakespeare and education showing why you think they are effective and what you have appreciated about them Support your com ments with precise references Dollimore and Sinfield eds 134 Alfred Tennyson Oxford Blackwells 1986 aper given Santiago Othello and the politics character the University Compostella Nov 1987 forthcoming publication Century England Smith Hilda Feminism Seventeenth PhD dissertation University Chicago 1975 account
BIBLIOGRAPHY ed
.
.,
',
:
72 ).
).
(
2
1986
May June -
(
3
XI , .1
,
8
’,
and no .
-
an
in
. of ),
3 (
.
1985
reading the archives
22 .
),
OF WORK CITED
and sexual difference Oxford Literary Review nos with Gayatri Chakravorty Spivak Book Review
: 16 -
.pp
Interview
1987
),
',
Imperialism
' '
— —
,
24
,
(
for
Speght , R ., A Mouzell Shepherd Melastomus 1617 Spivak Gayatri Chakravorty essay The Rani Sirmur History and Theory no 1985 pp 247
in
170
-
)
.
,
,
.,
on
ed
.
-
38
.pp
, in
.,
',
)
.
,
the English
unpublished manus
'(
Renaissance
(
,
'
.,
the
:
., . ' 42
J.
,
123
.
pp
1 ; ( " a
,
natural
1981
.
56
of
Sex
”
,
is
.
89
-
79
is
F
,
in
Shirley Female transvestism Renaissance comedy perspective that and not Iowa State Journal Research no
Staton
),
pp
)
.
1986
,
in
Ferguson Margaret Quilligan Patriarchal territories the body enclosed and Vickers Nancy eds Rewriting Renaissance Chicago University Press
'
–
).
in
sexuality
of
(
ed
in
of
(
,
‘,
,
'
is
The history cript
'
–
. .
'.
), in
(
In
-
Other Worlds Essays Cultural Politics New York and London Methuen 1987 Sri Aurobindo Ghosh this sheer creative Ananda the life spirit which Shakespeare Narasimhaiah 1964 128 Stallybrass Peter Macbeth and Witchcraft John Russell Brown Focus Macbeth London Routledge 1982
Norwood Walter
,
(
-
,
(
)
.
35
-
23
.pp
,
:
”
ed
,
,
.,
in
).
,
Women
1632
)
for
or
the
,
:
's
of
(
's
,
Travels London Methuen 1965 Rights Women Lawes Provision
The Lawes Resolutions
(
Studies 1969 Jonathan Gulliver
. E ., ,
,
(
-
). :
, -
Woman Hater Swift
,
,
of
by
Coryll Crandall Hater Arraigned Women Swetnam the The Controversy and the Play Lafeyette Indiana Purdue University
Swetnam the Woman
T
in
.
“
',
1970
).
,
Press
(
The
,
,
AMS
)
, ,
‘,
,
in
,
,
England Stone Lawrence The Family and Marriage 1500 1800 London Weidenfeld and Nicolson 1977 Sunder Rajan Rajeswari After Orientalism Colonialism and English Literary Studies India Social Scientist 158 July 1986 Joseph Arraignment Swetnam Lewde Idle Unconstant and Froward Women 1615
.
1
no
1926 rept
.
,
Penguin
,
)
(
,
Middlesex
(
Capitalism
13
in
:
to
Rise
of
,
Religion
the
and
Tawney
R
, ) . . H .,
1979
(
).
,
‘, J .
in a
,
(
,
Johnson 1980 deity symbolism Tapper Bruce Elliott Widows and goddesses female roles South Indian village Contributions Indian Sociology new series
28 on .
.
,
1985
s
Midsummer Night
and Sinfield eds
.,
Dollimore
pp'
:A
State and political plays
'
V
,
Henry VIII
in
',
Henry
,
IV
Henry
(
in
).
,
;
,
,
,
I
,
at
.,
Crisis
in
).
,
Trevor Aston
ed
sects
1965
).
Routledge
,
,
(
-
London
in
Women and the civil war
Europe 1560 1660
' ,
(
,
).
'(p
in
of
).
,
of
,
Thomas Keith
'
, 'o,
(
of
,
A
‘, .
,
; ,
.)
'
of (
Power
,
Display London Methuen 1986 unpub Misogyny Monstrous Women Tragedy The Politics Jacobean lished manuscript Thapar Romila History India Volume Harmondsworth Middlesex Penguin 1966 rept 1984 aper given English studies Tharu Susie The rise India Miranda House University Delhi April 1988 Thiong Ngugi Wa Decolonizing the Mind London Methuen 1985
— -
V
,
Dream 109
Strategies
Leonard
,
Tennenhouse
of
).
1984
BIBLIOGRAPHY
OF WORK CITED
171
Space and Literature ' (Unpub lished DipArch thesis , Polytechnic of Central London , 1979) . Tillyard , E. M . W ., The Elizabethan World Picture (Harmondsworth , Penguin , 1964 ). Travitsky , Betty ed ., The Paradise ofWomen : Writings by Englishwomen of Renaissance Westport Greenwood Press 1981 The lady doth protest protest the popular writings Renaissance English
of
)
.
,
in
).
,
in
.
39
in
-
',
in
26
.
-
2
pp
.
of
,
(
,
(
the
of
the (
).
35
.
(
ed
.
).
,
in
.
M
Brennan
Elizabethan and Jacobean Tragedies
.
New
.
/
,
Black
C
London
A &
Brennan
(
.
M
Elizabeth
1985
.,
Ecker
ed
in
writing
'
women
's
the history
.
:
Double focus
of
)
,
.
Sigrid
1985 Weir Angela
Jonathan Dollimore and Alan Sinfield
1983
on
, .,
Malfi
Norton
W ', .
W
, ,
Connecticut
1984
.
The Duchess
Elizabeth
ed
of
,
(
Picador
)
ed
( * —
The White Devil
Kent Ernest Benn
* —
Female Form
John Russell Brown Manchester University
John Webster eds
of
Selected Plays
Weigel
in
of
:
the
of
, ).
,
of ) .
Malfi
India
some contemporary
English Renaissance and Reformation
Cambridge University Press
York
23
,
-
,
-12
.
's
‘,
',
,
The Duchess
.pp
.,
British
English
1987
).
The
* —
,
1964
Kanthap
literary studies
of 93 . .. ." : ,
pp
.
,
,
nos
. 9 ,
,
,
on
,
,
,
John
Press
, ,
Webster
Much Ado
The feminine principle
Wadsworth Frank Webster Duchess Malfi the light marriage Philogical Quarterly ideas 1956 Allegory Warner Marina Monuments and Maidens London 1985
Warnicke Retha Women Greenwood Press 1983
murder
-
ed
in
's
be
ed
in
'
',
Vol
,
) - .
,
(
.
3
,
,
in
's
's
',
,
,
— “
Ravana shall slain and Sita freed Chatterji ura 1986 188 Viswanathan Gauri The beginnings Oxford literary Review
John
).
,
:
a
,
(
,
',
,
,
power and women Ruth Men resistance wife Chatterji Othello Cymbeline and Winter Tale 1986
Vanita
Baltimore
(
14
–
English Literary Renaissance women no autumn 1984 Trauffaut Francois Hitchcock London Granada 1978 Tyrell William Study Blake Amazons Athenian Myth making Hopkins University Press 1984
,
in
(
a
:
Study
Com
(
,
Mysore University PMLA
March
,
Malfi
',
The Duchess
of
in
).
', ,
85 .
.
,
167
India
John
1976
Sexual and social stability
-
,
pp
1985
Press
Frank
,
's
's
of
of
Mysore
Whigham
the
Shakespeare turned East
Shakespeare Last Plays with Some Classical Plays
New Left
Theater Baltimore
of
H
.
H
, . H .,
,
,
,
,
parison
Popular Tradition
in
). the ).
.
1984
Robert Shakespeare and Hopkins University Press 1978 Wells Henry and Anniah Gowda Weimann
movement
The British women
',
Elizabeth
Nov Dec .-
.
148
(
no
,
and Wilson
,
Review
,
in
/
,
(
',
of
.
1977
)
Oxford University Press
and Windus
,
Chatto
,
London
(
-
.
and
as a
46
-
of
'
,
.pp
4 6
.
),
,
Literature
Society 1780 1950
,
Marxism
Culture
(
).
1958
and
,
Williams Raymond
pp
', 1971
(
Journal
8
,
,
), .,
' ed
,
,
sociolinguoistics White Allon Bakhtin and deconstruction Frank Reading New Jersey Barnes and Noble Sussex Gloversmith The Theory Harvester 1984 123 Whittey Steve English language tool British neocolonialism East Africa
—
V
:
(
,
the
Thorne, Anne , ‘Women ' s Creativity : Architectural
BIBLIOGRAPHY
OF WORK CITED of
English Renaissance Literature and the Nature
:
Women
the
Woodbridge , Linda,
and
172
).
,
in
)
'
,
of
.
'
of
a
;
,
the (C
1980
.
,
Sargant
ed .
',
Iris
,
in
(B
-
'
.,
in
B
,
1540 1620
,
righton Harvester 1984 Wright Louis The popular controversy over women Middle Class Culture hapel Hill University Elizabethan England North Carolina Press 1935 Young Beyond unhappy marriage critique the dual systems theory Womankind
Index Acharya , P. B. , 147 Adelman , Janet, 141 Advani, Rukun , 29 Agrippa , Henry Cornelius Altbach Philip
ni
, ,
151 157
,
n3
,
107
145 148
,
,
Lord
Burton
Robert
35n3 The Anatomy
of
Buddha
, , ,
22
,
Brustein
,
, , ,
Antipodes
Brownmiller Susan 150 Robert 73
137
Trevor 91
Austen Jane
John Russell
158
Arnold Matthew Aston
134
Charlotte Emily
,
106 112 118 n4
141
Brown Paul
104
130
141
,
,
,
-
Martha
Brome Richard Brontë Brontë Brown
,
Anderson Perry Anderson Thom Anger Jane Ardener Shirley
119
139 140
135
112
,
,
117
, 71 ,
Bertolt
135
,
Brecht
, , , , 79 , 32 , , G . , , 93 , 4, 8 - , 3 , 30 9 28 , 7 , , n8 30 , , 83 , ,
,
Althusser Louis Anant Victor
, , , , - , , , 41 , , , R , .L 6 , , , ., 30 n5 , 94 , 53 27 , , , 96 , 86 -7 , n5 ; 22 , The ,
Blumberg
Melan
n4
,
,
94
13
,
156
n2 ,
,
,
35
, 12 , ,
Devisprasad
114
Kamladevi 118
Clark
Sandra
Cleaver Eldredge 150 Cohen Walter 135 Coleridge 141 Conrad Joseph Heart Darkness 137 145 Coulson Margaret n4 Coward Cowhig
Rosalind
Ruth
62 n2
,
,
, ,
67
, 8 94 , n2 , , 44 ,
,
n2 ,
, 93
118 n5
n8
139
48
118
,
54
,
n4 , , 37 5 8 ,
,
n17
,
, D . , , M 34 6 ., ,
,
,
Bhavani Kum Kum
,
,
,
, ,
,
,
,
Bhabha Homi Bhatnagar Rashmi
157
Clark Alice
,
,
,
13
91
, 91
,
,
,
, , , 91 , 76
n1
Bentinck Lord William Berger John 110 133 Bergeron
Cesaire Aime 156 Chakravarti Uma Charles Chattopadhyay Chattopadhyay Chrysostom
100 101 104 105 106 108 109 116 141 n2
Blair Judith
141 n5
Carby Hazel Carr Helen 127 Cartelli Thomas n1 145 Cartland Barbara Castiglione Baldassare Cavendish Margaret
49
,
145
,
,
Barthel Diane Barton Anne 154 Aparna Basu Belsey Catherine
n1
135
139
, , , , , , , , , , , I, 51 , , , , , , S 55 70 , , , . , , , , 69 , , T , , 45 , ., 73 , , 57 , V ., 92 , 40 138 , , , , , , , 79 8 20 , , 35 , n7 64 41 8 39 , 24 , n4 of 50 , , 76 , , 42 , 36 76 43 , n9 -6 , , n4 45 , , 74 , 46 n7 , ,
n1
35
n9
,
,
13
36
,
n5
143
23
n3
,
Michele
24 8 -5
,
Barrett
,
, ,
,
1,
, 19 , 27 ,
17
n6
, 106
, ,
Francis
n1
8
158
8
,
Barker
, 7 ,
,
Baraka
118
Matteo Imamu Amiri 150
,
Bandello
Butler Marilyn Butler Martin 135 138
114
5
,
32
,
, 8
n2
,
,
3 , 7
Baldick Chris Baldwin James Bamber Linda Bamberger Joan
,
Mikhail
Bakhtin
11 ,
, , , ,
,
Babb Lawrence Bagchi Jasodhara
22
, , A ., 20 - 74
choly 139
INDEX
174
Foucault , Michel , 9 n8 French , Marilyn , 8 n2 Friere , Paulo , 32
Dabydeen , David , 32 Danby , John F ., 14, 125
Darwin , Charles , 35 n5 , 143, 144 Dash , Irene G . , 8 n2 Davies , Tony , 65 Davis , Angela , 8 n4 , 150 - 1 Davis , Joe Lee , 135, 139
17
,
,
, . , H ., 94 , n8 , 36 - ,
,
9
, , 72 , , 55 , , 8
,
-9
,
-5
n3
n5
,
112
,
,
98 91
n1
n2
,
,
145
,
143
,
78 -9
46
13 ,
,
n6 ,
,
44
42 -3 98
,
,
110
n1
7 , 8
,
76
,
,
8
, , , , 72 , , E Sir .J 77 , ., , , 91 56 , , , 30
,
,
120
n6
,
,
,
119
141 61 131
, G .K .,
,
54 -5
, , 50 , 53 ,
n7 ,
,
43
136
132
Henrik
A
's
,
13
, 8
98 91
, R. ,
,
76
, , ,
132
Alfred
Jean
ni
158
51
,
148
n3
53
,
,
36
,
,
, ,
39
,
,
Hitchcock Hobsbawm
Ibsen
,
n3
153
ni
Hic Mulier Christopher
n6
69 ;
143 144
Heisch Alison 63 Hemingway Ernest
Hunter
,
141
Harrison Stephen 133 Hartmann Heidi Heale William 117 Hegel George Wilhelm Friedrich
Pity She 35
Tis
;
'
8
H
,
, ,
,
77
72
,
, ,
n9
36
8
,
to
India
131
Thomas
Howard
137
106 Passage
n1
,
,
n4
63
Sir
Stuart
152
Hume Peter The
20
,
, , ,
,
,
,
,
56
,
, , , ,
Vir ,
Hall
-
Fielding
, - , ., 50 , 15 , 41 23 , , 42 52 , , 48 54 , , 54 62 , 62 , 64 , A
n6
, ' E , s .M , ., 39 , A 69 ; , , , 26 ,
,
,
Hall
n3
,
Lover Melancholy
n13
117
131
91
, E . H .,
,
Barton
,
,
,
,
, 27 ,
,
91 90
, ,
-
,
n7
,
151
Forster
Hacker Haec
Holloway Mark
n3
Forbes Geraldine n11 Ford John 105 The Broken Heart
147
Maurice
Hill
n2
157
Figes Eva Firestone Shulamith
132 133 141 n3
Heinemann Margot
137
149
Fiedler Leslie
Whore
, , Sri
,
,
,
, , 76 ,
110 128
Frantz
, , 94 ,
Fanon
Gwyer
Hardy
141 n1
,
8
63
n1 n5
Ellis Fermor Una 100 141 n1 Engels Frederick ni English Studies Group The Erikson
Stephen
Hakluyt Richard
n3
.,
R
,
96 30
, , ,
,
,
52
134
133
Germaine
Guazzo
145
,
,
142
98
, ,
91n1
, ,
131
T
, 43 ,
117
, . , S I. .,
19 ,
,
,
, ,
96
,
n4 ,
63
, L ., , 27 , 86 , ,
67
,
,
Terry
Ecker Grisela 112 Eden Richard 136 Zillah Eisenstein Eliot George Elizabeth
,
,
;
n6 , , 9 , n2
8
91
91
Greer
7
,
88
,
,
,
128
Griffiths Trevor
Juliet 8n2
Dusinberre Dwaraki
Amitava 121 Girish Ghosh Aurobindo Gibbons Brian 122 Goldberg Jonathan Gowda Anniah Gramsci Antonio Grant Charles Greenblatt Stephen
,
20
Rashmi
,
124
Ghosh Ghosh
59
, 6,
125
Drakakis John 141 Drakopoulou Maria Dryden John
Eliot
122
n6
Doraiswamy
Eagleton
n1
120
5
, , 74 ,
Donne John
,
113
132
,
,
126 131
112
,
101
8
,
,
n7 ,
,
92 n8
41
108
,
Charles Oliver Twist n1
Dollimore Jonathan
,
,
Dickens
46
Lust Dominion
The Roaring Girl
95
,
65 , , 66 , , , , , 77 68 46 , , , ; 3 , 87 94 , , ,
III ,
113 , 115 Dekker Thomas
Garrett , Clarke , 79 Geetha , A. S. , 85 George 22
, 8 n1 , 70 , 91 n1 ,
Zemon
, , 96 33 ,
, Natalie
Davis
Gandhi , Indira , 110 , 115 Gandhi ,Molhandas Karamchand , 36n7
INDEX
175
Mary
Mason
n7
,
,
75 -6
69
68
84 ,
, ,
69
,
123
106
108
-3
100 101
,
-
20 99 ,
,
110 119
,
54 96 ,
, 94 , 39 , , 95 ,
68 ,
,
98
, 96 ,
Beware Women
,
,
106
105
123
More DissemblersBesidesWomen The Roaring Girl Women
,
4 74 ,
, , -
100
, ,
, , n2
73 ,
,
99 69 ,
105 119
117 n1 122 Cheapside
,
,
Chess
118
100
, 68 ,
,
111 At
Chaste Maid Game
81
40 40
,
,
76 96
,
93
,
A
,
108
A
',
n13
62
Lover
ni
, , 97 39 - , , 12 98 57 , , ,
,
83
,
156
,
's
,
Clifford
,
,
Leech
., ., 3 3, ,
, , ,
Q F . .R D
Leavis
36
152
,
n2 Leavis
106
, 44 , , 98 51 , 52 ,
D
Errol
, ,
Lawrence
141
117
Thomas
The Changeling
The White Stocking
Lady Chatterley 150
152
143
65 19 19 ,
;
16
Lawrence
144
,
,
,
Middleton
n4
, , , . H ., , ' , , 35
,
George DLarmour Brigid
149
Merck Mandy 118 Mernissi Fatima 122
Lamming
,
,
Menezes
76
Krishnakmari , N . S ., 85 Kristeva , Julia , 24 , 112 Kuhn , Annette , 8 n3
Lahiri Nayanjot
Philip
, A .,
Knox , John ,
Scots
de Medici Catherine
141 n2
At
, L . C., 65 ,
Knights
,
Lorraine
Mary Queen Mary Tudor
, , 20 , , 98 , , nb 99 , 76
n1, 80 ,
35 ; Dr Faustus ,
Márquez Gabriel García 121 Marx Karl n8 n1 112
,
110
108,
76
143 , 154 , 158 n1
Kernan , Alvin , 40 Kishwar , Madhu , 26, 27, 38, 62
Margaret of Parma , 76
Markels , Julian , 141 n2 Marlowe , Christopher ,
,
Kermode , Frank , 61,
137
,
Kapur, Anuradha , 134 Kaufman , Gloria , 71 Kaufmann , R . J., 137 Kelly , Joan , 1 , 8 n1, 8 n2 , 56, 69 , 70 , 71, 76, 82 , 91 n1 , 91 n3 , 112 Kendal, Geoffrey , 31 , 30- 1
76 91
, 20, 147 , Barbara , 91 n3
Kalidasa
Kanner
of
Kakar , Sudhir , 98, 113 , 117 n2
127
114
McKeller , Jean , 150 McLuskie , Kate , 142 Malory , Thomas , 82 - 3 Mandeville, Sir John , 136 , Mani , Lata , 12, 36 n10 Mannoni , O ., 149 , 151 Manu , 88 -9
,
, 80 - 1, 89,
,
35 n4 , 36 n10
9 n8
Macheray , Pierre , 8 n8 Mack , Maynard , 141 n2
83
Joshi, Rama , 25 ,
,
Chloe, 148
Lucas , F . L ., 90
,
Jordon , Winthrop , D ., 44 Joseph , Gloria , 8 n4
Longinus, Daphnus and Loos, Cornelius , 85 Lown , Judy, 8 n5
9
, Ben , 133 , 135 , 141 n5 ; Volpone,
136
89 , 114
Literature and Society Group
,
Johnson
ni
, Joanna , 25 , 35 n4 , 36 n10 , 80 - 1,
Liddle
,
Jhabvala , Ruth Prawer ,Heat andDust , 51 Jhansi, Rani of , 115 Johnson , Samuel , 20 , 40 , 124 Jones , Ann Rosalind , 8 n1 , 36 n9 Jones , Eldred , 43 Jones , Inigo , 132 - 3
Lenin , V . I., 112
Lentriccia , Frank , 3 , 4 , 41 Lerner , Gerda, 56, 150 Leaver , 91
of
Jagger , Alison , 8 n3 , 8 n5 , 36 n9
James I , 56, 132 , 133 Jardine , Lisa , 8 n1 , 8 n2 , 67 , 70 , 77 , 81 - 2, 91 n5 , 91 n7 , 98 , 104 , 105, 130, 141 n2 Jayawardana , Kumari , 26, 36 n7 Jha , Amarnath , 22
105
INDEX
176 85 , 92 n8
Mitra , Ashoka , 85 , 92 n8 Montrose , Louis Adrian , 4, 8 n1, 65 , 66 - 7 , 77 , 91 n7, 130 , 134, 141 n3 Moorhouse , Geoffrey , 15, 35 n5 , 37 n14
More , Sir Thomas , 26, 71, 138 Morley , Dave , 2 , 5, 6, 8 n7 , 9 n10 Morton , A . L ., 138 Muir , Kenneth , 119, 122 Mulde -Sacke, 77 Muliyil , G. , 19
30
Nebrija , Antonio , de , 13 Neely , Carole , 40 , 41 , 57 , 60
General , 33
, Karen , 63 n4 , 155 Newton , Judith , 5 , 9 n8 , 41, 96 - 7 Nixon ,Rob , 144 , 148 , 149, 151 , 158n1 Norris , Christopher , 40
, Edward , 11, 14 , 28 ,43 , 44 , 50 , 79 Sangari, Kum Kum , 9 n9 , 25 - 6 , 36 n10 Sargant, Lydia , 8 n3 Schochet , Gordon , 56 , 83
Scott
, Paul,
45 - 6, 83 , 95 , 99 , 100, 104 , 119 , 121 , 144
The Comedy
,
Hamlet
, , , , 34 49 , , 50 , 60 , ,
-
105
106
,
Errors 141
,
Labour Lost
,
Love
Macbeth
100 127
133 142 149 100 104 108
,
You Like
, 1, ,
100
110 124
,
, ,
It - 93 , of , 30 ,
Antony and Cleopatra
108
, 74 ,
n1,
Well That Ends Well
n6
135 , 141
11, 157
Parthasarathy , R. , 32 Pathak , Zakia , 90- 1 Paul , St, 73 Peele , Thomas , The Battle of Alcazar, 46 de Pisan , Christine , 72 -3, 93
The Raj Quartet, 51
Scott , Reginald , 42 Serpieri , Alessandro , 52 Shakespeare , William , 18, 20 , 22 , 30 - 1,
As
,
, 22
Sadasivayya
60
Parmer , Pratibha , 8 n4 , 36 n10 Parrinder , Patrick , 7 Benita
122
, Michael , 5
,
Pannicker , K . M ., 89 Parker , Kenneth , 29
,
96-7
Rymer , Thomas , 40 , 41
30
The Palace of Pleasure,
106
Parry
Ryan
s
117 n1,
n1
,
, 5, 9 n8 , 41, , 73
Rozett , Martha Tuck , 141 n2 Rushdie , Salman , 121
All '
- Leslie , Molara , 45 , 41 , 61 Orkin , Martin , 41, 61- 2 , 63 n4 Ornstein , Robert , 90, 96 , 101 , Ben
Painter , William
Ridley , M . I. , 41 , 42 , 62 , 62 n3 Robinson , Cedric , 43, 44 , 45 , 49- 50 Rollo , J. C. , 30 Rose , Mark , 124 , 141 n2 Rose , Mary Beth , 92 n7
Said
Ogundipe
120 , 141
, 100
Roy , Ram Mohan , 14
Newman
Okri ,
Richards , I. A. , 19 Richards , Nathaniel Ridless , Robin , 140
Rowe , F . J., 21 Rowley , William ,
148
2
Neruda , Pablo , Canto
Rao , Raja , Kanthapura , 32 Reiss , 88 Ribner , Irving , 96 , 119
75 9
, C. D., 22 ,
Randall , Dale B ., 100
's
Narasimhiah
Neale , Steve ,
, 23
Rosenfelt , Deborah Rowbotham , Sheila
Nagarajan , S ., 23
Naipaul, V. S. ,
Plato
Pollack , Otto , 88 Ponniah , Gowrie , 114 Pym , John , 37 n16 Raleigh , Walter, 17, 29 Ramayana , 64 n8 , 134
46
Mies, Maria , 26, 62 n1, 81, Miller , Arthur , 30 Miller . Barbara Diane , 38 Miller , Jonathan , 144 Millett , Kate , 8 n3 Milton , John , 21 , 90 Mitchell , Juliet , 112
109
155
INDEX
177
,
81 ,
,
80
no
,
71
5 6
,
26 n6
,
,
,
95
, 93 ,
,
91
-
87
83 ,
, 78 , , 80 ,
,
75
,
,
,
, ., , , - 77
,
98
8
16
,
,
Elizabeth Horace
n5
98
A
,
,
, 5 ,
,
,
,
6 31 5
, , 4,
,
10
99
H
,
,
, 8 ,
,
,
130
Streetcar Named
8
,
Young Iris
n5 ,
91
, 70 , 73 ,
,
n5
,
8
,
Wolpe Anne Marie n3 Woodridge Linda 8n1
,
,
54
n2 ,
8
,
8
,
120
Williams Tennessee
, , , , ,
's
of 15
-
,
Alfred Lord
69
White Allon Whittey Steve Willeman Paul Willes Richard 136 Williams Raymond
Wilson Wilson
91
69 ,
141
n1
110
n5
Robert Weimann 147 Wells Henry Whigham Frank
Desire
21
Tennyson
Leonard n3
56
,
55
Tennenhouse
Women
,
, , , , R , , 90 . 83 H , , , .,
. E .,
T
Tanvir Habib 121 Tapper Bruce Elliott 114 n1 Tawney
84
,
M .,
,
, W , 6 , . , , T -6 30 ., , , , ; 39 21 91 , 50 n2 , 1 , , 97 , 55 , ; , 65 , , 68 - , 8 39 , , 69 , , , 74 , of
,
80
75
100 105
,
139
The Duchess
100 105 108 110 123 124 133 155 Sigrid 104
,
Travels 137
,
's
132
The Lawes Resolution Rights
n3
The White Devil
127
,
35
, 28 , 30 ,
14
, ,
-
, . C , ., A
Swinburne
74
,
n1 ,
n7
35
,
132
Woman Hater
Swift Jonathan Gulliver
,
91
56
, 67 ,
F
,
,
90 -1
, ,
Joseph
the
,
Swetnam
n3
Weir Angela
,
, ,
,
37
n17
117
135
133
81
117
Weigel
Strachey Lytton Stubbes Philip 131 Sunder Rajan Rajeswari Swetnam
John
73
,
,
91 ,
n3
Webb Webster Malfi
, ,
, 10 . , , , , 14 8 77 , , 79 36 , ,
n10 131
n1
Stone Lawrence
n1
8
, , 38 2, , 3 89 , 7 ,
, ,
9
n4 ,
nii
, . N ., , ,
,
141
Esther 132 Spear Percival n14 Gayatri Chakravorty Spivak Sowernam
Stallybrass Peter 61 Shirley Staton
V
,
, 21 , Wadsworth Frank Warner Marina 118 Warnicke Retha
142
Hilda
Smith Stella
117 n3
18
n8 ,
9
Volosinov
,
n1
35
,
,
76
P
,
Smith
n1
Alan
58 ,
23 , , ,
,
Sinfield
n1
Vives Juan Luis
141 n2
Simmons
Gauri
,
Viswanathan 105 106
62 n1
115
, 13 , 14 , 16 , 18 ,
110
,
, ,
Vanita Ruth
,
Sharma Ursula 113 137 Shaw Catherine Shelley Shepherd Simon Simeon Dilip
Travitsky, Betty , 92 n7 Tyrell William Blake 118
8
, , , . , J., B 66 ., , , L T ., 72 91 2, ., , , , , 21 , 14 18 M - , 5 , , 108 , ., , 8 15 47 , 29 , 95 n2 70 , -1 37 , ,
Titus Andronicus , 46 - 8 , 49, 51, 80 , Twelfth Night
M . W ., 66
, E.
Tillyard
,
102
The Tempest, 6 , 15, 33 , 52 , 62 , ch . 6 passim
Thomas , Keith , 8 n1, 56, 91 n3 Thomson , Edward , 23 Thorne , Anne , 110 , 118 n5 , 133
40 ,
Romeo and Juliet , 101 , 108 - 9, 123 The Taming of the Shrew, 109
11
106, 123, 127 , 142 , 149 -50
Richard II , 131
23
38
74 , 75 , 83, 93 , 95, 97 , 99 , 101 , 102 ,
, Susie ,
Tharu
Thatcher ,Margaret , 31, 110 Thiong ' o, Ngugi Wa, 31 , 32 , 145 -6 Theodorakis , Mikis , 33
,
,
,
Othello , 10, 32 , 34, ch . 2 passim, 65
, Ellen , 75 Thapar , Romila , 35 n4 , 35 n5
Terry
32 ,
, 40 ,61, 93 , 99 ,
,
The Merchant of Venice , 100 , 104 , 108 Much Ado About Nothing 104
105
INDEX
178
Woodridge, Linda , 8 n1, 70 , 73,
,
,
Young
n5
105
8
Willeman , Paul , 6
Willes , Richard , 136 Williams, Raymond , 5 , 10 Williams, Tennessee , A Streetcar Named Desire, 98
Wilson , Elizabeth , 8 n5 Wilson , Horace , 16 Wolpe , Anne Marie , 8 n3
Iris
White , Allon , 4 , 5 Whittey , Steve , 31
91 n5 ,